summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/69769-0.txt6199
-rw-r--r--old/69769-0.zipbin138455 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h.zipbin1697331 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/69769-h.htm9473
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/back-cover.jpgbin45450 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/cover.jpgbin207352 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus01.jpgbin81315 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus02.jpgbin19959 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus03.jpgbin68551 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus04.jpgbin43242 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus05.jpgbin67631 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus06.jpgbin22828 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus07.jpgbin22492 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus08.jpgbin62835 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus09.jpgbin27301 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus10.jpgbin24657 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus11.jpgbin8139 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus12.jpgbin28824 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus13.jpgbin27288 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus14.jpgbin16336 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus15.jpgbin85742 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus16.jpgbin22061 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus17.jpgbin20730 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus18.jpgbin15078 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus19.jpgbin68908 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus20.jpgbin66025 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus21.jpgbin85476 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus22.jpgbin38630 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus23.jpgbin18628 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus24.jpgbin20954 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus25.jpgbin25510 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus26.jpgbin15011 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus27.jpgbin35638 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus28.jpgbin18719 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus29.jpgbin13490 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus30.jpgbin78458 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus31.jpgbin23623 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus32.jpgbin23518 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus33.jpgbin23863 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus34.jpgbin27589 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus35.jpgbin21642 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69769-h/images/illus36.jpgbin32507 -> 0 bytes
45 files changed, 17 insertions, 15672 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4b5d51b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #69769 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/69769)
diff --git a/old/69769-0.txt b/old/69769-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 3849940..0000000
--- a/old/69769-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6199 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The boys' book of Indian battles and
-adventures, by John Blake
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The boys' book of Indian battles and adventures
- with anecdotes about them
-
-Author: John Blake
-
-Release Date: January 11, 2023 [eBook #69769]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Brian Coe and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
- https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
- generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BOYS' BOOK OF INDIAN
-BATTLES AND ADVENTURES ***
-
-
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: INDIAN MAIDEN.]
-
-
-
-
- THE
- BOYS’ BOOK
- OF
- INDIAN
- Battles and Adventures.
-
- [Illustration]
-
- New York:
- JAMES MILLER.
-
-
-
-
- THE
- BOYS’ BOOK
- OF INDIAN
- Battles and Adventures,
- WITH ANECDOTES ABOUT THEM.
-
- ILLUSTRATED WITH TEN ENGRAVINGS
-
- BY THE AUTHOR OF “EVENINGS IN BOSTON,” “RAMON
- THE ROVER OF CUBA,” ETC.
-
- New York:
- JAMES MILLER, 522 BROADWAY.
- M.DCCC.LXVI.
-
- Entered, according to Act of Congress, in the year 1860, by
- JAMES MILLER,
-in the Clerk’s office of the District Court of the United States, for the
- Southern District of New York.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The character of the aboriginal inhabitants of the western continent is
-in many respects remarkable and striking. It possesses great interest
-for the student of history as well as the observer of human nature.
-Still this character has never been properly exhibited in a connected
-view. One is obliged to detect the traits in detached incidents and
-scattered descriptions; and thus by a sort of inductive process to
-determine the real disposition, powers and capabilities of the North
-American Savage. It is for the purpose of bringing the materials of this
-inductive process within the compass of a single volume of moderate size
-that these “Anecdotes” have been collected. They present the savage in
-all his various aspects and relations, in all circumstances of sorrow
-and joy, danger, difficulty and triumph. The incidents here narrated,
-while they exhibit the most prominent traits of the Indian character,
-also bring into view the most striking passages of our national history
-in its connection with the aborigines, and thus serve a double purpose
-as an exercise in historical as well as philosophical study. Its chief
-object is utility. Its particular design is to subserve the great cause
-of national education.
-
- NEW YORK, _Oct. 1st, 1860_.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN BATTLES AND ADVENTURES.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN HONESTY.
-
-
-In the character of the Indians of North America there are many traits
-which their white neighbours would do well to imitate. Among these,
-strict honesty is one. Mr. Catlin gives the credit of this virtue to
-all the wild tribes which he visited, not corrupted by intercourse with
-civilized nations. Bolts and bars, for the protection of property, among
-them are unknown. He cites many examples to prove this. The following
-anecdote is from another source.
-
-An Indian being among his white neighbours, asked for a little tobacco
-to smoke, and one of them, having some loose in his pocket, gave him
-a handful. The day following, the Indian came back, inquiring for the
-donor, saying he had found a quarter of a dollar among the tobacco; being
-told that as it was given him he might as well keep it, he answered,
-pointing to his breast: ‘I got a good man and a bad man here; and the
-good man say, it is not mine, I must return it to the owner; the bad man
-say, why he gave it to you, and it is your own now; the good man say,
-that’s not right, the tobacco is yours, not the money; the bad man say,
-never mind, you got it, go buy some dram; the good man say, no, no, you
-must not do so; so I don’t know what to do, and I think to go to sleep;
-but the good man and the bad man keep talking all night, and trouble me;
-and now I bring the money back I feel good.’
-
-
-
-
-HONOR AMONG INDIANS.
-
-
-There is no class of human beings on earth, who hold a pledge more sacred
-and binding, than do the North American Indians. A sample of this was
-witnessed during the Winnebago war of 1827, in the person of Dekker-re,
-a celebrated chief of that nation, who, among four other Indians of his
-tribe, was taken prisoner at Prairie du Chien. Colonel Snelling, of the
-5th regiment of infantry, who then commanded that garrison, despatched
-a young Indian into the nation, with orders to inform the other chiefs
-of Dekker-re’s band, that unless those Indians who were perpetrators of
-the horrid murders of some of our citizens, were brought to the fort
-and given up within ten days, Dekker-re and the other four Indians who
-were retained as hostages, would be shot at the end of that time. The
-awful sentence was pronounced in the presence of Dekker-re, who, though
-proclaiming his own innocence of the outrages which had been committed
-by others of his nation, exclaimed that he feared not death, though it
-would be attended with serious consequences, inasmuch as he had two
-affectionate wives and a large family of small children who were entirely
-dependent on him for their support; but if necessary, he was willing
-to die for the honour of his nation. The young Indian had been gone
-several days, and no intelligence was yet received from the murderers.
-The dreadful day being near at hand, and Dekker-re being in a bad state
-of health, asked permission of the Colonel to go to the river to indulge
-in his long accustomed habit of bathing; in order to improve his health.
-Upon which, Col. S. told him that, if he would promise, on the honor of
-a chief, that he would not leave the town, he might have his liberty,
-and enjoy all his privileges, until the day of the appointed execution.
-Accordingly he first gave his hand to the Colonel, thanked him for his
-friendly offer, then raised both his hands aloft, and in the most solemn
-adjuration, promised that he would not leave the bounds prescribed, and
-said, if he had a hundred lives, he would sooner lose them all than
-forfeit his word, or deduct from his proud nation one particle of its
-boasted honor. He was then set at liberty. He was advised to flee to
-the wilderness, and make his escape. “But no,” said he, “do you think I
-prize life above honor? or that I would betray a confidence reposed in
-me, for the sake of saving my life?” He then complacently remained until
-nine days of the ten which he had to live had elapsed, and nothing heard
-from the nation with regard to the apprehension of the murderers, his
-immediate death became apparent; but no alteration could be seen in the
-countenance of the chief. It so happened that on that day, Gen. Atkinson
-arrived with his troops from Jefferson Barracks, and the order for
-execution was countermanded, and the Indians permitted to repair to their
-homes.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN ELOQUENCE.
-
-
-The Indian warrior Tecumseh, who fell in the late American war, was
-not only an accomplished military commander, but also a great natural
-statesman and orator. Among the many strange, and some strongly
-characteristic events of his life, the council which the American
-General Harrison held with the Indians at Vincennes, in 1811, affords an
-admirable instance of the sublimity which sometimes distinguished his
-eloquence. The chiefs of some tribes had come to complain of a purchase
-of lands which had been made from the Kickafoos. The council effected
-nothing, but broke up in confusion, in consequence of Tecumseh having
-called General Harrison “a liar.” During the long talks which took place
-in the conference, Tecumseh having finished one of his speeches, looked
-round, and seeing every one seated, while no seat was prepared for him, a
-momentary frown passed over his countenance. Instantly General Harrison
-ordered that a chair should be given him. Some person presented one, and
-bowing, said to him, “Warrior, your father, General Harrison, offers
-you a seat.” Tecumseh’s dark eye flashed. “My father!” he exclaimed
-indignantly, extending his arms towards heaven; “the sun is my father,
-and the earth is my mother; she gives me nourishment, and I repose upon
-her bosom.” As he ended, he suddenly seated himself on the ground.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN COQUETRY.
-
-
-The Chawanon Indians, inhabiting the lake of Marcotti, and who are
-considered the most warlike and civilized of the American Indians, have
-a manner of courtship which we believe to be peculiar to themselves.
-When such of their young women as have pretensions to beauty, attain
-their twelfth year, which is the usual period of their marriage, they
-either keep themselves quite secluded at home, or when they go out muffle
-themselves up in such a manner, that nothing is seen but their eyes. On
-these indications of beauty, they are eagerly sought in marriage, and
-those suitors who have acquired the greatest reputation as warriors or
-hunters, obtain the consent of the family. After this, the lover repairs
-to the cabin, where the beauty is lying enveloped on her couch. He gently
-approaches and uncovers her face, so that his person may be seen, and
-if this be to her mind, she invites him to lie down by her side; if not,
-she again conceals her face, and the lover retires. A husband has the
-privilege of marrying all his wife’s sisters as they arrive at age, so
-that after, often before, his first wife is thirty, he has married and
-abandoned at least a dozen.
-
-
-
-
-WEATHERFORD.
-
- “I come, my Wilwullah!
- Guide hither our boy!
- I bring from the forest
- Its spirit and joy:
- Why lingereth my soft-eyed?”
- And dark grew his brow;
- “Thy hunter returneth—
- Where, truant, art thou?”
-
- He enters his wigwam—
- What meaneth that cry?
- His bold form what freezeth?
- What filmeth his eye?
- The work of the white men!
- His mate of the wood,
- And their fawns, the light-footed,
- All couched in their blood!
-
- Before a cold foeman
- The Indian is cold;
- But his heart in his wild-wood
- Is like molten gold.
- The warrior has clasped them—
- He’s red in their gore!
- Has raved and wept o’er them—
- But ne’er will weep more!
-
- “Ye snow-brow destroyers!
- Ye false and ye foul!
- For this, by Manito!
- For this shall ye howl!
- I swear that pale thousands
- Shall weep for this blow;
- For each drop here wasted,
- Red rivers shall flow!
-
- “When smoke dims the distance,
- And shrieks fill the air,
- Then white lips will whisper,
- ‘_Fly! Weatherford’s there!_’
- Your warriors shall perish;
- We’ll laugh at their shame;
- And the blood of your loved ones
- Shall hiss in the flame!”
-
- How was that vow answered?
- Ask Mimms: it will tell!
- Where the battle was hottest
- There _his_ hatchet fell;
- Where the shriek was the loudest,
- Where freest ran blood,
- Be sure, mid his victims,
- There Weatherford stood!
-
- But feeble the red men,
- Though fierce in the fray;
- Like mists in the morning,
- They melted away.
- “Give us peace!” prayed the vanquished;
- “The white chieftain gives
- No peace”—was the answer—
- “While Weatherford lives.”
-
- That lion-souled chieftain’s[1]
- Alone in his tent:
- ’Tis midnight; still over
- His toil he is bent.
- The drapery is rustled—
- He turns not his ear:
- “Ho! Look up, proud warrior,
- Thy foreman is here!”
-
- A dark form stood o’er him,
- His red arm on high;
- But quailed not the chieftain
- Beneath his dark eye.
- “What art thou, bold savage?
- Sooth, light the foot fell
- That stole through the watch
- Of my tried sentinel.”
-
- “Where Weatherford willeth,
- Even there will he go;
- He heeds not thy sentry
- When seeking his foe.”
- “I fear thee not, boaster!”
- “Thou needest not fear;
- For peace for my people,
- For peace came I here.
-
- “Thou’d’st have me sent to thee.
- And sent to thee bound;
- But Weatherford dies not
- The death of a hound:
- No recreant, no trembler,
- No captive am I—
- I’ve fetterless lived, and
- Will fetterless die.
-
- “To save my crushed people
- I die, but die free—
- A sacrifice worthy
- Of them and of thee!”
- “No—back to thy forest—
- Bold warrior go!
- I strike not the head
- That is bent to the blow
-
- “Aye, go! but remember
- When meet we again,
- Thy lot is the gibbet,
- The cord and the chain.
- Be strong for the battle!
- No quarter we yield:
- No fear and no mercy!
- Now, back to the field!”
-
- “I long have fought with thee,
- And still would fight on—
- But my true Seminoles—
- My warriors are gone!
- My brave ones I’d rally,
- And fight at their head;
- But where is the warrior
- Can rally the dead!
-
- “At red Talledegha,
- Emuckfaw they stood—
- Thou knowest that our valleys
- Are black with their blood.
- By the wailing Savannah
- Unburied they lie;
- Spare, warrior, the remnant,
- Let Weatherford die!”
-
- No longer the soldier
- The bold plea could hear,
- But quick from his bronzed cheek
- He hurried a tear.
- “Devoted and brave! As
- Thou will’st shall it be;
- Here’s peace to thy people,
- And friendship for thee!”
-
-
-[Illustration: Weatherford’s Revenge.]
-
-
-THE FOLLOWING IS THE INCIDENT ON WHICH THE FOREGOING LINES ARE FOUNDED.[2]
-
-Billy Weatherford, the celebrated savage warrior, is, at length,
-vanquished—the destroyer is conquered—the hand which so profusely dealt
-death and desolation among the whites, is now paralyzed—it is motionless.
-He died at his late residence near Montpelier, in this state, on the 9th
-inst. His deeds of war are well known to the early settlers in South
-Alabama, and will be remembered by them while they live: and be talked
-of, with horror, by generations yet unborn. But his dauntless spirit has
-taken its flight—“he is gone to the land of his fathers.”
-
-Billy Weatherford, denominated ‘The Prophet,’ was about one-fourth
-Indian (some say a half breed) his ancestry, on the white side, having
-been Scottish. It has been said, that he boasted of having no _Yankee_
-(meaning American) blood in his veins.
-
-This ferocious chief led the hostile Indians to the attack of Fort
-Mimms, at Tensau, on the 30th of August, 1813; which resulted in the
-indiscriminate massacre of men, women, and children, to the number of
-near four hundred. He was also a leader associated with the prophets
-Francis and Sinquister, at the battle fought on the 23d of December
-following, at Ekchanachaca, or ‘The Holy Ground;’ which had been
-considered by them inaccessible to their enemies, and the ‘Grave of White
-Men.’ But it proved a fatal delusion. His party suffered great loss of
-warriors, and all the provisions, munitions of war, &c., deposited at
-this place of imaginary security; being, as they supposed, rendered
-secure by the protecting influence of some supernatural agency.
-
-It is stated, that—after being sated with the blood of Americans, and
-witnessing the almost total extinction of his warriors—he voluntarily and
-dauntlessly flung himself into the hands of General Jackson, and demanded
-his protection. He is said, on surrendering himself, to have made the
-following speech to the General—which looks very little like claiming
-_protection_. It displays a spirit, which would have done credit to
-Napoleon, under similar circumstances, after the battle of Waterloo:
-
-“I am in your power: do with me what you please. I am a soldier. I have
-done the white people all the harm I could. I have fought them, and
-fought them bravely. If I had an army, I would yet fight, and contend to
-the last. But I have done—my people are all gone—I can do no more than
-weep over the misfortunes of my nation. Once I could animate my warriors
-to battle: but I cannot animate the dead. My warriors can no longer hear
-my voice—their bones are at Talladega, Tallaschatchee, Emuckfaw, and
-Tohopeka. I have not surrendered myself thoughtlessly. Whilst there were
-chances of success, I never left my post, nor supplicated peace. But my
-people are gone, and I now ask it for my nation, and for myself.
-
-“On the miseries and misfortunes brought upon my country, I look back
-with the deepest sorrow, and wish to avert still greater calamities. If I
-had been left to contend with the Georgian army, I would have raised my
-corn on one bank of the river, and have fought them on the other. But
-your people have destroyed my nation. You are a brave man. I rely upon
-your generosity. You will exact no terms of a conquered people, but such
-as they should accede to. Whatever they may be, it would now be madness
-and folly to oppose them. If they are opposed, you shall find me among
-the sternest enforcers of obedience. Those who would still hold out, can
-be influenced only by a mean spirit of revenge; and, to this, they must
-not, and _shall not_, sacrifice the last remnant of their country. You
-have told us, where we might go, and be safe. This is a good talk, and my
-nation ought to listen to it. _They SHALL listen to it._”[3]
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN CHARACTER.
-
-
-A striking display of Indian character occurred some years since in a
-town in Maine. An Indian of the Kennebeck tribe remarkable for his good
-conduct, received a grant of land from the state, and fixed himself
-in a new township, where a number of families settled. Though not ill
-treated, yet the common prejudice against Indians prevented any sympathy
-with him. This was shown at the death of his only child, when none of
-the people came near him. Shortly afterwards he went to some of the
-inhabitants, and said to them. _When white man’s child die—Indian man
-be sorry—he help bury him—when my child die—no one speak to me—I make
-his grave alone—I cant no live here._—He gave up his farm, _dug up the
-body of his child_ and carried it with him two hundred miles through the
-forest, to join the Canada Indians. What energy and depth of feeling does
-this specimen of Indian character exhibit!
-
-
-
-
-AN INDIAN BEAU.
-
-
-A young Indian warrior is, notoriously, the most thoroughgoing beau
-in the world. Bond-street and Broadway furnish no subjects that will
-undergo as much crimping and confinement, to appear in full dress. We are
-confident that we have observed such a character constantly occupied with
-his paints and his pocket-glass, three full hours, laying on his colours,
-and adjusting his tresses, and contemplating, from time to time, with
-visible satisfaction, the progress of his growing attractions. When he
-has finished, the proud triumph of irresistible charms is in his eye. The
-chiefs and warriors, in full dress, have one, two, or three broad clasps
-of silver about their arms; generally jewels in their ears, and often
-in their noses; and nothing is more common than to see a thin circular
-piece of silver, of the size of a dollar, depending from their nose, a
-little below the upper lip. Nothing shows more clearly the influence of
-fashion. This ornament—so painfully inconvenient, as it evidently is to
-them, and so horribly ugly and disfiguring—seems to be the utmost finish
-of Indian taste. Porcupine quills, stained of different colours, are
-twisted in their hair. Tails of animals hang from their hair behind. A
-necklace of bears’ or alligators’ teeth, or claws of the bald eagle,
-hangs loosely down; and an interior and smaller circle of large red
-beads, or in default of them, a rosary of red hawthorn berries, surrounds
-the neck. From the knees to the feet, the legs are decorated with great
-numbers of little perforated cylindrical pieces of silver or brass, that
-emit a simultaneous tinkle as the person walks. If, to all this, he add
-an American hat, and a soldier’s coat, of blue, faced with red, over the
-customary calico shirt of the gaudiest colours that can be found, he
-lifts his feet high, and steps firmly on the ground, to give his tinklers
-a uniform and full sound; and apparently considers his person with as
-much complacency as the human bosom can be supposed to feel. This is a
-very curtailed view of an Indian beau; but every reader, competent to
-judge, will admit its fidelity, as far as it goes, to the description of
-a young Indian warrior over the whole Mississippi Valley, when prepared
-to take part in a public dance.
-
-
-
-
-AN INDIAN TOAST.
-
-
-When General Wayne was holding his treaty with the Indians at Greenville,
-a young chief sat down at the dinner table, next to the General. This
-was not much relished by the _White Chief_; but he did not wish to give
-open offence to his _Red Brother_. The cloth being removed, the wine
-began to circulate; when Wayne—thinking to confound and abash the young
-chief—asked him for a _toast_. This being interpreted and explained to
-this son of the forest, he filled his tumbler with wine, and gave ‘_The
-Great Spirit_’—and after an impressive pause, pressing his hand on his
-breast—he added, “_Because he put it into the heart of man to make such
-good liquor!_”
-
-
-
-
-SHREWDNESS.
-
-
- “_He that delivereth it unto thee hath the greater sin._”
-
-“I am glad,” said the Rev. Dr. Y⸺s to the chief of the Little Ottowas,
-“that you do not drink whiskey. But it grieves me to find that your
-people use so much of it.” “Ah, yes,” replied the Indian,—and he fixed an
-arch and impressive eye upon the Doctor, which communicated the reproof
-before he uttered it—“we Indians _use_ a great deal of whiskey, but we do
-not _make_ it.”
-
-
-
-
-LANGUAGE BY SIGNS.
-
-
-It is pretty well ascertained that there exists among mankind a universal
-language of signs, taught by nature herself. Voyagers have always used
-these signs among savage and previously undiscovered nations. They are
-always understood, and invariably form the basis of intercourse. The
-former director of the Hartford Asylum for the Deaf and Dumb, informed
-the writer, that all the mutes who came to that institution from
-different parts of the country, brought with them signs and motions which
-were essentially the same, and which coincided with those used in the
-institution. This proves that they are _natural_.
-
-Andrew Ellicott, Esq., commissioned by the United States to determine,
-in conjunction with the Commissioners of Spain, a line of demarcation
-between the territories of both nations,—related to the writer a curious
-trait in the savage character.
-
-On his way down the Mississippi, a number of strange Indians came
-into his camp, from the west side of the river. A Mr. Nolin happened
-to be there at the time,—well known for his enterprize and skill in
-catching wild horses in the Internal Provinces of Spanish America. He
-addressed them in such of the languages as he was acquainted with—but
-was not understood. He then conversed by certain signs. These were
-understood by the Indians, and were answered in like manner. Thus (if the
-expression may be allowed) a conversation ensued, in which not a word was
-spoken:—“and this,” said Nolin, “is a sort of universal language common
-to the Western tribes.”—(_See Major Long’s Expedition._)
-
-
-
-
-LOGAN.
-
-
-This celebrated Indian chief, who had always been a zealous friend of
-the English, and had often distinguished himself in their service, was
-taken prisoner, and brought before the General Assembly of Virginia,
-who hesitated whether he should be tried by court martial as a soldier,
-or at the criminal bar for high treason. Logan stated that they had
-no jurisdiction to try him; that he owed no allegiance to the King of
-England, being an Indian Chief, independent of every nation. In answer to
-their inquiries as to his motives for taking up arms against the English,
-he thus addressed the Assembly. “I appeal to any white man, to say if
-ever he entered Logan’s cabin hungry, and I gave him not meat; if ever he
-came cold or naked, and I gave him not clothing. During the last long and
-bloody war, Logan remained idle in his tent, an advocate for peace; nay
-such was my love for the whites, that those of my country pointed at me,
-as they passed by, and said, ‘Logan is the friend of white men.’ I had
-ever thought to live with you but for the injuries of one man. Colonel
-Cressap, the last spring, in cold blood, and unprovoked, cut off all the
-relations of Logan, not sparing even my women and children. There runs
-not a drop of my blood in the veins of any human creature. This called
-on me for revenge. I have sought it. I have killed many. I have fully
-glutted my vengeance. For my country, I rejoice at the beams of peace.
-But do not harbor the thought that mine is the joy of fear. Logan never
-felt fear. He will not turn his heel to save his life. Who is there to
-mourn for Logan? Not one!”
-
-This pathetic speech touched the sensibility of all who heard it. The
-General Assembly applauded his noble sentiments, and immediately set him
-at liberty. The inhabitants of Virginia vied with each other who should
-entertain him the best, or show him the greatest respect; and he returned
-to his native country loaded with presents and honors.
-
-
-
-
-THE INDIAN’S VIEWS OF THE TRINITY.
-
-
-Elliot had been lecturing on the doctrine of the trinity, when one of
-his auditors, after a long and thoughtful pause, thus addressed him. ‘I
-believe, Mr. Minister, I understand you. The trinity is just like water
-and ice and snow. The water is one, the ice is another, and the snow is
-another; and yet they are all one water.’
-
-
-
-
-MORE ROOM.
-
-
-When General Lincoln went to make peace with the Creek Indians, one of
-the chiefs asked him to sit down on a log; he was then desired to move,
-and in a few minutes to move still farther; the request was repeated till
-the General got to the end of the log. The Indian said, ‘Move farther.’
-To which the General replied, ‘I can move no farther.’ ‘Just so it is
-with us,’ said the chief; ‘you have moved us back to the water, and then
-ask us to move farther.’
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN MENDACITY.
-
-
-Of all the vices incident to the aborigines of this country, from their
-intercourse with the whites, that of lying is, probably, not among the
-least. Some years anterior to the independence of the United States,
-one Tom Hyde, an Indian famous for his cunning, went into a tavern in
-Brookfield, Massachusetts, and after a little chat told the landlord he
-had been hunting, and had killed a fine fat deer, and if he would give
-him a quart of rum he would tell him where it was. Mine host, unwilling
-to let slip so good an opportunity of obtaining venison, immediately
-struck the bargain and measured the Indian his quart of rum, at the same
-time asking where the deer was to be found. ‘Well,’ says Tom, ‘do you
-know where the great meadow is?’ ‘Yes.’ ‘Well, do you know the great
-marked maple tree that stands in it?’ ‘Yes.’ ‘Well, there lies the deer.’
-Away posted the landlord with his team, in quest of his purchase. He
-found the meadow and the tree, it is true; but all his searching after
-the deer was fruitless, and he returned home no heavier than he went,
-except in mortification and disappointment. Some days after, mine host
-met the Indian, and feeling indignant at the deception practised on him,
-accused him in no gentle terms of the trick. Tom heard him out—and, with
-the coolness of a stoic, replied—‘Did you not find the meadow, as I
-said?’ ‘Yes.’ ‘And the tree?’ ‘Yes.’ ‘And the deer?’ ‘No.’ ‘Very good,’
-continued he, ‘you found _two truths for one lie, which is very well for
-an Indian_.’
-
-
-
-
-CANONICUS.
-
-
-Mr. Drake, in his Book of the Indians, thus mentions Canonicus, the
-sachem of the Narragansets:—
-
-He was contemporary with Miantunnomoh, who was his nephew. We know not
-the time of his birth, but a son of his was at Boston in 1631, the next
-year after it was settled. But the time of his death is minutely recorded
-by Governor Winthrop, in his “Journal,” thus: “June 4, 1647, Canonicus,
-the great sachem of Narraganset, died, a very old man.” He is generally
-supposed to have been about 85 years of age when he died.
-
-He is mentioned with great respect by Rev. Roger Williams, in the year
-1654. After observing that many hundreds of the English were witnesses
-to the friendly disposition of the Narragansets, he says, “their late
-famous long-lived Canonicus so lived and died, and in the same most
-honourable manner and solemnity, (in their way,) as you laid to sleep
-your prudent peace-maker, Mr. Winthrop, did they honour this their
-prudent and peaceable prince; yea, through all their towns and countries
-how frequently do many, and oft times our Englishmen, travel alone with
-safety and loving kindness?”
-
-
-
-
-ESQUIMAUX INDIANS.
-
-
- Captain Ross, in the Journal of his Arctic Expedition,
- gives the following account of his first interview with the
- Esquimaux, in the northern parts of Baffin’s Bay:
-
-“These Esquimaux,” says he, “conceived the _ships to be living and
-flying creatures_.” ... “I had been employed, with a good telescope, in
-observing their motions, and beheld the first man approach, with every
-mark of fear and distrust—looking frequently behind to the other two,
-and beckoning them to come on, as if for support. They occasionally
-retreated, then advanced again, with cautious steps, in the attitude of
-listening; generally keeping one hand down by their knees, in readiness
-to pull out a knife, which they had in their boots: in the other hand
-they held their whips, with the lash coiled up: their sledges remained
-at a little distance—the fourth man being apparently stationed to keep
-them in readiness for escape. Sometimes they drew back the covering they
-had on their heads, as if wishing to catch the most distant sounds: at
-which time I could discern their features, displaying extreme terror and
-amazement, while every limb appeared to tremble as they moved.” They were
-requested to cross a chasm, which separated them from the interpreter, by
-a plank; but “appeared still much alarmed, and requested that Sackhouse
-(the interpreter) only should come over. He accordingly passed to the
-opposite side, on which they earnestly beseeched him not to touch them,
-as, if he did, _they should certainly die_. After he had used many
-arguments to persuade them that he was flesh and blood, the native, who
-had shown most courage, ventured to touch his hand; then, pulling himself
-by the nose, set up a shout, in which he was joined by Sackhouse and
-the other three. The presents were then distributed, consisting of two
-or three articles of clothing, and a few strings of beads. After which,
-Sackhouse exchanged his knife for one of theirs.”
-
-Captain Ross and Lieutenant Parry then went on the ice, and, “by the time
-they reached it, the whole were assembled: those who had originally been
-left at a distance, with their sledges, having driven up to join their
-comrades. The party now, therefore, consisted of eight natives, with all
-their sledges, and about fifty dogs, two sailors, Sackhouse, Lieutenant
-Parry, and myself—forming a group of no small singularity, not a little
-increased, also, by the peculiarity of the situation on a field of ice,
-far from the land. The noise and clamour may be easily conceived—the
-whole talking and shouting together, and the dogs howling, while the
-natives were flogging them with their long whips, to preserve order.
-Our arrival produced considerable alarm, causing them to retreat a few
-steps towards their sledges. On this, Sackhouse called to us to _pull our
-noses_, as he had discovered this to be the mode of friendly salutation
-among them. This ceremony was accordingly performed by each of us, the
-natives, during their retreat, making use of the same gesture; the nature
-of which we had not before understood.” Presents were then made, and, “on
-seeing their faces in the glasses, their astonishment appeared extreme,
-and they looked round in silence, for a moment, at each other, and at
-us. Immediately afterwards, they set up a general shout, succeeded by a
-loud laugh, expressive of extreme delight as well as surprise—in which we
-joined, partly from inability to avoid it, and willing also to show that
-we were pleased with our new acquaintances.” Confidence shortly after
-became established, and uncovering of heads was substituted for pulling
-of noses—the natives appearing to comprehend the nature of this ceremony
-more quickly than the seamen did the other, and probably not considering
-it a much more reasonable, although a more inconvenient, testimony
-of respect. They were then invited to the ship, to which one of them
-thought proper to _address a speech_, “_pausing between every question,
-and pulling his nose with the utmost solemnity_.” All the wonder to be
-expected was here excited; but the quantity of the wood and iron appeared
-to be the chief objects of surprise.
-
-“Their knowledge of wood seemed to be limited to some heath of a dwarfish
-growth, with stems no thicker than the finger; and, accordingly, they
-knew not what to think of the timber they saw on board. Not being aware
-of its weight, two or three of them, successively, seized on the spare
-topmast, evidently with the view of carrying it off; and, as soon as they
-became familiar with the people around them, they showed that desire
-of possessing what they admired, which is so universal among savages.
-The only thing they looked upon with contempt, was a little terrier
-dog;—judging, no doubt, that it was too small for drawing a sledge. But
-they shrunk back, as if in terror, from a pig, whose pricked ears and
-ferocious aspect (being of the Shetland breed) presented a somewhat
-formidable appearance. This animal happening to grunt, one of them was
-so terrified, that he became, from that moment, uneasy, and appeared
-impatient to get out of the ship. In carrying his purpose into effect,
-however, he did not lose his propensity to thieving, as he seized and
-endeavoured to carry off the smith’s anvil: finding that he could not
-remove it, he laid hold of the large hammer, threw it on the ice, and
-following it himself, deliberately set it on his sledge, and made off.”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-A CHOCTAW COUNCIL.
-
-
-The conduct of the government of the United States towards the Indian
-tribes, however politic it may seem, is certainly not based upon the
-Christian precept “to do unto others as we would that they should do
-unto us.” All our proceedings towards them have tended to their gradual
-extirpation from the land of their birth. Our wars, our treaties, our
-purchases of land, our system of intercourse with them, have all the same
-end. The following extract will show how well the Indians understand this.
-
-The reader will recollect, that it has become the settled policy of the
-United States to remove the several tribes of Indians to a country west
-of the Mississippi. In order to discuss and determine on this subject, in
-1830 the Choctaw Indians held a council, in which it was resolved to sell
-off their lands to the United States, for one million of dollars, and to
-remove without the States, provided Government would give to each man a
-section of land, in fee simple, west of the Mississippi, and be at the
-expense of transporting the tribe to their place of destination, and of
-supporting them twelve months after their arrival. The council sat four
-days, and the following is a short sketch of their proceedings:—
-
-The National Council was organized in the afternoon of the 15th of
-March. This was a juncture of peculiar interest. To see the rulers of
-a people, preparing to decide upon a course in which their posterity,
-to the latest generation, was deeply affected, could not but produce a
-deep and universal solemnity, and this interest was greatly increased
-by the bitter tears shed by some of the females present. The voice of
-sorrow is always eloquent; but, at such a season, never could the female
-voice speak more forcibly the sympathies of our nature. Who could avoid
-exclaiming, ‘O, my native country! Land of my fathers, I must leave thee!’
-
-The Chief presented them with a concise view of the difficulties of
-their situation, and the alternatives which were before them, and the
-sad necessity of immediately making their selection. It was at the
-intimation, that a removal was one of the alternatives, that the women
-wept.
-
-The Chief was followed by an old Captain in the nation, who, in brief
-simplicity, recounted his sufferings as a warrior and captain, in
-fighting for his White brothers, under General Jackson. He named several
-places where he had fought, and seen the Choctaws bleed and die. At that
-time, little did he think that his White brothers would ever make it
-necessary for him, in his old age, to leave his country, and the bones of
-his father. He would greatly prefer giving up his country, than submit to
-laws, the nature of which he could not learn, and among a people, the
-wicked part of whom would harass and ruin them. He expressed a belief
-that the President would give them a good treaty; and, if he would do so,
-aged as he was, he would give his voice to go to their lands west of the
-Mississippi—and, moreover, expressed his belief, that the Great Father
-above, would go with them, and bless them in their new home.
-
-A Captain of the eastern part of the nation, next came forward. He
-appeared many years in advance of the first speaker. His white head,
-palsied limbs, and tremulous voice, made him an object of deepest
-interest. He was said to have been a warrior under General Wayne. He
-recounted some of the scenes of his past life, and the hopes which had
-borne him onward in his course;—he touched upon the disappointment that
-had clouded his setting sun; but, awakening, as if by supernatural
-power, he spoke boldly of his confidence in his GREAT FATHER above, and
-expressed his full assurance, that HE would accompany his nation, and
-bless them. The discussion continued until a late hour of the fourth day,
-when the vote was taken, and found in favour of emigration.
-
-[Illustration: Indians Shooting their Prisoners.]
-
-
-
-
-THE YOUNG INDIAN CHIEF.[4]
-
-
-This young warrior, of fine size, figure and countenance, is now about
-25 years old. At the age of 21 his heroic deeds had acquired for him in
-his nation the rank of “bravest of the brave.” The savage practice of
-torturing and burning to death their prisoners existed in this nation. An
-unfortunate female taken in war, of the Paduca nation, was destined to
-this horrible death. The fatal hour had arrived, the trembling victim,
-far from her home and her friends, was fastened to the stake; the whole
-tribe was assembled on the surrounding plain to witness the awful scene.
-Just when the fire was about to be kindled, and the spectators on the
-tiptoe of expectation, this young warrior, who sat composedly among the
-chiefs, having before prepared two fleet horses, with the necessary
-provisions, sprung from his seat, rushed through the crowd, loosed the
-victim, seized her in his arms, placed her on one of the horses, mounted
-the other himself, and made the utmost speed towards the nation and
-friends of the captive. The multitude, dumb and nerveless with amazement
-at the daring deed, made no effort to rescue their victim from her
-deliverer. They viewed it as an act of the Great Spirit, submitted to it
-without a murmur, and quietly returned to their village. The released
-captive was accompanied through the wilderness towards her home, till she
-was out of danger. He then gave her the horse on which she rode, with the
-necessary provisions for the remainder of the journey, and they parted.
-On his return to the village, such was the respect entertained for him,
-that no inquiry was made into his conduct; no censure was passed on it,
-and since the transaction, no human sacrifice has been offered in this or
-any other of the Pawnee tribes. Of what influence is one bold act in a
-good cause!
-
-On the publication of this anecdote at Washington, the young ladies of
-Miss White’s Seminary, in that city, presented that brave and humane
-Indian with a handsome silver medal, on which was engraven an appropriate
-inscription, accompanied by an address, of which the following is the
-close:—“Brother, accept this token of our esteem; always wear it for our
-sake; and when you have again the power to save a poor woman from death
-and torture, think of this, and of us, and fly to her rescue.”
-
-
-
-
-RED JACKET.
-
-
-It happened during the Revolutionary war, that a treaty was held with the
-Indians, at which La Fayette was present. The object was to unite the
-various tribes in amity with America. The majority of the Chiefs were
-friendly, but there was much opposition made to it, more especially by a
-young warrior, who declared that when an alliance was entered into with
-America, he should consider the sun of his country as set forever. In his
-travels through the Indian country, when lately in America, it happened
-at a large assemblage of Chiefs, that La Fayette referred to the treaty
-in question, and turning to Red Jacket, said, “pray tell me if you can,
-what has become of that daring youth, who so decidedly opposed all our
-propositions for peace and amity? Does he still live—and what is his
-condition?” “I, myself, am the man,” replied Red Jacket, “the decided
-enemy of the Americans, as long as the hope of opposing them with success
-remained but now their true and faithful ally until death.”
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN MODE OF GETTING A WIFE.
-
-
-An aged Indian, who for many years had spent much of his time among
-the white people both in Pennsylvania and New Jersey, one day, about
-the year 1770, observed, that the Indians had not only a much easier
-way of getting a wife than the whites, but were also more certain of
-getting a _good_ one; ‘for’ (said he in his broken English) ‘white man
-court—court—may be one whole year!—may be two before he marry!—well!—may
-be then get _very good_ wife—but, may be _not_—may be _very_ cross! Well
-now, suppose cross! Scold so soon at get awake in the morning! Scold
-all day! Scold until sleep!—all one; he must keep _him_! White people
-have law forbidding throwing away wife, be _he_ ever so cross! must keep
-_him_ always! Well? how does Indian do? Indian when he see industrious
-squaw, which he like, he go to _him_, place his two fore-fingers close
-aside each other, make two look like one—look squaw in the face—see _him_
-smile—which is all one _he_ say, yes! so he take _him_ home—no danger
-_he_ be cross! no! no! Squaw know too well what Indian do if _he_ be
-cross!—throw _him_ away and take another! Squaw love to eat meat! no
-husband! no meat! Squaw do every thing to please husband; he do the same
-to please squaw! live happy!’
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-SHENANDOH, THE ONEIDA CHIEF.
-
-
-Although the dignity of a chief is hereditary in his family, generally,
-the aristocracy of the Indians is not one of birth merely, nor one of
-wealth; but it is an aristocracy of merit. A chief is liable to be
-deposed for misconduct; and a brave warrior takes his place on account
-of the actions he has performed. Among those who have maintained an
-ascendancy among their countrymen by the force of individual merit, none
-is more remarkable than Shenandoh, the Oneida chief.
-
-This celebrated chief, whose life measured a century, died in 1816.
-He was well known in the wars which occurred while the United States
-were British colonies; and, also, in the war of the Revolution—as the
-undeviating friend of the Americans.
-
-In his youth he was very savage, and addicted to drunkenness; but, by the
-force of reflection, and the benevolent exhortations of a missionary to
-the tribe, he lived a reformed man for more than sixty years, and died in
-Christian hope.[5]
-
-Shenandoh’s person was tall and muscular but well made—his countenance
-was intelligent, and beamed with all the ingenuous dignity of an Indian
-Chief. In youth, he was brave and intrepid—in his riper years, one of
-the ablest counsellors among the North American tribes. He possessed a
-strong and vigorous mind; and, though terrible as the tornado in war—he
-was bland and mild as the zephyr in peace. With the cunning of the fox,
-the hungry perseverance of the wolf, and the agility of the mountain cat,
-he watched and repelled Canadian invasions. His vigilance once preserved
-from massacre the inhabitants of the then infant settlements of the
-German Flats. His influence brought his tribe to assist the Americans, in
-their war of the Revolution. His many friendly actions in their behalf,
-gained for him, among the Indian tribes, the appellation of the ‘_White
-Man’s Friend_.’
-
-To a friend who called to see him, in his wane (he was then blind), he
-thus expressed himself:
-
-“I am an aged hemlock—the winds of a hundred winters have whistled
-through my branches—I am dead at the top. The generation to which I
-belonged have run away and left me. Why _I_ live, the Great Spirit alone
-knows! Pray to my Jesus that I may have patience to wait for my appointed
-time to die.”
-
- ‘Indulge my native land; indulge the tear
- That steals impassioned o’er the nation’s doom:
- To me each twig from Adam’s stock is near,
- And sorrows fall upon an Indian’s tomb.’
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN GRATITUDE AND WIT.
-
-
-Soon after Litchfield began to be settled by the English, an unknown
-Indian came into the inn at dusk, and requested the hostess to furnish
-him with food and drink; stating, that he had had no success in hunting,
-and could not pay till he had better fortune. The woman refused;
-calling him a lazy, drunken, good-for-nothing fellow. A man who sat by,
-noticed the Indian as he turned away from the inhospitable place, and
-perceiving that he was suffering very severely from want and weariness,
-he generously ordered the hostess to furnish him with a good supper,
-and call on him for payment. After the Indian had finished his meal,
-he thanked his benefactor again and again, and assured him he should
-never forget his kindness, and would, if it were ever in his power,
-faithfully recompense it. He observed, that he had one more favor to ask;
-if the woman was willing, he wished to tell a story. The hostess, whose
-good nature had been restored by money, readily consented. The Indian,
-addressing his benefactor, said, “I suppose you read the Bible?” The man
-assented. “Well, the Bible says, God make the world; and then he took
-him, and looked on him, and say ‘all very good.’ Then he made light; and
-took him, and looked on him, and say, ‘all very good.’ Then he made land
-and water, sun and moon, grass and trees; and he took him, and looked
-on him, and say, ‘all very good.’ Then he made beasts, and birds, and
-fishes; and he took him, and looked on him, and say, ‘all very good.’
-Then he made man; and took him, and looked on him, and say, ‘all very
-good.’ Then he made woman; and took him, and looked at him, and——he no
-dare say one such word.”
-
-Many years after this, the Indian’s benefactor was taken prisoner by an
-Indian scout, and carried into Canada. He was saved from death by one
-of the tribe, who asked leave to adopt him in the place of a son, who
-had fallen in battle. Through the winter, he experienced the customary
-effects of savage hospitality. The following summer as he was at work
-in the forest alone, an unknown Indian came to him and appointed a
-meeting at a certain place, on a given day. The prisoner consented;
-but afterwards, fearing mischief might be intended, he neglected the
-engagement. The Indian again sought him, reproved him for his want of
-confidence in him, and assured him the meeting would be for his good.
-Encouraged by his apparent friendship, the man followed his directions.
-He found the Indian provided with muskets, ammunition, and knapsacks.
-The Indian ordered him to arm himself and follow him. Their course was
-towards the south, and day after day the Englishman followed, without
-being able to conjecture the motives of his guide. After a tedious
-journey, he arrived at the top of an eminence, commanding a view of a
-country somewhat cultivated and populous. “Do you know that country?”
-said the Indian, with an arch smile. “Oh, yes! it is Litchfield,” replied
-the white man, as he cordially pressed his hand. “Many years ago, you
-give weary Indian supper there,” said he. “He promise to pay you, and he
-pay you now. Go home, and be happy.”
-
-
-
-
-HEAD WORK.
-
-
-Colonel Dudley, governor of Massachusetts, in the beginning of the last
-century, had a number of workmen employed in building him a house on
-his plantation; and one day as he was looking at them, he observed a
-stout Indian, who, though the weather was very cold, was a naked as well
-as an idle spectator. ‘Hark ye, friend,’ said the governor, ‘why don’t
-you work like these men, and get clothes to cover you?’ ‘And why you no
-work, governor?’ replied the Indian. ‘I work,’ answered the governor,
-putting his finger on his forehead, ‘with my head, and therefore need not
-work with my hands.’ ‘Well,’ replied the Indian, ‘and if I would work,
-what have you for me to do?’ ‘Go kill me a calf,’ said the governor,
-‘and I will give you a shilling.’ The Indian did so. The governor asked
-him why he did not skin and dress it. ‘Calf dead, governor—give me my
-shilling; give me another,’ said the Indian, ‘and I will skin and dress
-it.’ This was complied with. The Indian then went to a tavern with his
-two shillings, and soon spending one for rum, returned to the governor,
-saying, ‘Your shilling bad, the man no take it.’ The governor believing
-him, gave him another; but soon returning in the same manner, with the
-second, the governor discerned his roguery; however, he exchanged that
-also, reserving his resentment for a proper opportunity. To be prepared
-for it, the governor wrote a letter directed to the keeper of Bridewell,
-in Boston, requesting him to take the bearer and give him a sound
-whipping. This he kept in his pocket, and in the course of a few days the
-Indian came again to stare at the workmen; the governor took no notice
-of him for some time, but at length taking the letter out of his pocket,
-and calling the Indian to him, said, ‘I will give you half a crown if you
-will carry this letter to Boston.’ The Indian closed with his proposal,
-and set out on his journey. He had not gone far, before he met with
-another Indian in the employ of the governor, to whom he gave the letter,
-and told him that the governor had sent him to meet him, and to bid him
-return with that letter to Boston, as soon as he possibly could.
-
-The poor fellow carried it with great diligence, and received a severe
-flogging for his pains; at the news of which, the governor was not a
-little astonished on his return. The other Indian came no more; but,
-after the lapse of some months, at a meeting with some of his nation, the
-governor saw him there among the rest, and asked him how he durst serve
-him such a trick? The Indian looking him full in the face, and putting
-his forefinger to his forehead, replied, ‘_Head work! governor, head
-work!_’
-
-
-
-
-MAGNANIMITY AND DISINTERESTED GENEROSITY: WITH STRIKING TRAITS IN THE
-SAVAGE CHARACTER.
-
-
-The Pawnee Loups (Wolf Pawnees) a tribe of Missouri savages, lately
-exhibited the anomaly among the American aborigines of a people addicted
-to the superstitious rite of offering human victims, in propitiation of
-‘_Venus, the Great Star_.’ The inhuman ceremony was annually performed at
-the period immediately preceding their horticultural operations, in order
-to insure a bountiful return from the earth:—the neglect of which duty,
-it was believed, would occasion a total failure of crops. To obviate,
-therefore, a national calamity so formidable, any person was at liberty
-to offer up a prisoner, of either sex, whom the fortune of war had placed
-in his power.
-
-The devoted individual was clad in the gayest attire, pampered with a
-profusion of the choicest food, and constantly attended by the conjurers,
-alias priests, who anticipated all his wants—cautiously concealed from
-him the real object of their sedulous attentions—and endeavoured to
-preserve his mind in a state of cheerful composure:—with the view of
-promoting obesity, and thus rendering the sacrifice more acceptable to
-their Ceres.
-
-When the victim was sufficiently fattened, a day was appointed for the
-sacrifice, that all might attend the celebration. In the presence of
-the assembled multitude, he was bound to a cross; a solemn dance was
-performed; and, after certain ceremonies, the warrior who had captured
-him, cleft his head with a tomahawk; and, at the same moment, numerous
-arrows were discharged at the body.
-
-It appears, this barbarous rite has lately been abolished. _Latelesha_,
-or Knife Chief, principal of the nation, having long regarded this
-sacrifice as cruel and unnecessary, had vainly endeavoured to wean his
-countrymen from the observance of it. At length an Iotan woman, brought
-captive into the village, was doomed to the Great Star. Having undergone
-the necessary treatment, she was bound to the cross. At this critical
-juncture, _Petalesharoo_, son of _Latelesha_, stepped forward, and
-declared, that it was his father’s wish to abolish a custom so inhuman;
-that, for his part, he was determined to release the victim, at the risk
-of his life. He now cut the cords that bound her, carried her swiftly
-through the crowd, and placed her on a horse; mounted another himself,
-and conveyed her beyond the reach of pursuit.
-
-Notwithstanding the success of this enterprise, it was reserved for
-another display of the firmness of this young warrior, to abolish the
-sanguinary sacrifice—we hope for ever. The succeeding spring, a Spanish
-boy was captured, and confided, by the warrior who took him, to the
-priests, to undergo the usual preparation for sacrifice. The Knife Chief
-consulted with his son how to avoid the repetition of the horrible rite.
-“_I_ will rescue the boy,” said _Petalesharoo_, “as a warrior ought—by
-force.” But the father, unwilling that his son should again expose
-himself to imminent danger, devised other means for rescuing the devoted
-victim:—that is, by ransom. For this purpose he repaired to a Mr. Pappon,
-then trading in the village, who generously contributed a quantity of
-merchandize. Other contributions were added by the Knife Chief himself,
-and by Petalesharoo, and other Indians. The whole was laid up in a heap,
-in the Chieftain’s lodge, and the warrior was summoned to attend.
-
-Latelesha, armed with his war-club, commanded the warrior to accept of
-the merchandize, as a ransom for the boy, or prepare for instant death.
-The warrior refused to comply: the chief flourished his club in the air.
-“Strike!” said Petalesharoo, “I will meet the vengeance of his friends.”
-But the more politic Chief preferred adding to the mass of merchandize
-a few more articles, in order to give the warrior another opportunity
-of complying, without breaking his word. The expedient succeeded. The
-goods were reluctantly accepted; the boy was liberated, and afterwards
-conducted to St. Louis by the traders. The merchandize was sacrificed in
-his place: the cloth was cut in shreds, and suspended on poles, and many
-of the valuables were consumed by fire, to appease and propitiate the
-Indian Ceres.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-TECUMSEH, WHEN A YOUTH.
-
-
-Tecumseh was one of the most remarkable men that has ever figured in
-our aboriginal history. He gained an ascendancy over the minds of his
-countrymen entirely by the commanding force of his character, and the
-persuasive power of his eloquence. These instruments enabled him to
-produce a degree of union and combination among the North-western tribes,
-by no means less remarkable than the confederacies which signalized the
-times of king Philip and of Pontiac. His brother, the prophet, was a
-pusillanimous driveller, compared with Tecumseh; and exerted all his
-influence by addressing the superstitious fears of his countrymen;
-whereas the great warrior addressed himself to the higher principles of
-their nature, and made successful appeals to their reason, and even to
-their humanity. Of the last we have a signal example in his arresting the
-massacre of the American prisoners at Fort Meigs.
-
-It has somewhere been observed, that “every circumstance relating to
-this extraordinary man will be read with interest.” We believe it, and
-therefore proceed with the following account, which appeared in a western
-periodical of 1826.
-
-“About thirty years ago (as the writer received the narrative from
-Captain Thomas Bryan, of Kentucky) the said Bryan was employed as a
-surveyor of the Virginia Military Lands, northwest of the Ohio river.
-While engaged in completing a chain of surveys, extending from the head
-waters of Brush Creek to those of Paint Creek (now the central part of
-the State of Ohio), his provisions became scant, and at length entirely
-exhausted. He directed his hunter—who had been unsuccessful on a recent
-excursion—to make another attempt to procure subsistence, and to meet him
-at a particular point then designated; where, after closing the labour of
-the day, he should encamp with his chain-men and marker.
-
-“Towards evening, the men became exhausted with hunger. They were in the
-heart of a solitary wilderness, and every circumstance was calculated to
-produce the greatest dejection of spirit. After making great exertions to
-reach the point designated, where they were to encamp upon their arrival,
-they met their hunter, who had been again unsuccessful. Feeling for
-himself and his comrades every emotion of a noble heart, he was alarmed
-for their situation. The hunter declared he had used every exertion in
-pursuit of game, but all his attempts were of no avail; that the whole
-forest appeared to him to be entirely destitute both of birds and beasts!
-Under these awful apprehensions of starvation, he knew that it would be
-a vain attempt to reach the settlement;—he trembled, and shed tears.
-Captain Bryan, at this critical juncture, felt his spirits roused at the
-reflection of their desperate situation; he thrust his jacob-staff in
-the earth, and ordered his men to prepare a camp, and make a good fire;
-he seizes the gun and ammunition of the unsuccessful hunter, and darted
-forth in pursuit of game. The weather had become exceedingly cold, for
-it was in the depth of winter—every rivulet was bound in ice. He had not
-proceeded far before he was gratified with the cheering sight of three
-elks, making towards him. He succeeded in killing two, and, shortly
-after, a bear. He now called for his men, and ordered his game to be
-carried to the camp. No one, but those similarly situated, can conceive
-the feelings excited on such an occasion.
-
-“But, perilous as the situation of the surveyor and his party might
-appear, there were others who were threatened with the like appalling
-distress. Three or four Indians, who had been out on a hunting excursion,
-hearing the report of Captain Bryan’s gun, made immediately in that
-direction, and had arrived at the camp before Bryan returned. On his
-appearance there, they informed him, as well as they could (some of
-them speaking a little English), of their wretched situation. They told
-him that, for three days, their whole party had subsisted on one skunk,
-and that was exhausted. They described the absence of the game, in the
-language of the hunter, as if “the whole forest was entirely destitute
-both of _birds_ and _beasts_.” They were informed by Captain Bryan,
-that he had plenty for himself, his men, and themselves; desired them
-to fix their camp, make a good fire, and assist his men in flaying the
-bear and elks, which were now brought into camp—and then to cut, carve,
-and cook for themselves. Their very looks were expressive of the joy
-they now felt for a deliverance so unexpected—nor did they spare the
-provisions. Their hunger was such, that, as soon as one round was served,
-another—another—and another, in succession—was greedily devoured.
-
-“A fine-looking, tall, dignified savage, then approached the surveyor’s
-camp—rather young in appearance than otherwise. He very gracefully
-stepped up to Captain Bryan (who was now reposing in his camp, on account
-of rheumatism, occasioned by his recent exposure), and informed him, that
-the old man in his camp was a Chief; that he felt under great obligations
-to the Great and Good Spirit for so signal an interposition in their
-favour; that he was about to make a prayer, and address the Good Spirit,
-and thank him: that it was the custom, on such occasions, for the Indians
-to stand up in their camp; and that his Chief requested the captain and
-his men, to conform, in like manner, by standing up in _their_ camp. The
-captain replied, that his men would all conform, and order should be
-preserved; but, as for himself, his affliction would compel him to keep
-his seat—but this must not be construed into disrespect. The captain
-remarked to me, that he was not himself a religious character, though a
-man of feeling.
-
-“The old Chief raised himself upon his feet, as did those around him;
-and, lifting up his hands, commenced his prayer and thanksgiving with
-an audible voice. And such an address to Deity, on such an occasion—as
-far as I could understand him—I never before heard flow from mortal lips!
-The tone—the modulation of his voice—the gestures—all corresponded to
-make a very deep impression upon us. In the course of his thanksgiving—as
-I gathered from the Indians—he recapitulated the doleful situation in
-which they were so recently placed—the awful horrors of starvation,
-with which they were threatened—the vain attempts they had made to
-procure food, until He, the Great and Good Spirit, had sent that good
-White man, and had crowned his exertions with success; and so directed
-him and them to meet, and to find plenty.” Who can fully describe the
-abundant overflowings of a grateful heart? He continued in this vehement
-strain for about half an hour, “when,” remarked Captain B., “my own men
-reflecting on their own recent situation, retrospecting what had taken
-place, and beholding the pious gratitude of a ‘Child of the Forest,’
-feeling the same sensations, they were melted into tenderness—if not into
-tears.”
-
-The person who so gracefully addressed Captain Bryan, in behalf of his
-Chief, was TECUMSEH.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN LOGIC.[6]
-
-
-A few years since, whilst the mistaken zeal of many good men, led them to
-think that their red brethren of the forest might be Christianized before
-they were civilized,—a missionary was sent out among them to convert
-them to the Christian faith. The missionary was unfortunately one of
-those preachers who delight in speculative and abstruse doctrines, and
-who teach the inefficacy of all human exertions in obtaining salvation.
-He called the Indians together to hear what he called the Gospel. The
-Sachem or Chief of the tribe to which he was sent, came with the rest.
-The missionary in the course of his sermon, (which was upon the very
-simple and intelligible doctrine of _election_) undertook to prove, that
-some were made to be saved, and some to be damned, without any regard
-to their good or bad conduct. As an illustration of his doctrine, he
-cited the case of Jacob and Esau, and attempted to show that God loved
-the one and hated the other before either of them was born. The Sachem
-heard him attentively, and after meeting invited him to his wigwam.
-After some conversation, the Sachem thus addressed the Missionary.
-“Sir, me tell you a story: My wife have two boys, twins; both of them
-as pretty as the two you tell me about to-day. One of them she love and
-feed him; the other she let lie on the ground crying. I tell her take
-him up, or he die. She no mind me. Pretty soon he die. Now what shall
-I do to her?”—Why, said the Missionary, she ought to be hung!—“Well,”
-said the Sachem, “then you go home and hang your God, for you say he do
-just so. You no preach any more here, unless you preach more good than
-this.” The Missionary finding himself amongst a people too enlightened to
-give credence to his narrow and heart-revolting principles, thought it
-expedient to seek a new field of labor.
-
-
-
-
-THE INDIAN AND THE DUTCH CLERGYMAN.
-
-
-A Dutch clergyman in the then province of New York, 1745, asked an
-Indian, whom he had baptized, whether he had been in Shekomeko, and had
-heard the Moravian missionary preach, and how he liked him? The Indian
-answered, ‘That he had been there, and had attended to the missionary’s
-words, and liked to hear them; that he would rather hear the missionary
-than him, for when the former spoke, it was as though his words laid hold
-of his heart, and a voice within said, ‘that is truth;’ but that _he_ was
-always playing about the truth, and never came to the point. That he had
-no love for their souls, for when he had once baptized them, he let them
-run wild, never troubling himself any further about them. That he acted
-much worse than one who planted Indian corn; for, added he, ‘the planter
-sometimes goes to see whether his corn grows or not.’
-
-
-
-
-“INDIAN, WHO IS YOUR CAPTAIN?”
-
-
-An English captain, in the year 1759, who was beating up for recruits in
-the neighbourhood of Bethlehem, met one day a Moravian Indian, and asked
-him whether ‘he had a mind to be a soldier.’ ‘No,’ answered he, ‘I am
-already engaged.’ ‘Who is your captain?’ asked the officer. ‘I have a
-very brave and excellent captain,’ replied the Indian, ‘his name is Jesus
-Christ; Him will I serve as long as I live: my life is at his disposal;’
-upon which the British officer suffered him to pass unmolested.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN BON MOT.
-
-
-One of the Moravian Indians who had been baptized by the name of
-Jonathan, meeting some white people, who had entered into so violent a
-dispute about baptism and the holy communion, that they at last proceeded
-to blows—‘These people,’ said he, ‘know nothing of our Saviour; for they
-speak of Him as we do of a strange country.’
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN FIDELITY.
-
-
-Some time after the commencement of the Revolutionary war, when the
-northern Indians were beginning to make inroads on the people living
-on the east side of the Ohio river, General O’Hara having come out to
-the upper Moravian town, on the Muskingum, on business and there taken
-lodging with a respectable and decent family of Indians in the village—I
-had one evening scarcely laid down to sleep when I was suddenly roused
-from my bed by an Indian runner, (or messenger) who in the night had been
-sent to me, 9 miles, with the following verbal message: “My friend, see
-that our friend O’Hara, now at your town, be immediately taken off to the
-settlement of white people, avoiding all paths leading to that river.
-Fail not in taking my advice, for there is no time to lose—and hear my
-son further on the subject.”
-
-The fact was, that eleven warriors from Sandusky, were far advanced on
-their way to take or murder O’Hara; who at break of day would be at this
-place for the purpose. I immediately sent for this gentleman, and told
-him that I would furnish him with a conductor, on whom he might depend,
-and having sent for Anthony, (otherwise called Luke Holland) informed him
-of the circumstance and requested his services; he (the Indian) wished
-first to know, whether my friend placed _confidence_ in him, and trusted
-to his fidelity; which question being answered by O’Hara himself, and to
-his full satisfaction; he replied,’well, our lives cannot be separated!
-we must stand or fall together! but take courage, for no enemy shall
-discover us!’
-
-The Indian then took Mr. O’Hara through the woods, and arriving within
-a short distance of the Ohio river, pointed out to him a hiding place,
-until he, by strolling up and down the river, should discover white
-people on the opposite shore; when finally observing a house where two
-white men were cleaning out a canoe for use, he hurried back to bring on
-his friend, who, when near the spot, advised his Indian conductor to hide
-himself, knowing those people to be bad men, he feared they might kill
-him, for his services. The Indian finally seeing his friend safe across
-the river, returned and made report thereof.
-
-The young Indian, who had been the bearer of the message from his father
-to me, had immediately returned on seeing O’Hara off, in order to play a
-further deception on the war party, for the purpose of preventing them
-even from going to our town, fearing, that if there, and not finding
-their object, they might probably hunt for his track, and finding this,
-pursue him. He indeed effected his purpose so completely, that while they
-were looking for him in one direction, his conductor was taking him off
-in another.
-
-[Illustration: Indian Friendship.]
-
-The father of the young lad, who was the principal cause that O’Hara’s
-life had been saved, had long been admired by all who knew him for his
-_philanthropy_; on account of which the traders had given him the name
-of “_the gentleman_.” Otherwise this Indian was not in connection with
-the Christian Indian Society, though a friend to them. He lived with his
-family retired and in a decent manner.
-
-While I feel a delight in offering to the relatives and friends of the
-deceased, as also to the public, this _true_ and _faithful_ picture of
-Indian _fidelity_—I regret that, on necessarily having had to recur
-to the names ‘Anthony’ and ‘Luke Holland,’ I am drawn from scenes of
-pleasure, to crimes of the _blackest hue_. The very Indian just named,
-who at that time joyfully reported to me his having conducted his friend
-out of danger, to a place of safety, some years after approached me with
-the doleful news that every one of his children, (all minors) together
-with his hoary headed parents, _had been murdered by the white people_,
-at Gradenhutten, on the Muskingum.
-
- JOHN HECKELWELDER.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN HOSPITALITY.
-
-
-I can give, says Colden, in his history of the five Indian Nations, two
-strong instances of the hospitality of the Mohawks, which fell under my
-own observation; and which will show, that they have the very same notion
-of hospitality which we find in the ancient poets. When I was last in the
-Mohawk’s country, the sachems told me that they had an Englishman among
-their people, a servant who had run away from his master in New York. I
-immediately told them they must deliver him up. ‘No,’ they answered, ‘we
-never serve any man so, who puts himself under our protection.’ On this
-I insisted on the injury they did thereby to his master: they allowed it
-might be an injury, and replied, ‘Though we will never deliver him up,
-we are willing to pay the value of the servant to the master.’ Another
-man made his escape from the jail in Albany, where he was in prison on
-an execution of debt: the Mohawks received him, and, as they protected
-him against the sheriff and officers they not only paid the debt for him,
-but gave him land over and above, sufficient for a good farm, whereon he
-lived when I was last there.
-
-
-
-
-KINDNESS OF AN INDIAN HUSBAND.
-
-
-There was a famine in the land, and a sick Indian woman expressed a great
-desire for a mess of Indian corn. Her husband having heard that a trader
-at Lower Sandusky had a little, set off on horseback for that place, one
-hundred miles distant, and returned with as much corn as filled the crown
-of his hat, for which he gave his horse in exchange, and came home on
-foot, bringing his saddle back with him.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN RECORDS.
-
-
-At certain seasons the Indians meet to study the meaning, and renew their
-ideas of their strings and belts of wampum. On such occasions, they sit
-down around the place in which they are deposited, and taking out a
-string or belt, one after another, hand them to every person present;
-and in order that they may all comprehend its meaning, repeat the words
-pronounced on the delivery, in their whole connexion. By these means
-they are enabled to remember the promises reciprocally made; and, as
-they admit young boys who are related to the chiefs, they become early
-acquainted with all their national concerns; and thus the contents of
-their wampum documents are transmitted to their posterity. The following
-instance may serve to show how well this mode of communication answers
-the purpose of refreshing the memory:—A gentleman in Philadelphia, once
-gave an Indian a string of wampum, saying, ‘I am your friend, and will
-serve you to the utmost of my power.’ Forty years after, the Indian
-returned the string, adding, ‘Brother, you gave me this string of wampum,
-saying, I am your friend, and will serve you to the utmost of my power.’
-‘I am now aged, infirm, and poor; do now as you promised.’ The gentleman
-honourably redeemed his promise, and generously assisted the old Indian.
-
-
-
-
-BURNING OF BROOKFIELD.
-
-
-It has been remarked, that the history of every incursion of the Indians
-into the territory of the whites may be written in the words _surprise_,
-_massacre_, _plunder_ and _retreat_. They fall upon the defenceless
-village in the dead of night, “as falls the plague on men,” or as the
-lightning falls on the forest. No vigilance seems to have been sufficient
-effectually to guard against these attacks, and no prudence or foresight
-could avert them. The Indians made their approaches to the isolated
-villages by creeping cautiously through the surrounding woods in the
-dead of night. The outposts were seized, and the sentinels silently
-tomahawked, ere the war-whoop roused the sleeping families from their
-beds.
-
-During the early settlements of New England, the inhabitants suffered
-much from the incursions of the Indians. The most celebrated war,
-perhaps, which ever took place with the natives, however, was King
-Philip’s war. During its continuance, the town of Brookfield,
-Massachusetts, was attacked. The inhabitants collected in one house which
-was immediately besieged by the savages, who set fire instantly to every
-other building in the town. For two days and nights the Indians shot upon
-the people in the house incessantly, but were met with a most determined
-defence on the part of the besieged. They then attempted to fire the
-house by flaming torches at the ends of long poles; but the garrison
-continued to defend themselves by firing from the windows, and throwing
-water upon the flames, as they fortunately had a pump within the house.
-These attempts failing, the Indians then prepared a cart loaded with
-flax, hemp, and other combustible matters, and under cover of a barricade
-of boards, thrust the burning mass, by means of long timbers, against
-the house. In this movement one of the wheels came off, which turned
-the machine aside, and exposed the Indians to the fire of the garrison;
-a shower of rain coming on at the same time extinguished the flames.
-Shortly afterwards a reinforcement of forty men arrived from Boston,
-forced their way through the enemy, and joined the garrison. The Indians
-then abandoned the siege and retired, having suffered a heavy loss.
-
-
-
-
-THE HEROIC COLLAPISSA.
-
-
-In the heart of the savage, there are some noble and redeeming qualities;
-he can be faithful, even unto death, to the friend or the stranger who
-has dwelt beneath his roof, or sat under the shadow of the same tree. He
-can be generous also; can endure all tortures, rather than show weakness
-or fear.
-
-“An instance of this occurred,” says Bossu, “when the French were in
-possession of New Orleans: a Chactaw, speaking very ill of them, said
-the Collapissas were their slaves; one of the latter, vexed at such
-words, killed him with his gun. The nation of Chactaws, the greatest and
-most numerous on the continent, armed immediately, and sent deputies to
-New Orleans to ask for the head of the murderer, who had put himself
-under the protection of the French. They offered presents to make up the
-quarrel, but the cruel people would not accept any! they even threatened
-to destroy the village of the Collapissas. To prevent the effusion of
-blood, the unhappy Indian was delivered up to them: the Sieur Ferrand
-was charged with the commission. The Indian was called Tichou; he stood
-upright in the midst of his own people and of his enemies, and said,
-“I am a true man, that is, I do not fear death; but I pity the fate of
-a wife and four children, whom I leave behind me very young; and of
-my father and mother, who are old, and for whom I got subsistence by
-hunting.” (He was the best hunter in the nation.)
-
-He had hardly spoken the last word of this short speech, when his father,
-penetrated with his son’s love, rose amidst the people, and spoke as
-follows:—
-
-“It is through courage that my son dies; but, being young and full of
-vigour, he is more fit than myself to provide for his mother, wife, and
-four little children: it is therefore necessary he should stay on earth
-to take care of them. As to myself, I am near the end of my career; I am
-no longer fit for anything: I cannot go like the roebuck, whose course
-is like the winds, unseen; I cannot sleep like the hare, with my ears
-never shut; but I have lived as a man, and will die as such, therefore I
-go to take his place.”
-
-At these words, his wife, his son, his daughter-in-law, and their little
-children, shed tears round the brave old man: he embraced them for the
-last time. The relations of the dead Chactaw accepted the offer; after
-that, he laid himself on the trunk of a tree, and his head was cut off
-with one stroke of a hatchet. Every thing was made up by this death; but
-the young man was obliged to give them his father’s head: in taking it
-up, he said to it, “Pardon me thy death, and remember me in the country
-of spirits.”
-
-All the French who assisted at this event were moved even to tears, and
-admired this noble old man. A people among whom such things could be
-done, hardly deserved the sweeping censures of Mather and other good
-men, who painted them rather as fiends in human shape. Courage is, of
-course, the virtue held in most honour: those who run away or desert in
-an action are not punished, they are considered as the disgrace of human
-nature: the ugliest girls will not accept of them for husbands: they are
-obliged to let their hair grow, and to wear an alcoman, or apron, like
-the women. “I saw one of them,” says Bossu, who dwelt a long time among
-the Indians “who, being ashamed of his figure, went by himself to fight
-the Chicachas, for his misery was more than he could bear: for three or
-four days he went on creeping like a snake, and hiding himself in the
-great grass, without eating or drinking; so he came to their country, and
-watched a long time to do some exploit; often lying down in the rushes,
-when his enemies came near, and putting out his head above the water
-from time to time, to take breath. At last he drew near a village in the
-night, cried the cry of death, killed one of the people, and then fled
-with the speed of an arrow. He was out three months upon this expedition:
-when he drew nigh to his own village, weary, and bearing the head of his
-enemy, they came down the hill to meet him. The women were loud in his
-praises—the warriors gathered round him; and then they gave him a wife.”
-
-
-
-
-JOHN ELIOT’S FIRST MISSION TO THE INDIANS.
-
-
-On the 28th of October, 1646, Eliot set out from his home, in Roxbury,
-Massachusetts, in company with three friends, to the nearest Indian
-settlement: he had previously sent to give this tribe notice of his
-coming, and a very large number was collected from all quarters. If
-the savages expected the coming of their guest, of whose name they had
-often heard, to be like that of a warrior or sachem, they were greatly
-deceived. They saw Eliot on foot, drawing near, with his companions;
-his translation of the scriptures, like a calumet of peace and love, in
-his hand. He was met by their chief, Waubon who conducted him to a large
-wigwam. After a short rest, Eliot went into the open air and standing on
-a grassy mound, while the people formed around him in all the stillness
-of strong surprise and curiosity, he prayed in the English tongue, as if
-he could not address heaven in a language both strange and new. And then
-he preached for an hour in their own tongue, and gave a clear and simple
-account of the religion of Christ, of his character and life, of the
-blessed state of those who believed in him.
-
-Of what avail would it have been to set before this listening people
-the terrors of the Almighty, and the doom of the guilty? This wise man
-knew, by long experience as a minister, that the heart loves better to
-be persuaded than terrified—to be melted than alarmed. The whole career
-of the Indian’s life tended to freeze up the finer and softer feelings,
-and make the more dark and painful passions familiar to him. He resolved
-to strike a new chord, and when he saw the tear stream down their stern
-faces, and the haughty head sink low on the breast, as he painted the
-ineffable love of Christ, he said it was “a glorious and affecting
-spectacle to see a company of perishing forlorn outcasts, so drinking
-in the word of salvation.” The impressions this discourse produced,
-were of a very favourable nature: as far as the chief, Waubon, was
-concerned, they were never effaced. Afterwards the guest passed several
-hours conversing with the Indians, and answering their questions. When
-night came, he returned to the tent with the chief, and the people
-entered their wigwams, or lay down around, and slept on the grass. What
-were Eliot’s feelings on this night? At last, the longing of years was
-accomplished; the fruit of his prayers was given to him.
-
-“Could the walls of his loved study speak,” says his friend, “they would
-tell of the entreaties poured forth before the Lord, of the days and
-nights set apart with fasting—that thus, thus it might be.” A few of the
-chiefs’ friends alone remained, after the people were retired. One of the
-Christians perceived an Indian, who was hanging down his head, weeping;
-the former went to him, and spoke encouraging words, after which he
-turned his face to the wall, and wept yet more abundantly: soon after,
-he rose and went out. “When they told me of his tears,” said Eliot, “we
-resolved to go forth, and follow him into the wood, and speak to him.
-The proud Indian’s spirit was quite broken: at last we parted, greatly
-rejoicing for such sorrowing.”
-
-He now resolved to continue his labours; but, on the 26th of November,
-when he met the assembly of the Indians for the third time, he found
-that, though many of them had constructed wigwams at the place of
-meeting, for the more readily attending his ministry, his audience was
-not so numerous as on the former occasions. The Powahs (or soothsayers)
-had strictly charged the people not to listen to the instructions of the
-English, and threatened them with death in case of disobedience. Having
-warned his auditors against the impositions of these men, he proceeded to
-discourse as formerly, and was heard with the greatest attention. “It is
-wonderful,” observed one of his friends, “to see what a little light will
-effect, even upon hearts and spirits most incapable.”
-
-On the night after this third meeting, many were gathered in the tent,
-looking earnestly at Eliot, with the solemn gravity and stillness which
-these savages affected; when the chief, Waubon, suddenly rose, and began
-to instruct all the company out of the things he had heard that day from
-Eliot, with the wild and impressive eloquence of the desert. And waking
-often that night, he many times was heard speaking to some or other of
-his people, of the words of truth and mercy that he had heard.
-
-Two or three days after these impressions had been made, Eliot saw that
-they were likely to be attended with permanent consequences. Wampas,
-an intelligent Indian, came with two of his companions to the English,
-and desired to be admitted into their families. He brought his son, and
-several other children with him, and begged that they might be educated
-in the Christian faith: the example quickly spread and all the Indians
-who were present at the fourth meeting, on the 9th of December, offered
-their children to be instructed.
-
-The missionary was himself surprised at the success of his first efforts,
-as well as at his facility of preaching and conversing in the Indian
-tongue; it was the reward of his long and patient application. “To think
-of raising,” says Mather, “these hideous creatures unto the elevations
-of our holy religion, must argue a more than common or little soul
-in the undertaker: could he see any thing angelical to encourage his
-labours?—all was diabolical among them.”
-
-Eliot saw that they must be civilized ere they could be christianized;
-that he must make men of them, ere he could hope to see them saints. It
-is, no doubt, far easier and more flattering to the soul of the agent, to
-see men weep and tremble beneath his word, than to teach them to build,
-to plant, to rear the walls and the roof-tree, and sit at their own
-hearth-side: this is slow and painful work for a man of lofty mind and
-glowing enthusiasm. But in his own words, “he abhorred that he should sit
-still, and let that work alone;” and lost no time in addressing himself
-to the General Court of the colony, in behalf of those who showed a
-willingness to be placed under his care. His application was successful;
-and the Indians, having received a grant of land on which they might
-build a town, and enjoy the Christian instruction which they desired, met
-together, and gave their assent to several laws which he had framed, to
-enforce industry and decency—to secure personal and domestic comfort.
-
-The ground of the town having been marked out, Eliot advised the Indians
-to surround it with ditches and a stone wall; gave them instruments
-to aid these objects, and such rewards, in money, as induced them to
-work hard. It was a strange and novel thing to see these men of the
-wilderness, to whom a few months previous all restraint was slavery,
-and their lakes and forests dearer than the palaces of kings, submit
-cheerfully to this drudgery of bricks and mortar—chief as well as serf;
-the very hands that were lately red with slaughter, scooping the earth
-at the bidding of Eliot, from morn to night. He soon had the pleasure of
-seeing Nonanetum completed.
-
-The progress of civilization which followed, was remarkable for its
-extent and rapidity: the women were taught to spin, and they soon found
-something to send to the nearest markets all the year round: in winter
-they sold staves, baskets, and poultry; in spring and summer fish,
-grapes, strawberries, &c.
-
-In the mean while, he instructed the men in husbandry, and the more
-simple mechanical arts: in hay-time and harvest, he went forth into the
-fields with them. All this was not done in a day, for they were neither
-so industrious nor so capable of hard labour as those who had been
-accustomed to it from early life.
-
-
-
-
-AN INDIAN FUNERAL AT NONANETUM.
-
-
-At a funeral, on the 7th of October, 1647, a change in the usages and
-prejudices of the Indians was evinced in a striking manner. The deceased
-was a man of some consequence. Their custom had been to mourn much for
-the dead, and to appear overcome with grief, especially when the earth
-shrouded them from their sight. The departed was borne to the grave on
-a light bier, and interred in a sitting posture; in his hand was placed
-a calumet and some tobacco, that he might present the ensigns of peace
-to the people of another world. If the corpse was that of a warrior, his
-quiver full of arrows, a bow, and a hatchet, were placed by his side,
-and also a little mirror, that he might see how his face looked after
-passing through the region of death; and a little vermilion to take
-away its extreme paleness. His was a bold hand that could at once tear
-aside these loved usages, and make the dust of the warrior of no more
-consequence than that of the meanest of his followers. The cemetery of
-the new town was in the woods, and the procession of all the inhabitants
-moved slowly beneath their shadow, in deep and solemn silence, with the
-missionary at their head: no wail was heard—no wild gush of sorrow. To
-estimate this sacrifice, it is necessary to recur to the Indian belief,
-“that after death they should go to a very fertile country, where they
-were to have many wives, and, above all, lovely places for hunting:”
-often, no doubt, the shadowy chase of the bear and the stag came on the
-dreams of the dying man; and afterwards, beautiful women would welcome
-him, weary to his home. When the dead was laid in the grave, Eliot read
-the funeral service over him, and then told the many people, that in
-heaven they neither married nor were given in marriage; that the passions
-of this world, the wild chase or the warrior’s joy, could never come
-there; _there_ was neither chieftain nor slave; that in the love of
-Christ, who was the resurrection and the life, all these things would be
-lost. And they believed him—those fierce and brutal men—and wept, not
-for the dead, but for themselves; “so that the woods,” says a gentleman
-who was present, “rang with their sighs and prayers;” he also adds these
-words,—“God was with Eliot, and the sword of his word will pierce deep,
-in the hand of the mighty.” His opinion of the mental powers of this
-people was not a very low one:—“There is need,” he says, in one of his
-letters, “of learning, in ministers who preach to Indians, much more than
-to Englishmen and gracious Christians; for these had sundry philosophical
-questions, which some knowledge of the arts must help to give answer to,
-and without which they would not have been satisfied. Worse than Indian
-ignorance hath blinded their eyes, that renounce learning as an enemy
-to gospel ministers”. So acute were many of the questions proposed by
-the Indians, and so deeply expressive of a gentler and better nature,
-that more than one educated stranger was induced to attend regularly the
-assemblies of the missionary.
-
-
-
-
-LOVEWELL’S FIGHT.
-
-
-Captain John Lovewell, of Dunstable, raised a volunteer company and
-met with great success. At one time he fell in with an Indian trail
-and pursued it till he discovered them asleep on the bank of a pond.
-They were all killed, and their scalps, stretched upon hoops, served to
-decorate their triumphal return. They, of course, received the bounty,
-which amounted to ten pounds.
-
-(1725.) Lovewell, having augmented his company to 46 men, again set out
-with the intention of attacking an Indian town on the Saco. They built a
-fort on the Great Ossapy pond, and then proceeded, leaving one of their
-number sick, and eight men to guard the fort.
-
-When about 22 miles from the fort they rested on the banks of a pond,
-where they discovered a single Indian at a distance, on a point of land,
-and rightly judging that he was attached to a large party of Indians,
-Lovewell determined to advance and attack them. Accordingly the whole
-company threw off their packs in one place among the brakes; and, to
-gain the advantage, the men were spread so as partially to surround the
-water. Lovewell had, however, mistaken the position of the Indians, who
-were already on his track, and coming to the place where the packs were
-deposited, by counting them discovered the number of English to be less
-than their own. They, therefore marched to assault the English in the
-rear, and actually hemmed them in between the mouth of a brook, a rocky
-point, a deep bog, and the pond. The company, completely surrounded,
-fought desperately till nightfall, when the Indians, tired of the
-conflict, moved off. The number of killed and wounded amounted to 23,
-Lovewell being among the former. The remainder of the party returned to
-the fort which had been deserted, in consequence of the arrival of one
-of Lovewell’s men who fled at the beginning of the fight, and reported
-all the rest killed. After resting, they started for home, where they
-arrived, to the great joy of their friends, after enduring the severest
-hardships. The survivors were liberally compensated, and the widows and
-families of the slain were provided for by the government of the province.
-
-
-
-
-COTTON MATHER’S ACCOUNT OF THE INDIANS OF HIS TIME.
-
-
-“These shiftless Indians,” says Mather, “their housing is nothing but a
-few mats tied about poles fastened into the earth, where a good fire is
-their bed-clothes in the coldest season: their diet has not a greater
-dainty; a handful of meal and a spoonful of water being their food for
-many days; for they depend on the produce of their hunting and fishing,
-and badly cultivated grounds: thus they are subject to long fastings.
-They have a cure for some diseases, even a little cave: after they have
-terribly heated it, a crew of them go and sit there with the priest,
-looking in the heat and smoke like so many fiends, and then they rush
-forth on a sudden, and plunge into the water: how they escape death,
-instead of getting cured, is marvellous; they are so slothful, that their
-poor wives must plant, and build, and beat their corn. All the religion
-they have is a belief in many gods, who made the different nations of the
-world, but chiefly in one great one of the name of Kicktan, who dwelt in
-the south-west regions of the heavens, who created the original parents
-of mankind, who, though never seen by the eye of man, was entitled to
-their gratitude, that we have in us immortal souls, which, if good,
-should go to a splendid entertainment with Kicktan; but, otherwise, must
-wander about in a restless horror for ever.”
-
-
-
-
-THE VALIANT OLD MOHAWK.
-
-
-(1696.) On one occasion, when Count Frontignac succeeded in capturing a
-Mohawk fort, it was found deserted of all its inhabitants except a sachem
-in extreme old age, who sat with the composure of an ancient Roman in
-his capitol, and saluted his civilized compeer in age and infirmity, with
-dignified courtesy and venerable address. Every hand was instantly raised
-to wound and deface his time-stricken frame and while French and Indian
-knives were plunged into his body, he recommended to his Indian enemies
-rather to burn him with fire, that he might teach their French allies how
-to suffer like men. “Never, perhaps,” says Charlevoix, “was a man treated
-with more cruelty; nor ever did any endure it with superior magnanimity
-and resolution.”
-
-
-
-
-OPECHANCANOUGH’S LAST WAR.
-
-
-Opechancanough was by no means backward in taking advantage of the
-repose afforded by the treaty of 1632. For the long period which
-elapsed between its conclusion and his final effort, in 1644, he
-was industriously occupied in making preparations for a renewal of
-hostilities. An opportunity at length presented itself for executing his
-long-cherished purpose. The colony was involved in intestine dissensions.
-An insurrection had taken place in consequence of the unpopularity of the
-governor, and at a moment when the people were occupied with internal
-disorders and heedless of danger from without, their great enemy struck a
-powerful and almost fatal blow.
-
-He was now advanced to extreme old age, being supposed to have numbered
-nearly a hundred years, but the powers of his mind were still so
-vigorous, that he was the leading spirit of a confederacy embracing
-all the Indian tribes distributed over a space of country six hundred
-miles in extent. Unable to walk, he was borne in a litter to the scene
-of action (April 18th, 1644,) and thus led his warriors to the attack.
-Such was the skill with which his measures had been concerted that the
-whole force of the Indians commenced their operations upon the entire
-line of the frontier at the same instant of time, with the intention of
-carrying a war of extermination down to the sea, and thus annihilating
-the colony at a single blow. In two days, five hundred persons had fallen
-in the massacre. Of course, every operation of industry was instantly
-abandoned, and all who were able to bear arms were embodied to oppose
-so terrible an invasion. Governor Berkeley, at the head of a chosen
-force, consisting of every twentieth man in the colony, marched into the
-enemy’s country, and thus gave him the first check. Of the details of the
-campaign, in consequence of the confusion and distress prevailing at the
-time, no details are furnished by the contemporary historians. Beverly’s
-account, the only one which survived the ravages of the time, is meagre
-and unsatisfactory. One result of the war, however, is sufficiently well
-attested, since it terminated the horrors of the season. This was the
-capture of the aged Opechancanough, who was surprised and taken prisoner
-by a squadron of horse under the command of Governor Berkeley, who
-forthwith conducted him in triumph to James-Town.
-
-It was the governor’s intention to have sent this remarkable person
-to England; but he was shot after being taken prisoner, by a soldier,
-in resentment of the calamities he had inflicted on the province. He
-lingered under the wound for several days, and died with the pride and
-firmness of an old Roman. Indignant at the crowds who came to gaze at
-him on his deathbed, he exclaimed; “If I had taken Sir William Berkeley
-prisoner, I would not have exposed him as a show to the people.” Perhaps
-he remembered that he had saved the life of Captain Smith, and forgot the
-numberless instances in which he had exposed other prisoners to public
-derision and lingering torture.
-
-After the decease of their great enemy, the colonists had no difficulty
-in concluding a treaty with the Indians, which gave tranquillity to the
-province for a long term of years.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-THE BURNING OF SCHENECTADY.
-
-
-The incursions of the Indians on our frontiers in early times were
-usually the result of Spanish influence in the South, or French influence
-in the North. The French reduced the incitement of Indian hostilities to
-a complete system, and their officers and soldiers were not ashamed to
-accompany the savages in their murdering and marauding expeditions into
-New England and New York. Among all the recorded instances of this kind,
-none appears to have been attended with more atrocious circumstances
-of cruelty and rapine, than the burning of Schenectady. This affair is
-marked by many traits of the very worst description. The inhumanity of
-murdering in their beds the very people who had formerly relieved their
-wants, is, perhaps, without a parallel.
-
-In 1690, Count de Frontignac, governor general of Canada, sent out
-three expeditions against the American colonies. The first of these
-proceeded against Schenectady, then a small village, situated on the
-Mohawk river. This party, after wandering for twenty-two days through
-deserts rendered trackless by snow, approached the village of Schenectady
-in so exhausted a condition, that they had determined to surrender
-themselves to the inhabitants as prisoners of war. But, arriving at a
-late hour on an inclement night, and hearing from the messengers they
-had sent forward that the inhabitants were all in bed, without even the
-precaution of a public watch, they exchanged their intention of imploring
-mercy to themselves, for a plan of nocturnal attack and massacre of
-the defenceless people, to whose charity their own countrymen had once
-been so highly indebted. This detestable requital of good with evil
-was executed with a barbarity which, of itself, must be acknowledged
-to form one of the most revolting and terrific pictures that has ever
-been exhibited of human cruelty and ferocity. Dividing themselves into
-a number of parties, they set fire to the village in various places,
-and attacked the inhabitants with fatal advantage when, alarmed by the
-conflagration, they endeavoured to escape from their burning houses. The
-exhausted strength of the Frenchmen appeared to revive with the work of
-destruction, and to gather energy from the animated horror of the scene.
-Not only were all the male inhabitants they could reach put to death,
-but women were murdered, and their infants dashed on the walls of the
-houses. But either the delay caused by this elaborate cruelty, or the
-more merciful haste of the flames to announce the calamity to those who
-might still fly from the assassins, enabled many of the inhabitants to
-escape. The efforts of the assailants were also somewhat impeded by a
-sagacious discrimination which they thought it expedient to exercise.
-Though unmindful of benefits, they were not regardless of policy: and of
-a number of Mohawk Indians who were in the village, not one sustained
-an injury. Sixty persons perished in the massacre, and twenty-seven
-were taken prisoners. Of the fugitives who escaped half naked, and made
-their way through a storm of snow to Albany, twenty-five lost their limbs
-from the intensity of the frost. The French, having totally destroyed
-Schenectady, retired loaded with plunder from a place where, we think,
-it must be acknowledged that even the accustomed atrocities of Indian
-warfare had been outdone.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-REMARKABLE CUSTOM OF THE NATCHES.
-
-
-The Natches were a very considerable nation; they formed several
-villages, that were under some peculiar chief, and these obeyed one
-superior of the whole nation. All these chiefs bore the name of suns;
-they adored that luminary, and carried his image on their breasts, rudely
-carved. The manner in which the Natches rendered divine service to the
-sun has something solemn in it. The high-priest got up at break of day,
-and marched at the head of the people with a grave pace, the calumet of
-peace in his hand. He smoked in honour of the sun, and blew the first
-mouthful of smoke towards him; when he rose above the horizon, they
-howled by turns after the high-priests, and contemplated it with their
-arms extended to heaven. They had a temple in which they kept up an
-eternal fire.
-
-So proud were these chiefs, who pretended to trace their origin to the
-sun, that they had a law, by which every Natchez, who had married a
-girl of the blood of the suns, must follow her in death, as soon as she
-had breathed her last. There was an Indian, whose name was Etteacteal;
-he dearly loved a daughter of one of these suns, and married her; but
-the consequence of this honour had nearly proved very fatal to him. His
-wife fell sick: he watched over her day and night, and with many tears
-he besought her not to die, and they prayed together to Wachil, or the
-sun, that he would spare her life; at last he saw her at the point of
-death, and then he fled: for the moment she ceased to breathe, he was to
-be slain. He embarked in a piragua on the Mississippi, and came to New
-Orleans. He put himself under the protection of M. de Bienville, the then
-governor, who interested himself for him with the Natches; they declared
-that he had nothing more to fear.
-
-Etteacteal, being thus assured, resolved to return to his nation; and,
-without settling among them, made several voyages thither; he happened to
-be there, when the chief called the Stung Serpent, brother to the head of
-the nation, died; he was a relation of the late wife of Etteacteal, and
-the people resolved to make the latter pay his debt, and arrested him.
-When he found himself in the hut of the grand chief of war, he gave vent
-to the excess of his grief.
-
-The favourite wife of the deceased Stung Serpent, who was likewise to be
-sacrificed, and who saw the preparations for her death with firmness,
-hearing the complaints and groans of Etteacteal, said to him, “Art thou
-no warrior?” he said, “Yes, I am one.” “However,” said she, “thou criest,
-life is dear to thee; and as that is the case, it is not good that thou
-shouldst go along with me—go with the women.” Etteacteal replied, “True,
-life is dear to me: it would be well if I walked yet on earth; wait, O
-wait till the death of the great sun, and I will die with him.” “Go
-thy way,” she said, “it is not fit that thou die with me, and thy heart
-remain behind on earth; the warriors will obey my word, for now, so near
-to the Spirit of life, I am full of power: go away, and let me see thee
-no more.” He did not stay to have this order repeated; he disappeared
-like lightning. Three old women, two of whom were his relations, offered
-to pay his debt; their age and their infirmities had disgusted them with
-life, none of them had been able to walk for a great while; but the hair
-of the two that were related to Etteacteal, was no more grey than that
-of young women; the third was a hundred and twenty years old; they were
-sacrificed in the evening, at the going down of the sun.
-
-The generosity of these women gave the Indian life again, acquired
-him the degree of _Considered_, and cleared his honour, that had been
-sullied by his fearing death. The hour being come for the sacrifice of
-the favourite wife of the deceased chief, she came forth, and called her
-children round her, while the people stood a little way off: “Children,”
-she said, “this is the day on which I am to tear myself from your arms,
-and to follow your father’s steps, who waits for me in the country of
-the spirits; if I were to yield to your tears, I should injure my love,
-and fail in my duty. I have done enough for you by bearing you next to
-my heart, and by suckling you with my breasts. You that are descended of
-his blood, and fed by my milk, ought you to shed tears? rejoice, rather,
-that you are suns and warriors: go, my children, I have provided for
-all your wants, by procuring you friends; my friends, and those of your
-father, are yours too. And you, Frenchmen,” she added, turning herself
-towards our officers, “I recommend my orphan children to you;—you ought
-to protect them; we shall be longer friends in the country of the spirits
-than here, because we do not die there again. And now the day is sinking
-behind the hills; yet a few moments, my husband, and I come!”
-
-Moved by these words, a noble woman came to join herself to the favourite
-wife, of her own accord, being engaged, she said, by the friendship she
-bore the Stung Serpent, to follow him into the other world. The Europeans
-called her the Haughty Lady, on account of her majestic deportment,
-and proud and beautiful features: on this account the French officers
-regretted very much her resolve, and strove to dissuade her from it, but
-in vain: the moving sight filled them all with grief and horror.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-PONTIAC.
-
-
-Great as were many of the western Indian warriors, none was greater than
-Pontiac, a chief whose fame was not only spread throughout America, but
-widely diffused in Europe. He was the chief of all the Indians on the
-chain of lakes: the Ottawas, to which he belonged, the Miamis, Chippewas,
-Wyandots, Pottawatomies, Winnebagoes, Shawanese, Ottagamies, and
-Mississagas, all of which tribes afterwards were led by Tecumseh. Pontiac
-is said to have possessed a majestic and princely appearance, so pleasing
-to the Indians, and this in part accounts for his popularity among them.
-
-In 1760, after the capture of Quebec, Major Rogers was sent into the
-country of Pontiac to drive the French from it. Being informed of his
-approach, Pontiac sent word to him to wait until he came to him. The
-major waited, and when Pontiac came, that chief asked him why he entered
-his dominions without permission. The major answered that he came not
-against the natives but the French; and at the same time gave the chief
-several belts of wampum; whereupon Pontiac replied, “I stand in the path
-you travel until to-morrow morning.” By this was meant that he must
-not proceed until the next morning. Upon an offer of the Indian, Major
-Rogers bought a large quantity of parched corn, and other provisions.
-The next day Pontiac offered him every facility for the undertaking.
-Messengers were sent to the different tribes to assure them that the
-English had his permission to pass through the country, and he even
-accompanied the major and troops as far as Detroit. He was noted for the
-desire of knowledge, and while the English were in his country, he was
-very curious in examining their arms, clothes, &c., and expressed a wish
-to go to England. He said that he would allow white settlements within
-his domains; and was willing to call the king of England _uncle_ but not
-master. He further told the soldiers that they must behave themselves
-peaceably while in his country, or he would stop the way.
-
-Pontiac had distinguished himself at Detroit and Michillimackinac.
-When the French gave up Canada (1760), their Indian allies still
-preserved their hatred towards the English, and as Pontiac was the most
-considerable enemy of that nation, the adjacent tribes _all came_ to him
-as a support against them. Pontiac had advanced farther in civilization
-than any of the neighbouring chiefs: he appointed a commissary during
-the war of 1763, called Pontiac’s war; and issued bills of credit, on
-each of which was pictured the thing desired, and the figure of an otter,
-the symbol of his tribe. In 1763 Major Rogers sent a bottle of brandy to
-him, which Pontiac was counselled not to drink, as it probably contained
-poison. But with the greatest magnanimity he exclaimed, “It is not in his
-power to _kill him_ who has so lately saved his life.”
-
-
-
-
-THE IDOL OF THE PEORIAS. (FROM AN OLD TRAVELLER.)
-
-
-“We arrived at the village of the Peorias, allies of the Illinois,
-through a fine large meadow, which is many leagues long. This village is
-situated on the banks of a little river, and surrounded with great pales
-and posts: there are many trees on the banks, and the huts are built
-beneath them. When we arrived there, I inquired for the hut of the grand
-chief: I was well received by him and his first warriors. They had just
-been beaten by the Foxes, their mortal enemies, and were now holding a
-consultation about it. A young Indian lighted the calumet of peace; then
-they brought me a dish of maize flour, called sagamité, sweetened with
-the syrup of the maple-tree; and afterwards a dessert of dry fruits, as
-good as Corinth raisins. The next day I saw a great crowd in the plain:
-they were for making a dance in favour of their new Manitou; the high
-priest had a bonnet of feathers, like a crown, on his head. I was at the
-door of the temple of their false deity; he begged me to go in. Judge of
-my astonishment, for this is the picture of their Manitou: his head hung
-upon his breast, and looked like a goat’s; his ears and his cruel eye
-were like those of a lynx, with the same kind of hair; his feet, hands,
-and thighs were in form something like those of a man.
-
-“The Indians found him in the woods, at the foot of a ridge of
-mountains, and the priests had persuaded them to adopt him for a
-divinity. This general assembly was called, to invoke his protection
-against their enemies. I let the Indians know that their Manitou was an
-evil genius; as a proof of it, I said that he had just permitted the
-nation of Foxes, their most cruel enemies, to gain a victory over them,
-and they ought to get rid of him as soon as possible, and be revenged on
-him. After a short time, they answered, ‘Houé nigeié, tinai labé,’—‘we
-believe thee, thou art in the right.’ They then voted that he should
-be burnt; and the great priest, after some opposition, pronounced his
-sentence, which, according to the interpreter’s explanation, was in these
-terms: ‘O thou, fatal to our nation, who has wrongfully taken thee for
-her Manitou! thou hast paid no regard to the offerings which we have made
-thee, and hast allowed our enemies, whom thou dost plainly protect, to
-overcome us; therefore our old men, assembled in council, have decreed,
-with the advice of the chief of the white warriors, that to expiate thy
-ingratitude towards us, thou shalt be burnt alive.’ At the end of this
-sentence, all the assembly said, ‘Hau, hau,’ which signified ‘yes.’
-
-“As I wished to get this monster, I went to the priest, made him a small
-present, and bid my interpreter tell him that he should persuade his
-countrymen, that if they burnt this evil genius, there might arise one
-from his ashes that could be fatal to them; that I would go on purpose
-across the great lake, to deliver them from it. He found my reasons
-good, and got the sentence changed, so that it was strangled. I got it
-instantly dissected, in order to bring it to France, where its skeleton
-is now in the cabinet of natural history of M. de Fayolles. The assembly
-dispersed, and returned to their village by the river side. In the
-evening you might see them sitting in groups at their doors, and on the
-shore, with many fires made of the branches of the trees, whose light was
-on the water and the grove; while some of them danced the dance of war,
-with loud shrieks, that were enough to strike an awe into the heart.”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-DEATH OF A MOHAWK CHIEF.
-
-
-Count Frontignac, whose sprightly manners and energetic character
-supported the spirits of his countrymen amidst every reverse, was so
-provoked with what he deemed the ingratitude of the Five Nations for
-his kindness to them at Schenectady, that, besides encouraging his own
-Indian allies to burn their prisoners alive, he at length condemned to a
-death still more dreadful, two Mohawk warriors who had fallen into his
-hands. In vain the French priests remonstrated against this sentence, and
-urged him not to bring so foul a stain on the Christian name: the count
-declared that every consideration must yield to the safety and defence
-of his people, and that the Indians must not be encouraged to believe
-that they might practise the extreme of cruelty on the French without
-the hazard of having it retorted on themselves. If he had been merely
-actuated by politic considerations, without being stimulated by revenge,
-he might have plainly perceived, from the conduct of all the Indian
-tribes in their wars with each other, that the fear of retort had no
-efficacy whatever to restrain them from their barbarous practices, which
-he now undertook to sanction as far as his example was capable of doing.
-The priests, finding that their humane intercession was ineffectual,
-repaired to the prisoners, and laboured to persuade them to embrace
-the Christian name, as a preparation for the dreadful fate which they
-were about to receive from Christian hands; but their instructions were
-rejected with scorn and derision, and they found the prisoners determined
-to dignify, by Indian sentiments and demeanour, the Indian death which
-they had been condemned to undergo. Shortly before the execution, some
-Frenchman, less inhuman than his governor, threw a knife into the prison,
-and one of the Mohawks immediately dispatched himself with it: the other,
-expressing contempt at his companion’s mean evasion from glory, walked to
-the stake, singing in his death-chant, that he was a Mohawk warrior, that
-all the power of man could not extort the least expression of suffering
-from his lips, and that it was ample consolation to him to reflect that
-he had made many Frenchmen suffer the same pangs that he must now himself
-undergo. When attached to the stake, he looked round on his executioners,
-their instruments of torture, and the assembled multitude of spectators,
-with all the complacency of heroic fortitude; and, after enduring for
-some hours, with composed mien and triumphant language, a series of
-barbarities too atrocious and disgusting to be recited, his sufferings
-were terminated by the interposition of a French lady, who prevailed with
-the governor to order that mortal blow, to which human cruelty has given
-the name of _coup de grace_ or stroke of _favour_.
-
-
-
-
-MURDER OF MISS MACREA.
-
-
-Mr. Jones, an officer of the British army, had gained the affections
-of Miss Macrea, a lovely young lady of amiable character and spotless
-reputation, daughter of a gentleman attached to the royal cause, residing
-near Fort Edward; and they had agreed to be married. In the course of
-service, the officer was removed to some distance from his bride, and
-became anxious for her safety and desirous of her company. He engaged
-some Indians, of two different tribes, to bring her to camp, and promised
-a keg of rum to the person who should deliver her safe to him. She
-dressed to meet her bridegroom, and accompanied her Indian conductors;
-but by the way, the two chiefs, each being desirous of receiving the
-promised reward, disputed which of them should deliver her to her lover.
-The dispute rose to a quarrel; and, according to their usual method of
-disposing of a disputed prisoner, one of them instantly cleft the head
-of the lady with his tomahawk. This simple story, sufficiently tragical
-and affecting in itself, was blazoned in the American newspapers with
-every amplification that could excite the imagination or touch the
-heart; and contributed in no slight degree to embitter the minds of the
-people against those who could degrade themselves by the aid of such
-allies. The impulse given to the public mind by such atrocities more
-than counterbalanced any advantages which the British derived from the
-assistance of the Indians.
-
-
-
-
-AN INDIAN IN COLLEGE.
-
-
-The first serious disappointment which John Eliot, the Indian Apostle,
-experienced, was in his efforts for the instruction of the Indian youth
-in the classic languages; many of the ablest and most promising among
-them were set apart for this purpose; his ambition was to bring them
-up “with our English youth in university learning.” Where was the use
-of this? Eliot’s best purposes were prone to be carried to excess. He
-gave away a whole year’s salary, at a wretched cottage, while his wife
-was probably expecting it at home for household demands. He had learned
-his Indians to read and write; many could read English well; and now he
-wished to give them a polite education, that must have sat as gracefully
-on them as the full-sleeved gown and bands of the divine. Considerable
-sums were expended in their board and education: a substantial building
-of brick, which cost between three and four hundred pounds, was erected;
-it was large enough to accommodate twenty scholars. It must have been
-Spartan discipline to the heads as well as hearts of the poor Indians,
-to labour morn and night through the Greek and Roman authors, to try to
-discover and relish the beauties of style and the splendour of imagery.
-No doubt, their thoughts sometimes fled away to their deserts, where
-their fathers roved in dignity and freedom, and books never came. The
-design might be praiseworthy, but Providence did not smile upon it, most
-of these young men died when they had made great proficiency in their
-studies, as if the languages wore out their hearts; others abandoned
-their books, even when they were prepared to enter Harvard College, in
-the town of Cambridge; their patience was probably exhausted, and the
-boon of literary dignity could lure them no further. A few of these,
-passing from one extreme to the other, burst their bonds at once; and
-as if mind and body panted together to be free, hastened back to the
-wilderness again, into its wigwams and swamps; where neither Homer nor
-Ovid was like to follow them.
-
-“These circumstances proved very discouraging to the godly in New
-England,” says a contemporary. “Some were so far affected by them, as to
-conceive that they were manifest tokens of the Divine disapprobation. Mr.
-Eliot, however, whose faith was more vigorous, considered them merely as
-trials, to which they ought to submit without reluctance.” In consequence
-of the death and failure of those who entered the aforesaid building, it
-was soon after chiefly occupied by the English. Only one of these Indian
-students appears to have obtained his degree at Harvard College; and at
-the conclusion of two Latin and Greek elegies, which he composed on the
-death of an eminent minister, subscribed himself “Cheesecaumuk, Senior
-Sophista.” What an incongruous blending of sounds!
-
-Eliot at last saw his error, and, instead of the classics, applied with
-fresh ardour to his more useful translations, of which the circulation
-was so rapid, that he printed a fresh edition of the “Practice of
-Piety.” He also soon after established a lecture at Naticke, in which he
-explained the leading doctrines of theology and logic: here he was on
-safe ground, and his labours were eminently useful. During the summer
-months they assembled eagerly once a fortnight, and many of them gained
-much knowledge; yet he was far from being satisfied with his oral
-instructions, and he printed a thousand copies of a logic primer, and
-made little systems of all the liberal arts, for the use of the Indians.
-The same minds that had pined and sunk beneath the study of the classic
-tongues, embraced these things with ardour.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-AN INDIAN WARRANT.
-
-
-Judge Davis, in his Appendix to the Memorial, observes, that the
-employment of the more intelligent and energetic Indians as rulers, was
-particularly grateful to them. He had often heard of amusing anecdotes of
-the Indian rulers. The following warrant is recollected, which was issued
-by one of these magistrates, directed to an Indian constable, and will
-not suffer in comparison with our more verbose forms.
-
-‘I, Hihoudi, you Peter Waterman, Jeremy Wicket, quick you take him, fast
-you hold him straight you bring him before me, Hihoudi.’
-
-[Illustration]
-
-[Illustration: Pocahontas Saving the Life of Captain Smith.
-
-Page 99.]
-
-
-
-
-CAPTAIN JOHN SMITH.
-
-
-This gentleman figures, in the early history of our country, as the most
-strenuous promoter of colonization, the most wise founder, and the most
-active governor, of colonies. In New England he acted as discoverer
-and settler; in Virginia he sustained both these characters, as well
-as that of the most efficient and able governor of the first permanent
-colony. When he landed upon the soil, he was a private citizen; but the
-misgovernment of others soon made it necessary to call him to the office
-of governor.
-
-Under his directions James-Town was fortified by such defences as were
-sufficient to repel the attacks of the savages; and, by dint of great
-labour, which he was always the foremost to share, the colonists were
-provided with dwellings that afforded shelter from the weather, and
-contributed to restore and preserve their health. Finding the supplies
-of the savages discontinued, he put himself at the head of a detachment
-of his people, and penetrated into the country; and by courtesy and
-liberality to the tribes whom he found well disposed, and vigorously
-repelling the hostilities of such as were otherwise minded, he obtained
-for the colony the most abundant supplies.
-
-In the midst of his successes he was surprised on an expedition, by a
-hostile body of savages, who, having succeeded in making him prisoner,
-after a gallant and nearly successful defence, prepared to inflict on him
-the usual fate of their captives. His eminent faculties did not desert
-him on this trying occasion. He desired to speak with the sachem or
-chief, and, presenting him with a mariner’s compass, expatiated on the
-wonderful discoveries to which it had led, described the shape of the
-earth, the vastness of its lands and oceans, the course of the sun, the
-varieties of nations, and the singularity of their relative positions,
-which made some of them antipodes to the others.
-
-With equal prudence and magnanimity he refrained from all solicitations
-for his life, which would only have weakened the impressions which he
-hoped to produce. The savages listened with amazement and admiration.
-They had handled the compass, and viewing with surprise the play of the
-needle, which they plainly saw, but found it impossible to touch, from
-the intervention of the glass, this marvellous object prepared their
-minds for the reception of those vast impressions by which their captive
-endeavoured to gain ascendency over them.
-
-For an hour after he had finished his harangue, they seem to have
-remained undecided; till their habitual sentiments reviving, they resumed
-their suspended purpose, and, having bound him to a tree, prepared to
-dispatch him with their arrows. But a stronger impression had been made
-on their chief; and his soul, enlarged for a season by the admission
-of knowledge, or subdued by the influence of wonder, revolted from the
-dominion of habitual ferocity. This chief was named Opechancanough, and
-destined at a future period to invest his barbarous name with terror and
-celebrity. Holding up the compass in his hand, he gave the signal of
-reprieve, and Smith, though still guarded as a prisoner, was conducted to
-a dwelling where he was kindly treated, and plentifully entertained. But
-the strongest impressions pass away, while the influence of habit remains.
-
-After vainly endeavouring to prevail on their captive to betray the
-English colony into their hands, they referred his fate to Powhatan,
-the king or principal sachem of the country, to whose presence they
-conducted him in triumphal procession. The king received him with much
-ceremony, ordered a plentiful repast to be set before him, and then
-adjudged him to suffer death by having his head laid on a stone and
-beat to pieces with clubs. At the place appointed for this barbarous
-execution, he was again rescued from impending fate by the interposition
-of Pocahontas, the favourite daughter of the king, who, finding her
-first entreaties disregarded, threw her arms around the prisoner, and
-declared her determination to save him or die with him. Her generous
-affection prevailed over the cruelty of her tribe, and the king not only
-gave Smith his life, but soon after sent him back to James-Town, where
-the beneficence of Pocahontas continued to follow him with supplies of
-provisions that delivered the colony from famine.
-
-
-
-
-ANECDOTES OF KING PHILIP’S WAR.
-
-
-COMMENCEMENT OF THE WAR.
-
-In the year 1674, the number of Eliot’s towns and settlements, in
-which industry, comfort, good order, and the best instruction, were
-established, amounted to more than twelve, when an unforeseen event
-happened, that threw a cloud over all his prospects. This was the war
-in which the colonists of New England were involved with Philip, son of
-Massasoit, the celebrated chief, and, for the last years of his life,
-the firm friend of the English. “O, thou sword of the wilderness, when
-wilt thou be quiet?” says Mather, forgetful that it was bared by the
-aggressions of the settlers, as well as by the fierce and restless
-spirit of the Indian prince. Ever since the foundation of the colonies,
-the former had conducted themselves, says more than one divine of the
-period, with great kindness to their heathen brethren. The truth of this
-assertion is very doubtful. The missionary took no part in the disputes,
-save to urge his countrymen to forbearance and peace. “We, the poor
-church of Naticke,” he writes to them, “hearing that the honoured rulers
-of Plymouth are pressing and arming of soldiers to go to war with the
-Indians, do mourn greatly on account of it, and desire that they may not
-be destroyed, because we have not heard that they have done any thing
-worthy of death. It is your duty to offer, accept, and desire peace, and
-we pray you, for God’s sake, and for your souls’ sake, obey this word;
-we long to hear of a happy peace, that may open a clear passage for the
-gospel among that people.” Simple as these words are, they unfold an
-affection on the part of the missionary and his converts, for those who
-had few claims on their regard; for Philip, and most of his chiefs, had
-sternly rejected all persuasions to Christianity. But Eliot was not of
-the sentiment of another divine, who rejoiced in the rejection of the
-proposals by the Indians, that “this thing was of the Lord.” He saw only
-on one side an exquisite jealousy, roused by many wrongs, a heart burning
-with vindictive feelings; on the other, a sordid ambition, an unhallowed
-love of glory. It was a source of sorrow, that the torch of discord was
-first kindled by one of his own people. In the end of the year 1674, John
-Seusoman, a converted Indian, after having apostatized from the faith,
-devoted himself to the service of Philip, as secretary. He informed the
-English that his countrymen had resolved to adopt measures for their
-destruction. “He could write,” says the historian, “though the king, his
-master, could not read.”
-
-This renegade, fearing the consequences of what he had done, returned
-to the protection of the settlers, and was soon after slain by two of
-the Indian captains. The English arrested the perpetrators of the deed,
-and, on a trial by jury, finding them guilty, they were executed. Philip
-was alarmed at the condemnation of his counsellors, and, conscious
-that he had given cause for suspicion, resolved to be the first in the
-field. He had probably long waited for an opportunity. Rash, headstrong,
-and vindictive, with the courage but not the talents of his father,
-Massasoit, the slow and artful aggressions of the settlers stung him to
-the quick. He began to gather his warriors around his dwelling-place, at
-the strong forts near the Naraganset river; he received the accession of
-several other tribes. In the mean time, it was said, strange sights and
-sounds foreboded, in many parts of the colonies, the woes that were near;
-the singing of bullets, and the awful passing away of drums in the air;
-invisible troops of horses were heard riding to and fro; and in a clear,
-still, sunshiny morning, the phantoms of men, fearfully flitting by!
-Philip, heedless of omens and dreams, sent away the women and children,
-and took his stand on Mount Hope, a low and beautiful eminence, on which
-was his strongest fort. Ere matters came to a fatal extremity, and all
-the evils of war were let loose on his settlements, Eliot did his utmost
-to turn them aside; he saw that many of his people would inevitably be
-involved with one party or the other. His town of Pakeunit was very near
-Mount Hope; he had visited the latter during the life of Massasoit, and
-though he felt not the same regard or esteem for his son, a friendly
-intercourse had subsisted between them. His applications to the colonists
-for peace being fruitless, he resolved to try them also on the former.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-INTERVIEW BETWEEN ELIOT AND PHILIP.
-
-A few miles only distant, the encampment of the Indians around their
-Mount was distinctly visible from Pakeunit; and Eliot, with two or three
-of his people, went to have an interview with the chieftain. Philip
-respected his character, though he disliked his proceedings, for he had
-always treated his mission with contempt and slight; among the warriors,
-however, both of his own and other tribes, were many who had heard
-Eliot preach, and had received him beneath their roof. The interview
-was without any success; the spirit of the Indian was made up to the
-desperate struggle, and all that could be done was to beseech him to
-spare the settlements of the converts.
-
-The contrast between the two men must have been sufficiently striking.
-Philip was in the prime of life, with a frame nerved by early hardship,
-and the usages of savage warfare, in which he was very expert; he was
-dressed like his chiefs, save that he wore a silver-laced tunic, or coat,
-and that his arms were more rich; his chief ensign of dignity was his
-princely, yet cruel and gloomy features, where the thirst of revenge was
-stamped. The frame of the missionary was not bowed even by seventy years,
-though they had turned his hair white; the leathern girdle was about his
-loins, that he always wore, and the simple apparel that he loved; he
-stood among these fierce and exasperated men as calm and fearless as in
-his own assembly at Naticke: he could not but foresee the devastation
-about to be let loose on the land; that the fire and the sword would
-waste all his pleasant places, and scatter his converts; and he returned
-with a heavy heart to his home. Several of the latter afterwards sided
-with the forces of Philip: whether from this circumstance, or from the
-nearness of the settlement of Pakeunit to the camp of the prince, the
-colonists contracted the strongest dislike and mistrust of the Christian
-Indians. Eliot, when he saw there was no longer a chance of peace,
-exhorted his people in the above town, and at Naticke, as well as the
-other congregations, not to be moved by the example or seductions of
-either party.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-CHRISTIAN INDIANS ENGAGE IN THE WAR.
-
-The contagion was, however, too strong; and Eliot at last saw many of
-them also take up arms against their infidel countrymen. The order and
-harmony of their dwelling-places were for a time utterly blasted; on
-the hills around Naticke and Pakeunit the watch-fires were blazing;
-the war-whoops were often heard in the night; at intervals, a solitary
-musket, and then a signal cry, came from the neighbouring woods; and yet
-nearer, the poor Indians at last saw their plantations without the town,
-burning; for Philip began hostilities by a sudden attack on them, so that
-their taking up arms was partly in self-defence. After several actions,
-he retired from Mount Hope to the woods, swamps, and fastnesses of the
-interior, in the dominion of the great tribe of the Naraganset Indians,
-who, for his sake, had now broken treaty with the English. It was the
-depth of winter, yet the latter resolved to follow him to his retreats,
-and an army of fifteen hundred men, under the command of the Hon. J.
-Winslow, marched to the abode of the Indians. This was on an island of
-about five or six acres, the only entrance to which was upon a long tree
-over the water, so that but one man could pass at a time: but the water
-was frozen; the trees and thickets were white with their burden of snow,
-as was the surface of the earth, so that the smallest movement of the
-Indians could be seen.
-
-Within the isle were gathered the powers of the Pequot and Naraganset
-tribes, with their wives, families, and valuable things; the want of
-leaves and thick foliage allowed no ambush, and the savage must fight
-openly beside his own hearth and store. It was the close of day when
-the colonists came up to the place; a fort, a blockhouse, and a wall
-that passed round the isle, proved the skill, as well as resolution,
-of the assailed; the frozen shores and water were quickly covered with
-the slain, and then the Indians fought at their doors and around their
-children, till all was lost, and a thousand of them fell. Philip fled
-with his surviving forces to a distant position, where it was impossible
-to follow him. Concord, one of the first settlements of Eliot, and one or
-two other towns, were this winter destroyed, and its poor people turned
-from their dwellings into all the rigours of the winter; many perished in
-the woods or amidst the snows, or by the secret and sudden ambushes of
-the enemy.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-MISFORTUNES OF PHILIP.
-
-The last defeat, in which his best fighting men were slain, had broken
-the power, but not the spirit, of Philip. Unable to meet the colonists
-in the open field, he harassed them in a thousand ways, so that, as the
-spring advanced, the more industrious and timid were thrown into the
-extremity of despair, and said, “How shall we wade through another summer
-like the last?” But the chief was now a wandering exile; his paternal
-dominion was taken; the singular friendship of Quanonchet, “the mighty
-sachem of the Naragansets,” was his last support. The fidelity of this
-man was tried to the uttermost: he had received the fugitive with open
-arms; rallied all his forces around him; they fought, side by side, with
-the heroism of men on the last strand of their country; were defeated,
-and fled together, without a reproach or complaint on either side; they
-retreated yet farther into the interior, and, by their persuasions,
-engaged other tribes in the cause; but, at this moment, the Maquas, a
-powerful nation in the west, made a descent on them, and wasted their
-band. In spite of these disasters, they again advanced.
-
-
-CLOSE OF THE WAR.
-
-Eliot, during these troubles, was subjected to much contempt and
-reproach. His efforts to protect his people, and watch over their
-interests, were incessant; but so strong was the suspicion against them,
-that the colonists, not content with confining a great number of them in
-Long Island, inflicted on them many sufferings, and a few of the more
-cruel said that they were worthy of death.
-
-But the war began to draw to a close: Quanonchet, venturing out with a
-few followers near the enemy, was pursued and taken. His behaviour under
-his misfortunes was very noble and affecting; for when repeated offers
-were made him of life, if he would deliver up Philip, and submit his
-own people to the English, he proudly rejected them. They condemned him
-to die, and, by a refinement of cruelty, by the hands of three young
-Indian chiefs. The heroic man said, “that he liked it well, for he should
-die before his heart was soft, or he had spoken any thing unworthy of
-himself.”
-
-Philip was deeply moved by the death of the chieftain, for their
-friendship was like that of David and Jonathan, strongest in misery and
-exile. He was not yet left desolate: his beloved wife and only child
-were with him. They had shared all his sufferings; in his flights, his
-inroads, his dwellings in the swamps, they seem never to have left his
-side. The unfortunate prince now returned to Mount Hope, the scene of
-his former power and happiness; it was for no purpose of defence that he
-came, for it was too near the English settlements, but merely to visit
-it once more. “He finds it,” says Mather, “to be Mount Misery, Mount
-Confusion!”
-
-No doubt it was so to his bleeding spirit; for, with all his savage
-propensities, this prince was susceptible of some of the finest feelings
-of our nature. He sat down mournfully on the beautiful Mount, on which
-were now the ruins of his fortress and camp; but he could not remain long
-here, for the feet of his pursuers were nigh, and he was compelled to
-seek his distant retreats again:—there was a greater agony in store for
-him than the sight of his ruined home.
-
-Early one morning, his quarters were surprised by the English, most of
-his followers slain, and his wife and son made captive. The chief fled,
-broken-hearted, but unsubdued, leaving all he loved on earth in the hands
-of those who had no mercy. “This was no small torment to him,” quaintly
-says the historian. “Wo to him that spoileth! His peag, or silver belt,
-the ensign of his princedom, also remained in our hands, so hardly did he
-escape.” The measure of his woes was not yet full. The Indian princess of
-Pocasset was warmly attached to his cause, and had more than once aided
-him in his extremity; she had received him beneath her roof, soothed his
-sorrows, and, what was more, summoned her people to fight for him; and
-saved him and his people in her canoes the year before. Now, she followed
-him in his flight, and, as the more devout said, as if by a judgment,
-could not find a canoe to transport her, and, venturing over the river
-upon a raft, it broke under her, and she was drowned. Her body was soon
-after washed on shore, and the English, forgetful of all decency and
-delicacy to a woman of her rank, though a savage, cut off her head, and
-placed it on high, which, when the Indians who were her people saw, they
-gathered round, and gave way to the most sad and touching lamentations.
-
-Philip now began, like Saul of old, when earth was leaving him, to look
-to the powers beyond it, and to apply to his magicians and sorcerers,
-who, on consulting their oracles, assured him that no Englishman should
-ever kill him. This was a vague consolation, yet it seems to have given
-him, for a while, a confidence in his destiny, and he took his last stand
-in the middle of a distant and almost inaccessible swamp. It was a fit
-retreat for a despairing man, being one of those waste and dismal places
-to which few ever wandered, covered with rank and dense vegetation. The
-moist soil was almost hidden by the cypress and other trees, that spread
-their gloomy shades over the treacherous shallows and pools beneath.
-
-In the few drier parts, oaks and pines grew, and, between them, a
-brushwood so thick, that the savage could hardly penetrate: on the long
-rich grass of these parts, wild cattle fed, unassailed by the hand of
-man, save when they ventured beyond the confines of the swamp. There were
-wolves, deer, and other animals; and wilder men, it was said, were seen
-here; it was supposed that the children of some of the Indians had either
-been lost or left here, and had thus grown up like denizens of this wild.
-Here the baffled chieftain gathered his little band around him, like a
-lion baited by the hunters, sullenly seeking his gloomy thickets, only to
-spring forth more fatally; despair was his only friend; for what other
-was now left: his love was turned to agony; his wife was in the hand of
-his enemies; and would they spare her beauty? His only son, the heir of
-his long line, must bow his head to their yoke; his chief warriors had
-all fallen, and he could not trust the few who were still with him.
-
-Quanonchet, whose fidelity and attachment were stronger than death, was
-in the land of spirits, chasing the shadowy deer, and solaced with many
-wives; for Philip, to the last, believed in the religion of his country.
-In this extremity, an Indian proposed to seek peace with the English;—the
-prince instantly laid him dead at his feet. This man had a friend, who,
-disgusted with the deed, soon after fled from the place to Rhode Island,
-where the English were recruiting their weary forces, and betrayed the
-place of his retreat. On this intelligence, a body of forces instantly
-set out.
-
-[Illustration: Death of King Philip.
-
-Page 115.]
-
-
-DEATH OF PHILIP.
-
-The night before his death, Philip, “like him in the army of Midian,”
-says the historian, “had been dreaming that he was fallen into the hands
-of the English; he awoke in great alarm, and told it to his friends,
-and advised them to fly for their lives, for that he believed it would
-come to pass.” The place was well suited to awake all the terrors of the
-imagination; to any eye but that of the savage, it was like the “valley
-of the shadow of death;” the cypress and oak trees hung heavy and still,
-over the accursed soil; the faint gleam of the pools and sluggish lakes
-on every side, in the starlight, and the howl of the wolf, fitfully, as
-if it warned that the hour was nigh. “Now, just as he was telling his
-dream, Captain Church, with his company, fell in upon them.” They had
-been guided by the deserter to the swamp, and, with great difficulty,
-across some felled trees, into its labyrinths. The battle was fierce
-and short: Philip fought till he saw almost every follower fall in his
-defence, then turned, and fled; he was pursued by an Englishman and an
-Indian; and, as if the oracle was doomed to be fulfilled, the musket of
-the former would not go off; and the latter fired, and shot him through
-the heart.
-
-With his death, all resistance ceased; his dominions fell into the
-hands of the colonists, and peace was restored to the settlements, but
-prosperity came not with it. It was a cruel blow to Eliot, nearly all
-whose life had been given to his beloved cause, to look around on the
-plantations ravaged, the dwellings empty, the defences broken, and, more
-than all, the spirit of his people in despair. Of twelve towns, at the
-beginning of the war, four only were now undestroyed.
-
-
-
-
-CANONICUS.
-
-
-The _Narragansets_, possessed the country about Narraganset Bay,
-including Rhode Island, and other Islands in that vicinity, and a part
-of Connecticut. _Canonicus_ was their great warrior Sachem. This tribe
-is described by our early historians ‘as a great people,’ capable of
-raising 4000 warriors. Canonicus lived to an advanced age, and died
-according to Gov. Winthrop, June 4th, 1647. He discovered a generous mind
-in receiving Rev. Roger Williams when in great distress, and affording
-him a friendly protection. Mr. Williams mentioned his name with respect
-and acknowledged his obligation to him thus in a manuscript letter to
-the Governor of Massachusetts. After observing that many hundreds of the
-English were witnesses to the friendly disposition of the Narragansets,
-he says: ‘Their late long lived Canonicus so lived and died, in the same
-most honorable manner and solemnity (in their way) as you laid to sleep
-your prudent peace-maker Mr. Winthrop, did they honor this their prudent
-and peaceable prince; yea, through all their towns and countries how
-frequently do many and oft times of Englishmen travel alone with safety
-and loving kindness?’ On one occasion Canonicus thus addressed Roger
-Williams: ‘I have never suffered any wrong to be done to the English
-since they landed, nor never will. If the English speak true, if he mean
-truly, then shall I go to my grave in peace, and I hope that the English
-and my posterity shall live in love and peace together.’ ‘His heart,’
-says Mr. Williams, ‘was stirred up to love me as his son to the last
-gasp.’ However partial Canonicus may have been to Rev. Mr. Williams,
-he was not uniformly friendly to the settlers in general. It appears
-in Gov. Winslow’s Good News from New England, that in February, 1622,
-this chief sent into Plymouth, a bundle of arrows bound together with a
-rattle-snake’s skin. This was received as it was intended, a challenge
-for war. Gov. Bradford filled the rattle-snake skin with powder and shot
-and returned it to _Canonicus_, with a message of defiance which produced
-the desired effect. Canonicus was so frightened that he dared not touch
-the article and soon returned it to Plymouth and became silent and
-peaceable.
-
-[Illustration: Acceptance of Canonicus’ Challenge.]
-
-
-
-
-CHICKATAUBUT.
-
-
-_Chickataubut_, was a sachem of considerable note among the
-_Massachusetts_ tribe, and one of those who, in 1621, acknowledged
-themselves the subjects of King James. He was Sachem of Passonagesit
-(Weymouth,) where his mother was buried. In Drake’s Indian Biography
-the following is related from Thomas Morton’s New Canaan. In the
-first settling of Plymouth, some of the company in wandering about
-upon discovery, came upon an Indian grave, which was of the mother of
-Chickataubut. Over the body a stake was set in the ground, and two huge
-bear skins sewed together spread over it; these the English took away.
-When this came to the knowledge of Chickataubut, he complained to his
-people and demanded immediate vengeance. When they were assembled, he
-thus harangued them: ‘When last the glorious light of all the sky was
-underneath the globe and birds grew silent, I began to settle as my
-custom is to take repose; before mine eyes were fast closed, me thought
-I saw a vision, at which my spirit was much troubled, and trembling at
-that doleful sight cried aloud; Behold! my son, whom I have cherished,
-see the paps that gave thee suck, the hands that clasped thee warm, and
-fed thee oft, canst thou forget to take revenge on those wild people
-that hath my monument defaced in a despiteful manner; disdaining our
-ancient antiquities, and honorable customs. See now the Sachem’s grave
-lies, like unto the common people of ignoble race, defaced. Thy mother
-doth complain, implores thy aid against this thievish people newly
-come hither; if this be suffered I shall not rest in quiet within my
-everlasting habitation.’ Battle was the unanimous resolve, and the
-English were watched and followed from place to place, until at length
-as some were going ashore in a boat, they fell upon them, but gained
-little advantage. After maintaining the fight for some time, and being
-driven from tree to tree, the chief captain was wounded in the arm and
-the whole took to flight. This action caused the natives about Plymouth
-to look upon the English as invincible, and was the reason that peace was
-maintained so long after.
-
-When Boston was settled _Chickataubut_ visited Governor _Winthrop_, and
-presented him with a hogshead of corn. Many of his ‘sanops and squaws’
-came with him, but were most of them sent away after they had all dined,
-Chickataubut probably fearing they would be burdensome, although it
-thundered and rained and the Governor urged their stay. At this time
-he wore English clothes, and sat at the Governor’s table, where he
-behaved himself soberly, &c. as an Englishman. “Not long after he called
-on Governor Winthrop and desired to buy of him a suit of clothes for
-himself, the governor informed him that ‘English Sagamores did not use
-to truck;’ but he called his tailor and gave him orders to make him a
-suit of clothes, whereupon he gave the governor two large skins of coat
-beaver. The clothes being ready, the governor put him into a very good
-new suit from head to foot, and after, he set meat before them; but he
-would not eat till the governor had given thanks, and after meat he
-desired him to do the like, and so departed.”
-
-
-
-
-CONDITION OF THE INDIAN WOMEN.
-
-
-Polygamy is not uncommon among them; and the husband occasionally finds
-it necessary to administer a little wholesome castigation to his more
-quarrelsome or refractory squaws. But many are satisfied with one wife.
-The care of the tent and the whole drudgery of the family devolve on the
-women. They gather fuel, cook the provisions, and repair every article
-of dress; cultivate the ground, where any is cultivated; carry the
-baggage on a journey; and pitch the tent when they halt. In these and
-similar employments, their lordly fathers, husbands, and brothers, think
-it degrading to assist them, and unworthy of warriors to engage in such
-employments.
-
-Mr. Catlin, whose long residence among the Indians, and careful
-observation of their habits, entitle his opinion to great respect,
-regards the assignment of drudgery to the women as no more than an
-equitable distribution of the labour necessary to the support of the
-household. He considers the toils of war and the chase, which are almost
-incessant, and are solely performed by the men, as a complete offset
-to the domestic and agricultural cares of the women. On the whole he
-thinks that the condition of the Indian women is as comfortable as it
-is possible to render it by any arrangement which would not completely
-change their mode of life. To withdraw the men from the chase and
-confine them to the culture of the ground, would render the Indians an
-agricultural and not a hunting people. Still the condition of the Indian
-woman is a miserable and degraded one,—a condition of incessant labour
-and care.
-
-In none of the tribes do the women experience much tenderness; but among
-the Sioux they are so harshly treated, that they occasionally destroy
-their female infants, alleging that it is better for them to be put
-to death than to live as miserably as they themselves have done. Even
-suicide is not uncommon among them, although they believe it offensive to
-the Father of Life.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN EDUCATION.
-
-
-The Indians never chastise their children, especially the boys; thinking
-that it would damp their spirits, check their love of independence, and
-cool their martial ardour, which they wish above all things to encourage.
-“Reason,” say they, “will guide our children, when they come to the use
-of it; and before that, their faults cannot be very great.” They avoid
-compulsory measures, and allow the boys to act with uncontrolled freedom;
-but endeavour, by example, instruction, and advice, to train them to
-diligence and skill in hunting; to animate them with patience, courage,
-and fortitude in war; and to inspire them with contempt of danger, pain,
-and death,—qualities of the highest order in the estimation of an Indian.
-
-By gentleness and persuasion they endeavour to imbue the minds of their
-children with virtuous sentiments, according to their notions of virtue.
-The aged chiefs are zealous in this patriotic labour, and the squaws give
-their cordial co-operation.
-
-Ishuchenau, an old Kanza warrior, often admonished the group of young
-auditors who gathered around him, of their faults, and exhorted them
-never to tell a lie, and never to steal, except from an enemy, whom it
-is just to injure in every possible way. “When you become men,” said he,
-“be brave and cunning in war, and defend your hunting grounds against
-all encroachments: never suffer your squaws and little ones to want;
-protect them and strangers from insult. On no occasion betray a friend;
-be revenged on your enemies; drink not the poisonous strong water of the
-white people, for it is sent by the bad spirit to destroy the Indians.
-Fear not death; none but cowards fear to die. Obey and venerate old
-people, particularly your parents. Fear and propitiate the bad spirit,
-that he may do you no harm: love and adore the Good Spirit, who made
-us all, who supplies our hunting grounds, and keeps all alive.” After
-recounting his achievements, he was wont to add, “Like a decayed prairie
-tree, I stand alone:—the friends of my youth, the companions of my
-sports, my toils, and my dangers, rest their heads on the bosom of our
-mother. My sun is fast descending behind the western hills, and I feel
-it will soon be night with me.” Then with hands and eyes lifted towards
-heaven, he thanked the Great Spirit for having spared him so long, to
-show the young men the true path to glory and fame.
-
-Their opinions, in many instances, are false, and lead to corresponding
-errors in conduct. In some tribes, the young person is taught to pray,
-with various superstitious observances, that he may be a great hunter,
-horse-stealer, and warrior; so that thus the fountain of virtue is
-polluted.
-
-The Indians are entirely unacquainted with letters; but they have a
-kind of picture writing, which they practise on the inside of the bark
-of trees, or on skins prepared for the purpose, and by which they can
-communicate the knowledge of many facts to each other.
-
-The Indian names are descriptive of the real or supposed qualities of
-the person to whom they belong: they often change them in the course of
-their lives. The young warrior is ambitious of acquiring a new name;
-and stealing a horse, scalping an enemy, or killing a bear, is an
-achievement which entitles him to choose one for himself, and the nation
-confirms it.
-
-
-
-
-SPEECH OF AN INDIAN TO JOHN ELIOT.
-
-
-The following instance is very expressive of the fine use the Indians
-make of simple and natural images:—the speaker was dressed in a robe
-of several marten-skins sewed together; it was fastened to his right
-shoulder, and passed under his left arm: he wrapped himself up in this
-robe, and said—
-
-“My heart laughs for joy on seeing myself before thee: we have all of us
-heard the word which thou hast sent us. How beautiful is the sun to-day!
-but lately it was red and angry, for our hands were stained with blood;
-our tomahawks thirsted for it; our women howled for the loss of their
-relations; at the least shriek of the birds of night, all our warriors
-were on foot; the serpents angrily hissed at us, as we passed. Those we
-left behind sang the songs of death.
-
-“But now our whole nation laughs for joy to see us walk on the same road
-with thyself, to join the Father of spirits: our hearts shall make but
-one: come with us to the forests; come to our homes by the great river;
-we shall plant the tree of life, of which thou speakest, there, and our
-warriors shall rest beneath its leaves; and thou shalt tell us more
-of that land where there is no storm or death, and the sun is always
-bright. Will not that be good? What dost thou say to it, my father?”
-
-
-
-
-RELIGION OF THE INDIANS.
-
-
-Of the religion of the Indians we have no full and clear account. Indeed,
-of the opinions of a people who have nothing more than a few vague and
-indefinite notions, no distinct explanation can be given. On this subject
-the Indians are not communicative; and to obtain a thorough knowledge
-of it would require familiar, attentive, unsuspected, and unprejudiced
-observation. But such observation is not easily made; and a few general,
-and on some points uncertain, notices only can be given.
-
-On looking at the most renowned nations of the ancient heathen world, we
-see the people prostrating themselves before innumerable divinities; and
-we are ready to conclude that polytheism is the natural belief of man,
-unenlightened by revelation. But a survey of the vast wilds of America
-will correct this opinion. For there we find a multitude of nations,
-widely separated from each other, all believing in One Supreme God, a
-great and good spirit, the father and master of life, the maker of heaven
-and earth, and of all other creatures. They believe themselves entirely
-dependent on him, thank him for present enjoyments, and pray to him for
-the good things they desire to obtain. They consider him the author of
-all good; and believe he will reward or punish them according to their
-deeds.
-
-They believe in inferior spirits also, both good and bad; to whom,
-particularly to the good, they give the name of _Manitou_, and consider
-them tutelary spirits. The Indians are careful observers of dreams, and
-think themselves deserted by the Master of life, till they receive a
-manitou in a dream; that is, till they dream of some object, as a buffalo
-or beaver, or something else, which they think is an intimation that the
-Great Spirit had given them that object as a manitou, or medicine. Then
-they are full of courage, and proud of their powerful ally. To propitiate
-the manitou, or medicine, every exertion is made, and every personal
-consideration sacrificed. “I was lately the proprietor of seventeen
-horses,” said a Mandan; “but I have offered them all to my medicine, and
-am now poor.” He had turned all these horses, which constituted the whole
-of his wealth, loose into the plain, committed them to his medicine,
-and abandoned them for ever. But, although they offer oblations to the
-manitous, they positively deny that they pay them any adoration, and
-affirm that they only worship the Great Spirit through them.
-
-They have no regular periodical time either of private or public
-religious worship. They have neither temples, altars, stated ministers
-of religion, nor regular sacrifices; for the jugglers are connected
-rather with the medical art than with religious services. The Indians in
-general, like other ignorant people, are believers in witchcraft, and
-think many of their diseases proceed from the arts of sorcerers. These
-arts the jugglers pretend to counteract, as well as to cure natural
-diseases. They also pretend to predict the weather and to make rain; and
-much confidence is placed in their prognostications and their power.
-
-The devotional exercises of the Indians consist in singing, dancing, and
-performing various mystical ceremonies, which they believe efficacious in
-healing the sick, frustrating the designs of their enemies, and securing
-their own success. They often offer up to the Great Spirit a part of the
-game first taken in a hunting expedition, a part of the first produce
-of their fields, and a part of their food. At a feast, they first throw
-some of the broth, and then of the meat, into the fire. In smoking, they
-generally testify their reverence for the Master of life, by directing
-the first puff upwards, and the second downwards, or the first to the
-rising, and the second to the setting sun: at other times they turn the
-pipe to every point of the compass.
-
-They firmly believe in the immortality of the soul, and in a state of
-future retribution: but their conceptions on these subjects are modified
-and tinged by their occupations in life, and by their notions of good and
-evil. They suppose the spirit retains the same inclinations as when in
-the body, and rejoices in its old pursuits. At times, an Indian warrior,
-when about to kill and scalp a prostrate enemy, addresses him in such
-terms as the following:—
-
-“My name is Cashegra: I am a famous warrior, and am going to kill you.
-When you reach the land of spirits, you will see the ghost of my father:
-tell him it was Cashegra sent you there.” The uplifted tomahawk then
-descends upon his victim.
-
-The Mandans[7] expected, when they died, to return to the original
-subterraneous abode of their fathers: the good reaching the ancient
-village by means of the lake, which the weight of the sins of the bad
-will render them unable to pass. They who have behaved themselves well
-in this life, and been brave warriors and good hunters, will be received
-into the town of brave and generous spirits; but the useless and selfish
-will be doomed to reside in the town of poor and useless spirits.
-
-The belief of those untutored children of nature has an influence on
-their conduct. Among them the grand defect is, an erroneous estimate of
-good and evil, right and wrong.
-
-[Illustration: Destruction of the Pequots.]
-
-
-
-
-DESTRUCTION OF THE PEQUOTS IN 1637.
-
-
-“An army of a hundred and sixty men, under the command of Captain
-Underhill, were despatched, and with them was Uncas, an Indian chief:
-when they landed from the river, they were joined by five hundred
-Narraganset Indians. We were now informed that the Indians had retired
-into two impregnable forts, one of which was the hold of Sassacus, the
-chief tyrant; that fierce tiger, at the very mention of whose name the
-Narragansets trembled, saying, “He was all one a God, nobody could kill
-him.” The council of war determined to fall first upon the fort which
-they could first find; and on their silent march in the moon-shiny night,
-an Indian spy brought them word that the Pequots were in a profound
-sleep. Our guide was one Wequash, an Indian revolted from them; and
-now the Narragansets retired into the wood, and behind the trees—they
-were overcome with fear. The English advanced against the nearest fort,
-when a dog, that stood sentinel like another Cerberus, barking, awoke
-them all; their cry, when they sprung from their sleep, was dreadful to
-hear in the silent night; and thereupon followed a bloody encounter;
-many were killed; but we set fire to their huts, and a high wind caused
-them to be quickly consumed; many of the Indians climbed to the tops
-of the palisadoes, and were a mark for the bullets; some of the trees
-also burning threw such a fiery light, that with the howlings, and
-cries also, the place was like the pit of torment. Samson was not in
-greater distress by thirst after his exploit upon the Philistines, than
-was the mighty Sassacus when his strong holds were thus burned, and his
-barbarians dismissed from a world that was burdened with them. The next
-day, as we were returning, three hundred of the enemy again came up, like
-bears bereaved of their young; they fought, and made a fort of every
-swamp in the way, covering their bodies with the green boughs and the
-long grass, so that we were sometimes in the very midst of them, and knew
-it not, save by the sudden yell and the volley.”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN COOLNESS.
-
-
-Sam Barrow was a famous warrior in Philip’s war, and for a long time
-dreaded as a ferocious enemy by the inhabitants. He was at length
-captured by Captain Church at Cape Cod. Church, in his history, says,
-that ‘he was as noted a rogue as any among the enemy.’ Church told him
-that the government would not permit him to grant him quarter, because of
-his inhuman murders and barbarities, and therefore ordered him to prepare
-for execution. Barrow replied, that the sentence of death against him was
-just, and that indeed he was ashamed to live any longer, and desired no
-more favor than to smoke a whiff of tobacco before his execution. When
-he had taken a few whiffs, he said, ‘I am ready,’ when one of Church’s
-Indians, being prepared, sunk his hatchet into his brains.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-THE GREAT MASSACRE OF VIRGINIA.
-
-
-The peace which had subsisted since the marriage of Pocahontas had lulled
-the English into security, and disposed them to extend their plantations
-along the banks of the rivers, as far as the Potomac, in situations too
-remote from each other. Their houses were open and free to the natives,
-who became acquainted with their manner of living, their hours of eating,
-of labor and repose, the use of their arms and tools, and frequently
-borrowed their boats, for the convenience of fishing and fowling, and
-to pass the rivers. This familiarity was pleasing to the English, as it
-indicated a spirit of moderation, which had been always recommended, by
-the Company in England, to the planters; and, as it afforded a favourable
-symptom of the civilization and conversion of the natives; but by
-them, or their leaders, it was designed to conceal the most sanguinary
-intentions.
-
-In the spring of the next year, (1622) an opportunity offered, to
-throw off the mask of friendship, and kindle their secret enmity into
-a blaze. Among the natives who frequently visited the English, was a
-tall, handsome, young chief, renowned for courage and success in war,
-and excessively fond of finery in dress. His Indian name was Nematanow;
-but by the English he was called Jack of the Feather. Coming to the
-store of one Morgan, he there viewed several toys and ornaments, which
-were very agreeable to the Indian taste; and persuaded Morgan to carry
-them to Pamunky, where he assured him of an advantageous traffic. Morgan
-consented to go with him; but was murdered by the way.
-
-In a few days, Nematanow came again to the store, with Morgan’s cap on
-his head; and being interrogated by two stout lads, who attended there,
-what was become of their master, he answered that he was dead. The boys
-seized him, and endeavoured to carry him before a magistrate; but his
-violent resistance, and the insolence of his language, so provoked them,
-that they shot him. The wound proved mortal; and when dying, he earnestly
-requested of the boys, that the manner of his death might be concealed
-from his countrymen, and that he might be privately buried among the
-English.
-
-As soon as this transaction was known, Opechancanough demanded
-satisfaction; but being answered that the retaliation was just, he formed
-a plan for a general massacre of the English, and appointed Friday,
-the twenty-second day of March, for its execution; but he dissembled
-his resentment to the last moment. Parties of Indians were distributed
-through the Colony, to attack every plantation, at the same hour of the
-day, when the men should be abroad and at work. On the evening before,
-and on the morning of that fatal day, the Indians came as usual to the
-houses of the English, bringing game and fish to sell, and sat down
-with them to breakfast. So general was the combination, and so deep
-the plot, that about one hour before noon, they fell on the people in
-the fields and houses; and, with their own tools and weapons, killed,
-indiscriminately, persons of all ages, sexes and characters; inhumanly
-mangling their dead bodies, and triumphing over them, with all the
-expressions of frantic joy.
-
-Where any resistance was made, it was generally successful. Several
-houses were defended, and some few of the assailants slain. One of
-Captain Smith’s old soldiers, Nathaniel Causie, though wounded, split
-the skull of an Indian, and put his whole party to flight. Several
-other parties were dispersed by the firing of a single gun, or by the
-presenting of a gun, even in the hands of a woman.
-
-James-Town was preserved by the fidelity of Chanco, a young Indian
-convert, who lived with Richard Pace, and was treated by him as a son.
-The brother of this Indian came to lie with him, the night before the
-massacre, and revealed to him the plot, urging him to kill his master,
-as he intended to do by his own. As soon as he was gone in the morning,
-Chanco gave notice of what was intended, to his master; who, having
-secured his own house, gave the alarm to his neighbours, and sent an
-express to James-Town. Three hundred and forty-nine people fell in this
-general massacre; of which number, six were members of the Council.
-
-
-
-
-EXPLOIT OF CAPTAIN STANDISH.
-
-
-“The 23d of March (1623) being a yearly court day, we came to this
-conclusion; that Captain Standish should take as many men as he thought
-sufficient to make his party good, against all the Indians in the
-Massachusetts Bay; and because it is impossible to deal with them upon
-open defiance, but to take them in such traps as they lay for others;
-therefore that he should pretend trade, as at other times; but first go
-to the English, and acquaint them with the plot and the end of his own
-coming, that by comparing it with their carriage toward them, he might
-better judge of the certainty of it, and more fitly take opportunity to
-revenge the same; but should forbear, if it were possible, till such time
-as he could make sure of Wittuwamat, a bloody and bold villain, whose
-head he had orders to bring with him. Upon this, Captain Standish made
-choice of eight men, and would not take more, because he would prevent
-jealousy. On the next day, before he could go, came one of Weston’s
-company to us with a pack on his back, who made a pitiful narration of
-their lamentable and weak estate, and of the Indians’ carriage; whose
-boldness increased abundantly, insomuch as they would take the victuals
-out of their pots, and eat before their faces; yea, if in any thing they
-gainsayed them, they were ready to hold a knife at their breasts. He said
-that, to give them content, they had hanged one of the company, who had
-stolen their corn, and yet they regarded it not; that another of them
-had turned savage; that their people had mostly forsaken the town, and
-made their rendezvous where they got their victuals, because they would
-not take pains to bring it home; that they had sold their clothes for
-corn, and were ready to perish with hunger and cold, and that they were
-dispersed into three companies, having scarcely any powder and shot.
-As this relation was grievous to us, so it gave us good encouragement
-to proceed; and the wind coming fair the next day, March 25th, Captain
-Standish being now fitted, set forth for Massachusetts.
-
-“The Captain being come to Massachusetts, went first to the ship, but
-found neither man nor dog therein. On the discharge of a musket, the
-Master and some others shewed themselves, who were on shore gathering
-ground-nuts and other food. After salutation, Captain Standish asked
-them how they durst so leave the ship, and live in such security? they
-answered, like men senseless of their own misery, that they feared not
-the Indians, but lived and suffered them to lodge with them, not having
-sword nor gun, nor needing the same. To which the Captain replied,
-that if there were no cause, he was glad. But upon further inquiry,
-understanding that those in whom John Sanders had reposed most confidence
-were at the plantation, thither he went, and made known the Indians’
-purpose, and the end of his own coming; and told them that if they
-durst not stay there, it was the intention of the Governor and people
-of Plymouth, to receive them, till they could be better provided for.
-These men answered that they could expect no better, and it was of God’s
-mercy that they were not killed before his coming, desiring that he would
-neglect no opportunity to proceed; hereupon he advised them to secrecy
-and to order one third of their company that were farthest off to come
-home, and on pain of death to keep there, himself allowing them a pint
-of Indian corn, to a man, for a day, though that was spared out of our
-feed. The weather proving very wet and stormy, it was the longer before
-he could do any thing.
-
-“In the mean time an Indian came to him and brought some furs, but rather
-to get what he could from the Captain than to trade; and though the
-Captain carried things as smoothly as he could, yet, at his return, the
-Indian reported that he saw by his eyes that he was angry in his heart,
-and therefore began to suspect themselves discovered. This caused one
-Pecksuot, who was a Pinese (chief) being a man of a notable spirit to
-come to Hobamock (Standish’s Indian guide and interpreter) and tell him
-that he understood the Captain was come to kill himself and the rest of
-the savages there: ‘Tell him, said he, we know it, but fear him not,
-neither will we shun him; but let him begin when he dare, he shall not
-take us at unawares.’ Many times after, divers of them, severally or a
-few together, came to the plantation, where they would whet and sharpen
-the point of their knives before his face, and use many other insulting
-gestures and speeches. Among the rest, Wittuwamat bragged of the
-excellency of his knife, on the handle of which was pictured a woman’s
-face. ‘But, said he, I have another at home, wherewith I have killed both
-French and English, and that hath a man’s face on it, and by and by,
-these two must be married.’ Further he said of that knife which he there
-had, _Hinnaim namen, binnaim michen, matta cuts_, that is to say, _by and
-by it should see, by and by it should eat, but not speak_. Also Pecksuot
-being a man of greater stature than the Captain, told him ‘though you are
-a great Captain, yet you are but a little man; though I be no Sachem,
-yet I am a man of great strength and courage.’ These things the Captain
-observed, but, for the present, bore them with patience.
-
-“On the next day, seeing he could not get many of them together at once,
-but Pecksuot and Wittuwamat being together, with another man and the
-brother of Wittuwamat a youth of eighteen, putting many tricks on the
-weaker sort of men, and having about as many of his own men in the same
-room, the Captain gave the word to his men; and the door being fast shut,
-he begun himself with Pecksuot and snatching the knife from his neck,
-after much struggling killed him therewith; the rest killed Wittuwamat
-and the other man; the youth they took and hanged. It is incredible, how
-many wounds these men received, before they died, not making any fearful
-noise, but catching at their weapons, and striving to the last. Hobamock
-stood by as a spectator, observing how our men demeaned themselves in the
-action; which being ended, he, smiling, brake forth and said, ‘Yesterday
-Pecksuot bragged of his own strength and stature, and told you that
-though you were a great Captain, yet you were but a little man; but,
-to-day, I see you are big enough to lay him on the ground.’
-
-“There being some women, at the same time there, Captain Standish left
-them, in the custody of Weston’s people, at the town; and sent word to
-another company, to kill those Indian men that were among them. These
-killed two more; himself with some of his own men, went to another place
-and killed another; but through the negligence of one man, an Indian
-escaped, who discovered and crossed their proceedings.
-
-“Captain Standish took one half of his men with one or two of Weston’s
-and Hobamock, still seeking them. At length they espied a file of
-Indians, making toward them; and, there being a small advantage in the
-ground, by reason of a hill, both companies strove for it. Captain
-Standish got it; whereupon the Indians retreated, and took each man his
-tree, letting fly their arrows amain, especially at himself and Hobamock.
-Whereupon Hobamock cast off his coat, and chased them so fast, that our
-people were not able to hold way with him. They could have but one
-certain mark, the arm and half the face of a notable villain, as he drew
-his bow at Captain Standish, who with another, both discharged at him,
-and brake his arm. Whereupon, they fled into a swamp; when they were
-in the thicket, they parlied but got nothing but foul language. So our
-Captain dared the Sachem to come out and fight like a man, showing how
-base and woman-like he was, in tonguing it as he did; but he refused and
-fled. So the Captain returned to the plantation; where he released the
-women and took not their beaver coats from them, nor suffered the least
-discourtesy to be offered them.
-
-“Now were Weston’s people resolved to leave the plantation, and go to
-Monhegan, hoping to get passage and return to England with the fishing
-ships. The Captain told them, that for his own part, he durst live there
-with fewer men than they were; yet since they were otherwise minded,
-according to his orders from the Governor and people of Plymouth, he
-would help them with corn, which he did, scarce leaving himself more than
-brought them home. Some of them disliked to go to Monhegan; and desiring
-to go with him to Plymouth, he took them into the shallop; and seeing
-the others set sail, and clear of Massachusetts Bay, he took leave and
-returned to Plymouth, bringing the head of Wittuwamat, which was set up
-on the fort.
-
-“This sudden and unexpected execution, hath so terrified and amazed the
-other people who intended to join with the Massachusencks against us,
-that they forsook their houses, running to and fro like men distracted;
-living in swamps, and other desert places, and so brought diseases
-upon themselves, whereof many are dead; as Canacum, Sachem of Manomet;
-Aspinet, of Nauset; and Ianough, of Matachiest. This Sachem, (Ianough)
-in the midst of these distractions, said, ‘the God of the English was
-offended with them, and would destroy them in his anger.’ From one of
-these places, a boat was sent with presents to the Governor, hoping
-thereby to work their peace; but the boat was lost, and three of the
-people drowned; only one escaped, who returned; so that none of them
-durst come among us.”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-SINGULAR EXPEDIENT OF COLUMBUS
-
-
-In one of his later voyages at sea he met with tempestuous weather of
-long continuance, in which his ships were so shattered, that with the
-utmost difficulty he kept them above water, till he ran them ashore on
-the island of Jamaica. By his extraordinary address, he procured from the
-natives two of their largest canoes; in which two of his most faithful
-friends, Mendez and Fiesco, accompanied by some of his sailors and a
-few Indians, embarked for Hispaniola. After encountering the greatest
-difficulties in their passage, they carried tidings of his misfortune to
-Ovando, and solicited his aid. The merciless wretch detained them eight
-months, without an answer; during which time, Columbus suffered the
-severest hardships, from the discontent of his company, and the want of
-provisions. By the hospitality of the natives, he at first received such
-supplies, as they were able to spare; but the long continuance of these
-guests had diminished their store, and the insolence of the mutineers
-gave a check to their friendship. In this extremity, the fertile
-invention of Columbus suggested an expedient which proved successful.
-He knew that a total eclipse of the moon was at hand, which would be
-visible in the evening. On the preceding day, he sent for the principal
-Indians, to speak with them, on a matter of the utmost importance.
-Being assembled, he directed his interpreter to tell them, that the
-God of heaven, whom he worshipped, was angry with them, for withholding
-provision from him, and would punish them with famine and pestilence;
-as a token of which, the moon would, in the evening, appear of an
-angry and bloody colour. Some of them received his speech with terror,
-and others with indifference; but when the moon rose, and the eclipse
-increased as she advanced from the horizon, they came in crowds, loaded
-with provision, and begged the Admiral to intercede with his God, for
-the removal of his anger. Columbus retired to his cabin; and when the
-eclipse began to go off, he came out and told them, that he had prayed
-to his God, and had received this answer; that if they would be good for
-the future, and bring him provision as he should want, God would forgive
-them; and as a token of it, the moon would put on her usual brightness.
-They gave him thanks, and promised compliance; and whilst he remained on
-the island there was no more want of provision.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-ADVENTURES OF JAMES CARTIER IN CANADA.
-
-
-After spending some time in exploring the northern coast, to find an
-opening to the northward; in the beginning of September, 1535, he sailed
-up the river St. Lawrence and discovered several islands; one of which,
-from the multitude of filberts, he called Coudres; and another, from the
-vast quantity of grapes, he named Bacchus, (now Orleans.) This island was
-full of inhabitants who subsisted by fishing.
-
-When the ships had come to anchor between the N. W. side of the island
-and the main, Cartier went on shore with his two young Savages. The
-people of the country were at first afraid of them; but hearing the
-youths speak to them in their own language, they became sociable, and
-brought eels and other fish, with a quantity of Indian corn in ears,
-for the refreshment of their new guests; in return for which, they were
-presented with such European baubles as were pleasing to them.
-
-The next day, Donacona, the prince of the place, came to visit them,
-attended by twelve boats; but, keeping ten of them at a distance, he
-approached with two only, containing sixteen men. In the true spirit of
-hospitality, he made a speech, accompanied with significant gestures,
-welcoming the French to his country and offering his service to them.
-The young savages, Taignoagni and Domagaia answered him, reporting all
-which they had seen in France, at which he appeared to be pleased.
-Then approaching the Captain, who held out his hand, he kissed it, and
-laid it round his own neck, in token of friendship. Cartier, on his
-part, entertained Donacona with bread and wine, and they parted mutually
-pleased.
-
-The next day Cartier went up in his boat to find a harbour for his ships;
-the season being so far advanced that it became necessary to secure them.
-At the west end of the isle of Bacchus, he found “a goodly and pleasant
-sound, where is a little river and haven; about three fathom deep at high
-water.” To this he gave the name of St. Croix, and determined there to
-lay up his ships.
-
-Near this place was a village called Stadacona, of which Donacona was
-the Lord. It was environed with forest trees, some of which bore fruit;
-and under the trees, was a growth of wild hemp. As Cartier was returning
-to his ships, he had another specimen of the hospitable manners of the
-natives. A company of people, of both sexes, met him on the shore of the
-little river, singing and dancing up to their knees in water. In return
-for their courtesy, he gave them knives and beads; and they continued
-their music till he was beyond hearing it.
-
-When Cartier had brought his ships to the harbour and secured them, he
-intimated his intention to pass in his boats up the river to Hochelaga.
-Donacona was loath to part with him; and invented several artifices to
-prevent his going thither. Among others, he contrived to dress three
-of his men in black and white skins, with horns on their heads, and
-their faces besmeared with coal, to make them resemble infernal spirits.
-They were put into a canoe and passed by the ships; brandishing their
-horns and making an unintelligible harangue. Donacona, with his people,
-pursued and took them, on which they fell down as if dead. They were
-carried ashore into the woods, and all the savages followed them. A long
-discourse ensued, and the conclusion of the farce was, that these demons
-had brought news from the God of Hochelaga, that his country was so full
-of snow and ice, that whoever should adventure thither would perish with
-the cold. The artifice afforded diversion to the French, but was too
-thin to deceive them. Cartier determined to proceed; and on the 19th of
-September, with his pinnace and two boats, began his voyage up the river
-to Hochelaga.
-
-Among the woods on the margin of the river were many vines loaded
-with ripe grapes, than which nothing could be a more welcome sight to
-Frenchmen, though the fruit was not so delicious as they had been used
-to taste in their own country. Along the banks were many huts of the
-natives; who made signs of joy as they passed; presented them with fish;
-piloted them through narrow channels; carried them ashore on their backs,
-and helped them to get off their boats when aground. Some presented their
-children to them, and such as were of proper age were accepted.
-
-The water at that time of the year being low, their passage was rendered
-difficult; but by the friendly assistance of the natives they surmounted
-the obstructions. On the 28th of September they passed the rapids between
-the islands in the upper part of the lake Angoleme, (now called St.
-Peter’s) and on the second of October they arrived at the island of
-Hochelaga; where they had been expected, and preparations were made to
-give them a welcome reception. About a thousand persons came to meet
-them, singing and dancing, the men on one side, the women on the other,
-and the children in a distinct body. Presents of fish and other victuals
-were brought, and in return were given knives, beads and other trinkets.
-The Frenchmen lodged the first night in their boats, and the natives
-watched on the shore, dancing round their fires during the whole night.
-
-The next morning Cartier, with twenty-five of his company, went to visit
-the town, and were met on the way by a person of distinction, who bade
-them welcome. To him they gave two hatchets and two knives, and hung over
-his neck a cross which they taught him to kiss. As they proceeded, they
-passed through groves of oak, from which the acorns were fallen and lay
-thick on the ground. After this they came to fields of ripe corn, some of
-which was gathered. In the midst of these fields was situate the town of
-Hochelaga.
-
-It was of a round form, encompassed with three lines of palisades,
-through which was one entrance, well secured with stakes and bars. On the
-inside was a rampart of timber, to which were ascents by ladders, and
-heaps of stones were laid in proper places for defence. In the town were
-about fifty long huts built with stakes and covered with bark. In the
-middle of each hut was a fire, round which were lodging places, floored
-with bark and covered with skins. In the upper part was a scaffold, on
-which they dried and preserved their corn. To prepare it for eating,
-they pounded it in wooden mortars, and having mixed it with water, baked
-it on hot stones. Besides corn they had beans, squashes and pumpkins.
-They dried their fish and preserved them in troughs. These people lived
-chiefly by tillage and fishing, and seldom went far from home. Those on
-the lower parts of the river were more given to hunting, and considered
-the Lord of Hochelaga as their sovereign, to whom they paid tribute.
-
-When the new guests were conducted to an open square in the centre of the
-town, the females came to them, rubbing their hands and faces, weeping
-with joy at their arrival, and bringing their children to be touched by
-the strangers. They spread mats for them on the ground, whilst the men
-seated themselves in a large circle on the outside. The King was then
-brought in a litter, on the shoulders of ten men, and placed on a mat
-next to the French Captain. He was about fifty years old, and had no
-mark of distinction but a coronet made of porcupine’s quills dyed red;
-which he took off and gave to the Captain, requesting him to rub his
-arms and legs which were trembling with a palsy. Several persons, blind,
-lame, and withered with age, were also brought to be touched; as if they
-supposed that their new guests were messengers from heaven invested with
-a power of healing diseases. Cartier gratified them as well as he could,
-by laying his hands on them and repeating some devotional passages from a
-service book, which he had in his pocket; accompanying his ejaculations
-with significant gestures, and lifting up his eyes to heaven. The natives
-attentively observed and imitated all his motions.
-
-Having performed this ceremony, he desired men, women and children to
-arrange themselves in separate bodies. To the men he gave hatchets, to
-the women beads, and to the children rings. He then ordered his drums
-and trumpets to sound, which highly pleased the company and set them to
-dancing.
-
-Being desirous of ascending the hill, under which the town was built, the
-natives conducted them to the summit; where they were entertained with a
-most extensive and beautiful prospect of mountains, woods, islands and
-waters. They observed the course of the river above, and some falls of
-water in it; and the natives informed them that they might sail on it for
-three months; that it ran through two or three great lakes, beyond which
-was a sea of fresh water, to which they knew of no bounds; and that on
-the other side of the mountains there was another river which ran in a
-contrary direction to the south-west, through a country full of delicious
-fruits and free from snow and ice; that there was found such metal as
-the Captain’s _silver_ whistle and the haft of a dagger belonging to one
-of the company which was gilt with _gold_. Being shown some copper, they
-pointed to the northward, and said it came from Saguenay. To this hill
-Cartier gave the name of _Montreal_, which it has ever since retained.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-MILLY FRANCIS.
-
-
-Duncan M’Krimmon, (a resident of Milledgeville, a Georgia militia man,
-stationed at Fort Gadsden,) being out one morning on a fishing excursion,
-in attempting to return, missed his way, and was several days lost in
-the surrounding wilderness. After wandering about in various directions
-he was espied and captured by a party of hostile Indians, headed by the
-well known prophet Francis. The Indians having obtained the satisfaction
-they wanted respecting the determination of government, the position of
-the American army, &c. they began to prepare for the intended sacrifice.
-M’Krimmon was bound to a stake, and the ruthless savages having shaved
-his head and reduced his body to a state of nudity, formed themselves
-into a circle and danced round him some hours, yelling most horribly. The
-youngest daughter of the prophet, about fifteen years of age, remained
-sad and silent the whole time. She participated not in the general joy,
-but was evidently, even to the affrighted prisoner, much pained at the
-savage scene she was compelled to witness. When the burning torches were
-about to be applied to the fagots which encompassed the prisoner, and
-the fatal tomahawk was raised to terminate forever his mortal existence,
-Milly Francis, (for that was her name,) like an angel of mercy, placed
-herself between it and death, resolutely bidding the astonished
-executioner, if he thirsted for human blood, to shed hers; being
-determined, she said, not to survive the prisoner’s death. A momentary
-pause was produced by this unexpected occurrence, and she took advantage
-of the circumstance to implore upon her knees the pity of the ferocious
-father, who finally yielded to her wishes; with the intention, however,
-it is suspected, of murdering them both, if he could not sell M’Krimmon
-to the Spaniards; which was luckily effected a few days after at St.
-Marks, for seven gallons and a half of rum. As long as M’Krimmon remained
-a prisoner his benefactress continued to show him acts of kindness. The
-fortune of war since placed her in the power of the white people, being
-compelled, with a number of others of her tribe who were in a starving
-condition, to surrender themselves prisoners. As soon as this fact was
-known to M’Krimmon, in manifestation of a due sense of the obligation
-which he owed to the woman who saved his life, at the hazard of her own,
-he sought her to alleviate her misfortune, and to offer her marriage; but
-Milly would not consent to become his wife as a consideration of having
-saved his life, declaring that she did no more than her duty, and that
-her intercessions were the same as they would ever have been on similar
-occasions.
-
-
-
-
-ADVENTURES OF SIMON BUTLER AMONG THE INDIANS.
-
-
-Simon Kenton, _alias_ Butler, from humble beginnings, made himself
-conspicuous by distinguished services and achievements, in the first
-settlement of this country, and ought to be recorded as one of the
-patriarchs of Kentucky. He was born in Virginia, in 1753. He grew
-to maturity without being able to read or write; but from his early
-exploits, he seems to have been endowed with feelings, which the
-educated, and those born in the upper walks of life appear to suppose
-a monopoly reserved for themselves. It is recorded of him, that at the
-age of nineteen he had a violent contest with another competitor for the
-favour of the lady of his love. She refused to make an election between
-them; and the subject of this notice indignantly exiled himself from
-his native place. After various peregrinations on the long rivers of
-the west, he fixed himself in Kentucky, and soon became a distinguished
-partizan against the savages. In 1774, he joined himself to Lord Dunmore,
-and was appointed one of his spies. He made various excursions, and
-performed important services in this employ. He finally selected a place
-for improvement on the site where Washington now is. Returning one day
-from hunting, he found one of his companions slain by the Indians, and
-his body thrown into the fire. He left Washington in consequence, and
-joined himself to Colonel Clark in his fortunate and gallant expedition
-against Vincennes and Kaskaskia. He was sent by that commander with
-despatches for Kentucky. He passed through the streets of Vincennes, then
-in possession of the British and Indians, without discovery. Arriving at
-White river, he and his party made a raft, on which to cross with their
-guns and baggage, driving their horses into the river, and compelling
-them to swim it. A party of Indians was concealed on the opposite bank,
-who took possession of the horses as they mounted the bank, after
-crossing the river. Butler and his company seeing this, continued
-to float down the river on their raft, without coming to land. They
-concealed themselves in the bushes until night, when they crossed the
-river, pursued their journey, and delivered their despatches.
-
-After this, Butler made a journey of discovery to the northern regions
-of the Ohio country, and was made prisoner by the Indians. They painted
-him black, as is their custom, when a victim is devoted to torture; and
-informed him that he was destined to be burned at Chillicothe. Meanwhile,
-for their own amusement, and as a prelude to his torture, they manacled
-him hand and foot, placed him on an unbridled and unbroken horse, and
-turned the animal loose, driving it off at its utmost speed, with shouts,
-delighted with witnessing its mode of managing under its living burden.
-The horse, unable to shake off this new and strange incumbrance, made
-for the thickest covert of woods and brambles, with the speed of the
-winds. It is easy to conjecture the position and sufferings of the
-victim. The terrified animal exhausted itself in fruitless efforts to
-shake off its load, and worn down and subdued, brought Butler back to the
-camp amidst the exulting yells of the savages.
-
-Having arrived within a mile of Chillicothe, they halted, took Butler
-from his horse, and tied him to a stake, where he remained twenty-four
-hours in one position. He was taken from the stake to ‘run the gauntlet.’
-The Indian mode of managing this kind of torture was as follows: The
-inhabitants of the tribe, old and young, were placed in parallel lines,
-armed with clubs and switches. The victim was to make his way to the
-council house, through these files, every member of which struggled
-to beat him, as he passed, as severely as possible. If he reached the
-council house alive, he was to be spared. In the lines were nearly six
-hundred Indians, and Butler had to make his way almost a mile in the
-endurance of this infernal sport. He was started by a blow; but soon
-broke through the files, and had almost reached the council house, when
-a stout warrior knocked him down with a club. He was severely beaten in
-this position, and taken back again into custody.
-
-It seems incredible, that they sometimes rescued their prisoners from
-these tortures, adopted them, and treated them with the utmost lenity
-and even kindness. At other times, ingenuity was exhausted to invent
-tortures, and every renewed endurance of the victim seemed to stimulate
-their vengeance to new discoveries of cruelty. Butler was one of these
-ill-fated subjects. No way satisfied with what they had done, they
-marched him from village to village, to give all a spectacle of his
-sufferings. He ran the gauntlet thirteen times. He made various attempts
-to escape; and in one instance would have effected it, had he not been
-arrested by some savages who were accidentally returning to the village
-from which he was escaping. It was finally determined to burn him at the
-lower Sandusky, but an apparent accident changed his destiny.
-
-In passing to the stake, the procession went by the cabin of Simon Girty,
-who had just returned from an unsuccessful expedition to the frontiers
-of Pennsylvania. The wretch burned with disappointment and revenge; and
-hearing that there was a white man going to the torture, determined to
-wreak his vengeance on him. He found the unfortunate Butler, threw him
-to the ground, and began to beat him. Butler, who instantly recognized
-in Girty a former companion of his youth, made himself known to him.
-His savage heart relented. He raised him up, and promised to use his
-influence to save him. Girty had a council called, and he moved the
-savages to give Butler up to him. He took the unfortunate man home,
-fed, and clothed him, and Butler began to recruit from his wounds
-and torture. But the relenting of the savages in his favour was only
-momentary. After five days, they repented of their relaxation in his
-favour, reclaimed him, and marched him to Lower Sandusky to be burned,
-according to their original purpose. By a surprising coincidence, he
-there met the Indian agent from Detroit, who from motives of humanity,
-exerted his influence with the savages for his release, and took him with
-him to Detroit. Here he was paroled by the governor. He escaped, and by a
-march of thirty days through the wilderness, reached Kentucky.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-INGENUITY IN TORTURE.
-
-
-An instance of the keenness of Indian ingenuity, in the invention of
-original modes of torture, is given in Flint’s Indian Wars. The Indians
-captured a young man of the name of Moses Hewitt, who lived on the
-Little Hock hocking, and was a member of the Marietta settlement. He
-was remarkable for the suppleness of his limbs, and the swiftness of
-his running. The Indians tested him with their champion racers, and,
-although he could not have run with much spirit, under his depressing
-circumstances, he easily vanquished them all in swiftness. They affected
-to be pleased, but their envy was piqued. They were destitute of
-provisions, and wished to secure their swift-footed prisoner, while they
-were occupied in their hunt. With this view, and probably to torture
-him at the same time, they fastened his wrists by crossing them, and
-binding them firmly with a cord. They then tied his arms to a stake, so
-as partly to raise the upper part of his body. They fastened his legs in
-the same way, and partly cut off a young sapling, bending it down, so
-that the weight of the lower part of his body would be a counterpoise to
-the elastic force of the curved tree. Thus was he partially raised by his
-hands and feet, in a way most horribly painful; and yet in a position
-where death would be slow in arriving to his release. It was like the
-torture of killing by dropping water on the head. Fortunately the young
-man had remarkably slender wrist bones. When left alone to meditate upon
-his terrible situation, he contrived, not without disengaging the skin
-and flesh from his wrists, to disentangle his arms from their manacles,
-and finally his legs. He picked up a little of the scraps of jerked meat,
-which the Indians had left. To baffle their pursuit and that of their
-dogs, he ran on the bodies of fallen trees, and meandered his course in
-every direction. Such was the adroitness of his management, that he put
-them completely at fault, escaped them, and came in to the settlement
-of Marietta, wounded, his flesh torn and mangled, and emaciated to a
-skeleton—a living proof how much man can survive before he suffers the
-mortal pang. He had been absent fourteen days.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-OSCEOLA.
-
-
-On one occasion, Osceola acted as guide to a party of horsemen, and
-finding that, at starting, they proceeded slowly, he enquired the cause.
-On being told that it was on his account, with one of those smiles he
-alone can give, he bade them proceed more rapidly. They put spurs to
-their steeds, and he, a-foot, kept up with them during the entire route,
-nor did he exhibit the slightest symptoms of fatigue, at the close of
-day, but arrived at the point proposed, as early as the mounted body. To
-Col. Gadsden, sole Commissioner at the Treaty of Payne’s Landing, Osceola
-rendered good service, at the head of thirty or forty warriors, posting
-himself nearer to the Colonel’s position than the other Indians, and
-saying, he was more like the white man than they. He did not sign the
-treaty then and there made, nor did he refuse so to do. The fact is, he
-was never asked to subscribe his name thereto, being at that time, but a
-Tustenugge and of little note. This treaty must not be confounded with
-the subsequent agreement that Osceola finally signed, and into which he
-is said to have plunged his knife, when called on for his signature. The
-negotiations at Payne’s landing were in the time of Tuckasee Emathla, or
-the Ground Mole Warrior, Chief of the Micasuky tribe. At that date it was
-not known of Powell, as Cotton Mather says of Roger Williams, that “the
-whole country was soon like to be set on fire by the rapid motion of a
-wind mill in the head of this one man.”
-
-
-
-
-GRATITUDE OF OSCEOLA.
-
-
-Osceola’s agency, and that of his Lieutenant Tom, in Omathla’s death,
-and his killing Gen. Thompson, with the rifle presented him by the
-General, militate against the favourable estimate of his character. But
-that all his goodly feelings were not utterly eradicated, is proven
-by an incident, in the interview with Gen. Gaines’ command. On that
-occasion, Osceola anxiously inquired after Lieut. John Grahame, and on
-being informed that he was wounded, stoutly denied it. On being asked
-why he was so positive that Lieut. G. was unhurt, he replied that he had
-imperatively ordered his people never to molest that young man, and he
-knew no one who would dare disobey him; none should, and live! It was
-then admitted, that though the brothers, Grahame, had been wounded, yet
-Lt. G. had escaped injury; at which admission Osceola greatly joyed. It
-seems that Powell has a little daughter, to whom Lt. G. was kind, and had
-presented with frocks, in which the young girl, who grew very fond of
-him, always insisted on being dressed, whenever she perceived Lieut. G.
-(for whom she often looked out) coming to visit her. Osceola’s motive in
-sparing Lieut. G. was gratitude for attention to his child, which he also
-endeavored to repay by teaching the Lieut. the Indian language, for he
-spoke a little English, and was very intelligent.
-
-
-
-
-THE CROWNING OF POWHATAN.
-
-
-The Virginia company in London, deceived by false reports, and misled
-by their own sanguine imaginations, had conceived an expectation not
-only of finding precious metals in the country, but of discovering the
-South Sea, from the mountains at the head of James-river; and it was
-thought, that the journey thither, might be performed in eight or ten
-days. For the purpose of making this capital discovery, they put on
-board Newport’s ship, a barge capable of being taken to pieces, and put
-together again at pleasure. This barge was to make a voyage to the head
-of the river, then to be carried in pieces across the mountains, and to
-descend the rivers which were supposed to run westward to the South Sea.
-To facilitate this plan, it was necessary to gain the favour of Powhatan,
-through whose country the passage must be made; and as means of winning
-him, a royal present was brought over, consisting of a bason and ewer,
-a bed and furniture, a chair of state, a suit of scarlet clothes, with
-a cloak and a crown, all which were to be presented to him in due form;
-and the crown placed on his head, with as much solemnity as possible. To
-a person who knew the country and its inhabitants so well as Smith, this
-project appeared chimerical, and the means whereby it was to be carried
-on, dangerous. With a small quantity of copper and a few beads, he could
-have kept Powhatan in good humour, and made an advantage of it for the
-colony, whereas a profusion of presents he knew would but increase his
-pride and insolence. The project of travelling over unknown mountains
-with men already weakened by sickness, and worn out with fatigue, in
-a hot climate, and in the midst of enemies, who might easily cut off
-their retreat, was too romantic even for his sanguine and adventurous
-spirit. His opinion upon the matter cannot be expressed in more pointed
-language, than he used in a letter to the company. “If the quartered
-boat was burned to ashes, _one_ might carry her in a bag, but as she is,
-five hundred cannot, to a navigable place above the falls.” His dissent
-however was ineffectual, and when he found that the voice of the council
-was for executing it, he lent his assistance to effect as much of it as
-was practicable.
-
-Previously to their setting out, he undertook, with four men only, to
-carry notice to Powhatan of the intended present, and invite him to come
-to James-Town, that he might receive it there. Having travelled by land
-twelve miles to Werocomoco, on Pamunky (York) river, where he expected
-to meet Powhatan, and not finding him there, whilst a messenger was
-dispatched thirty miles for him; his daughter Pocahontas, entertained
-Smith and his company with a dance, which for its singularity, merits a
-particular description.
-
-In an open plain, a fire being made, the gentlemen were seated by it.
-Suddenly a noise was heard in the adjacent wood, which made them fly
-to their arms, and seize on two or three old men, as hostages for their
-own security, imagining that they were betrayed. Upon this the young
-princess came running to Smith, and passionately embracing him, offered
-herself to be killed, if any harm should happen to him or his company.
-Her assurances, seconded by all the Indians present, removed their
-fears. The noise which had alarmed them, was made by thirty girls, who
-were preparing for the intended ceremony. Immediately they made their
-appearance, with no other covering than a girdle of green leaves and
-their skins painted, each one of a different colour. Their leader had
-a pair of buck’s horns on her head, an otter’s skin as her girdle, and
-another on one arm; a bow and arrow in the other hand, and a quiver at
-her back. The rest of them had horns on their heads, and a wooden sword
-or staff in their hands. With shouting and singing, they formed a ring
-round the fire, and performed a circular dance for about an hour, after
-which they retired in the same order as they had advanced. The dance was
-followed by a feast, at which the savage nymphs were as eager with their
-caresses as with their attendance; and this being ended, they conducted
-the gentlemen to their lodging by the light of fire brands.
-
-The next day Powhatan arrived, and Smith delivered the message from his
-father, Newport (as he always called him) to this effect. “That he had
-brought him from the King of England, a royal present, and wished to
-see him at James-Town, that he might deliver it to him; promising to
-assist him in prosecuting his revenge against the Monacans, whose country
-they would penetrate even to the sea beyond the mountains.” To which the
-savage prince with equal subtility and haughtiness, answered, “If your
-King has sent me a present, I also am a King, and am on my own land. I
-will stay here eight days. Your father must come to me, I will not go to
-him, nor to your fort. As for the Monacans, I am able to revenge myself.
-If you have heard of salt water beyond the mountains, from any of my
-people, they have deceived you.” Then with a stick he drew a plan of that
-region on the ground; and after many compliments the conference ended.
-
-The present being put on board the boats, was carried down James-river
-and up the Pamunky, whilst Newport, with fifty men, went across by land
-and met the boats, in which he passed the river, and held the proposed
-interview. All things being prepared for the ceremony of coronation, the
-present was brought from the boats; the bason and ewer were deposited,
-the bed and chair were set up, the scarlet suit and cloak were put on,
-though not till Namontac (an Indian youth whom Newport had carried to
-England and brought back again) had assured him that these habiliments
-would do him no harm; but they had great difficulty in persuading him to
-receive the crown, nor would he bend his knee, or incline his head in
-the least degree. After many attempts, and with actual pressing on his
-shoulders, they at last made him stoop a little and put it on. Instantly,
-a signal being given, the men in the boats fired a volley, at which the
-monarch started with horror, imagining that a design was forming to
-destroy him in the summit of his glory; but being assured that it was
-meant as a compliment, his fear subsided, and in return for the baubles
-of royalty received from King James, he desired Newport to present him
-his old fur mantle and deer skin shoes, which in his estimation were
-doubtless a full equivalent; since all this finery could not prevail
-on the wary chief to allow them guides for the discovery of the inland
-country, or to approve their design of visiting it. Thus disappointed
-they returned to James-Town, determined to proceed without his assistance.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-[Illustration: Florida Indians.
-
-Page 167.]
-
-
-
-
-THE FLORIDA INDIANS.
-
-
-The Palarches, Eamuses and Kaloosas, were the ancient possessors of
-Florida, and are all extinct. The present Florida Indians are the remains
-of that ancient and warlike tribe on the Mississippi, which being almost
-extirpated by the French, retreated along the Northern coast of the Gulf
-of Mexico, and united with broken bands of Biloxies, Red Sticks, and
-runaway Creeks, called Seminoles. The largest portion of these Indians
-are Lower Creeks, and are of the most dissolute, daring, and abandoned of
-that tribe.
-
-The word Seminole signifies a wanderer or runaway, or it means a wild
-people or outsettlers, the ancestors of the tribe having detached
-themselves from the main body of the Creeks, and dwelt remotely, wherever
-the inducements of more game, or greater scope for freedom of action,
-might casually lead them. They settled in Florida about 115 years ago.
-
-That this is the period of their becoming a separate community, is
-confirmed by the connection of their history with that of the Yemasees,
-of whom there occur frequent notices in the account of the early
-settlement of Georgia and South Carolina.
-
-In a talk, which the Seminoles about the year 1820, transmitted to the
-American government, they say, alluding to their ancient independence:
-“An hundred summers have seen the Seminole warrior reposing undisturbed
-under the shade of his live oak, and the suns of an hundred winters
-have risen on his ardent pursuit of the buck and the bear, with none to
-question his bounds, or dispute his range.”
-
-The greater part of East Florida appears to have been originally in
-possession of the Yemasees—a powerful people, who not only occupied this
-province, but spread themselves over Georgia, and into the limits of
-South Carolina, which on its first demarcation was bounded on the South
-by the Altamaha. Some of the tribes resided within the present limits of
-that State, in and about Beaufort and Savannah River, and also the Sea
-Islands. Bartram relates that these people, after a hardy contest, and
-many bloody defeats, were nearly exterminated by their ancient enemies
-the Creeks, who had a tradition, that a beautiful race of Indians, whose
-women they called Daughters of the Sun, resided amidst the recesses of
-the great Oakefanokee wilderness, where they enjoyed perpetual felicity,
-in ever blooming islands, inaccessible to human approach.
-
-Bartram with probability supposes, that this fable took its rise from a
-fugitive remnant of the Yemasees, who found a refuge in this swamp, and
-were perhaps, after a lapse of years, accidentally seen by some of the
-hunters of the Creek nation.
-
-There is frequent mention, in the early colonial history of South
-Carolina of wars between the first settlers and the Yemasees, the latter
-having been excited to attack the Colony by the Spanish authorities in
-St. Augustine.
-
-A formidable war was kindled by these people, which would have proved
-destructive to the infant settlement of Carolina, had not timely
-intimation of the danger been obtained by means of one of the outsettlers
-to whom Sanute, a chief of the hostile Indians, from a feeling of
-friendship, gave notice of the impending attack. On this occasion the
-Indians were defeated by Gov. Grant, and driven out of the province. Dr.
-Ramsay mentions that the Yemasees retired into Florida, to which country
-they seem to have been subsequently restricted by the increasing power of
-the whites, and by the Creeks. No further mention of them occurs, until
-the Seminoles came into notice, by whom they were conquered, and nearly
-exterminated, in 1721, in the manner mentioned by Bartram. When in the
-year 1715, the Yemasees were driven within the limits of Florida, they
-became slaves to the Seminoles. Another account states, that the Yemasees
-left St. Augustine in a body, in 1722; or rather were expelled by the
-Spaniards, who essayed in vain to compel them to labours which were
-regarded as degrading drudgeries by the warriors of Yemasee.
-
-The Yemasees were remarkably black people, and the Ocklewahaw tribe,
-who are of a deeper shade than the Seminoles, are descendants of the
-conquered race. The chief of the Ocklewahaws, Yaha Hadgo, who was killed
-by General Shelton in the campaign of ’36, was very dark; but generally,
-the Seminole’s complexion is like that of the Creeks.
-
-Under King Payne, grandfather of Micconope, (the present Chief) the
-Seminoles invaded and achieved the conquest of the territories they
-lately occupied. He lived to near 100 years of age, and married a Yemasee
-woman, his slave, by whom he had the late chief Payne, who bore, in the
-darkness of his complexion, a proof of his Yemasee descent.
-
-The Indians were formerly very numerous in Florida, perhaps as much so
-as in Mexico. They are now reduced to comparatively small bands, in few
-villages.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-GENERAL JACKSON’S CONQUEST OF THE INDIANS.
-
-
-An artful impostor, Tecumseh of the Shawnees, a man of most extraordinary
-abilities and consummate address, conceived the bold design of an union
-of the red against the white population of America, under a hope that by
-a general and continued assault along the whole line of our frontiers,
-the future extension of settlements might be checked, if the present
-inhabitants could not be driven into the ocean. Assuming the attributes
-of a prophet, and, among other things, assisted by the fortuitous
-occurrence of an earthquake, of which he had hazarded a prediction, a
-confidence began to be reposed in the sacredness of his character and
-mission. A majority of the Creek nation were enlisted in his cause,
-and the storm of an exterminating savage war hung over the West. Its
-first explosion was on Fort Mims, a rude stockade defence, into which
-the Southern inhabitants of Alabama had lately retreated for security.
-More than 300 persons, including women and children, fell victims to
-savage barbarity. “The slaughter was indiscriminate; mercy was extended
-to none, and the tomahawk often transfixed mother and child at the same
-stroke. But seventeen of the whole number in the fort, escaped to give
-intelligence of the dreadful catastrophe.” In the midst of an alarm which
-such an inhuman outrage was calculated to excite, the eyes of Tennessee
-were turned on Jackson. Though confined at this period to his house by
-a fractured arm, his characteristic firmness did not desert him, and he
-cheerfully yielded to a second call for his services in the cause of his
-country. Two thousand militia were ordered to assemble at Fayetteville in
-Tennessee, in addition to five hundred cavalry previously raised under
-the command of Gen. Coffee.
-
-The alarming accounts of the concentration of the forces of the enemy,
-with a view of deluging the frontier in blood, compelled General Jackson
-(though individually in a most disabled state of body) to take the field
-before the ranks of his army had been filled, or his troops organized.
-
-With this undisciplined force, he prepared for active operations; but the
-wisest dispositions were counteracted, and all his movements embarrassed,
-by the failure of unfeeling and speculating contractors.
-
-The enemy were gathering strength, and on the advance; they had already
-threatened a fort of Indian allies. In this situation, to retreat was to
-abandon our frontier citizens to the mercy of savages; to advance, was
-with the certainty of exposure to every privation.
-
-Jackson hesitated not on the alternative, and with but six days’ rations
-of meat, and less than two of meal, he moved with his army upon the
-Coosa; and, with Coffee’s command, gave a most decisive blow to the enemy
-at Tallushatchee, in less than twenty-five days after he had marched
-from the rendezvous at Fayetteville. The loss of the Creeks in this
-engagement, was 186 killed, and 84 prisoners.
-
-Though compelled by the want of supplies to return to his depots on the
-frontier, we find him in less than six weeks in the field, at the well
-fought battle of Talledega, and in the subsequent conflicts at Emuckfau,
-Enotichopco, and Tohopka, annihilating the hopes and expectations of the
-Creeks, and crushing the hydra of savage hostility in the South.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-MASSACRE OF MR. COOLY’S FAMILY.
-
-
-On the 6th of January, 1836, whilst Mr. Cooly was from home, a party
-of about thirty Indians made an attack upon his family, settled at
-New River, about 12 miles from Cape Florida. They murdered his wife,
-three children, and a Mr. Flinton, who was employed as their teacher.
-The children were sitting in the hall, getting their lessons, when the
-Indians came up by stealth, and shot them down. Flinton was killed on
-the threshold of the door; the little girl about eleven years old was
-found dead, with her book in her hand. As soon as the firing commenced,
-Mrs. Cooly snatched up her infant child, and endeavoured to effect their
-escape by a back way. She was shot at a distance of about one hundred and
-fifty yards from the house: the ball entered between her shoulders, and
-after passing through her breast, broke the arm of the child which was
-cradled on her bosom. The little boy, about eight or nine years of age,
-was found in the yard with his skull and arm fractured, probably done
-with a billet of wood. Having destroyed all of the white inhabitants,
-they shot the cattle, plundered the house of property worth from one
-thousand to twelve hundred dollars, took away two negroes and all the
-horses, and finally set fire to the house.
-
-The circumstances attending the murder of Mr. Cooly’s family, are well
-calculated to illustrate the treachery of the Indian character. He
-had resided among them for many years, spoke their language well, and
-treated them with uniform kindness and hospitality. Indeed, such was his
-friendship for them, that he named two of his sons after their chiefs
-Alnomock and Montezuma. His wife had once been a captive among them,
-and was esteemed a great favourite. Standing in this relation, and
-confiding in their professions of friendship, which lulled him into a
-fatal security, he left his home for a few days, and returned to find it
-desolate. It is a remarkable fact, that the villains who perpetrated the
-deed of death, had not the hardihood to scalp the poor mother and her
-three innocent children. Was it the recollection of former friendship,
-that induced them thus to spare? Or were they conscious that their own
-savage colleagues would have blushed for the chivalry of those warriors,
-who could find no work more befitting their tomahawks and scalping
-knives, than the cruel butchery of women and children? Did they fear that
-some chief, more feeling than the rest, would ask,
-
- “Oh wherefore strike the beautiful, the young,
- So innocent, unharming? Lift the knife,
- If need be, ’gainst the warrior; but forbear
- The trembling woman.”
-
-The unfortunate schoolmaster shared a different fate. To him they owed
-no obligations of friendship; he was a man, and as such, capable of
-resistance; his scalp was therefore torn from him, and borne off as a
-testimony of their savage triumph.
-
-
-
-
-PHYSICAL CHARACTER OF THE INDIANS.
-
-
-In their physical character, the American Indians are considered by
-Blumenbach as forming a particular variety of the human species,
-differing, though not very widely, from the Mongolian. Believing, as we
-do, that the New World was peopled from the Old, and considering that the
-Mongol race was situated nearest to the point where Asia and America come
-almost into contact, we incline to ascribe these variations merely to a
-change of outward circumstances. The face is broad and flat, with high
-cheek-bones; more rounded and arched, however, than in the allied type,
-without having the visage expanded to the same breadth. The forehead
-is generally low; the eyes deep, small, and black; the nose rather
-diminutive, but prominent, with wide nostrils; and the mouth large, with
-somewhat thick lips. The stature, which varies remarkably throughout the
-Continent, is, in the quarter of which we treat, generally above the
-middle size. This property, however, is confined to the men, the females
-being usually below that standard, a fact which may be confidently
-ascribed to the oppressive drudgery they are compelled to undergo.
-The limbs, in both sexes, are well proportioned; and few instances of
-deformity ever occur.
-
-The colour of the skin in the Indian is generally described as red
-or copper-coloured; or, according to Mr. Lawrence’s more precise
-definition, it is “an obscure orange or rusty iron colour, not unlike
-the bark of the cinnamon-tree.” Although we believe that climate is
-the chief cause of the diversities in human colour, yet it is certain
-that all savages are dark-tinted. This peculiarity may be accounted for
-by their constant exposure to the inclemency of the seasons, to sun,
-air, and tempests; and the same cause in civilized countries produces
-a similar effect on sailors, as well as on those who work constantly
-in the fields. In the Old World, the intermediate tints between white
-and black are generally varieties of brown and yellow. The red tint is
-considered characteristic of the New World. We must, however, observe,
-that the traveller Adair, who lived upward of thirty years among the
-Indians, positively asserts that it is artificially produced; that in
-the oil, grease, and other unctuous substances with which they keep
-their skin constantly smeared, there is dissolved the juice of a root
-which gradually tinges it of this colour. He states, that a white man,
-who spent some years with the natives, and adorned himself in their
-manner, completely acquired it. Charlevoix seems also to lean to the same
-opinion. Weld, though rather inclined to dissent from it, admits that
-such a notion was adopted by missionaries and others who had resided
-long in the country. It is certain that the inhabitants glory in this
-colour, and regard Europeans who have it not as nondescript beings, not
-fully entitled to the name of men. It may be noticed also, that this
-tint is by no means so universal as is commonly supposed. Humboldt
-declares that the idea of its general prevalence could never have arisen
-in equinoctial America, or been suggested by the view of the natives in
-that region; yet these provinces include by far the larger part of the
-aboriginal population. The people of Nootka sound and other districts of
-the north-western coast are nearly as white as Europeans; which may be
-ascribed, we think, to their ample clothing and spacious habitations.
-Thus the red nations appear limited to the eastern tribes of North
-America, among whom generally prevails the custom of painting or smearing
-the skin with that favourite colour. We are not prepared to express a
-decided opinion on this subject; but it obviously requires a closer
-investigation than it has yet received.
-
-The hair is another particular in which the races of mankind remarkably
-differ. The ruder classes are generally defective, either in the
-abundance or quality of that graceful appendage; and the hair of the
-American Indians, like that of their allied type the Mongols, is coarse,
-black, thin, but strong, and growing to a great length. Like the latter,
-also, by a curious coincidence, most of them remove it from every part
-of the head, with the exception of a tuft on the crown, which they
-cherish with much care. The circumstance, however, which has excited the
-greatest attention, is the absence of beard, apparently entire, among
-all the people of the New World. The early travellers viewed it as a
-natural deficiency; whence Robertson and other eminent writers have even
-inferred the existence of something peculiarly feeble in their whole
-frame. But the assertion, with all the inferences founded upon it, so
-far as relates to the North American tribes, has been completely refuted
-by recent observation. The original growth has been found nearly, if not
-wholly, as ample as that of Europeans; but the moment it appears, every
-trace is studiously obliterated. This is effected by the aged females,
-originally with a species of clam-shell, but now by means of spiral
-pieces of brass-wire supplied by the traders. With these an old squaw
-will in a few minutes reduce the chin to a state of complete smoothness;
-and slight applications during the year clear away such straggling hairs
-as may happen to sprout. It is only among old men, who become careless of
-their appearance, that the beard begins to be perceptible. A late English
-traveller strongly recommends to his countrymen a practice which, though
-scarcely accordant with our ideas of manly dignity, would, at the expense
-of a few minutes’ pain, save them much daily trouble. The Indians have
-probably adopted this usage, as it removes an obstacle to the fantastic
-painting of the face, which they value so highly. A full beard, at all
-events, when it was first seen on their French visiters, is said to have
-been viewed with peculiar antipathy, and to have greatly enhanced the
-pleasure with which they killed these foreigners.
-
-The comparative physical strength of savage and civilized nations has
-been a subject of controversy. A general impression has obtained that
-the former, inured to simple and active habits, acquire a decided
-superiority; but experience appears to have proved that this conclusion
-is ill founded. On the field of battle, when a struggle takes place
-between man and man, the Indian is usually worsted. In sportive
-exercises, such as wrestling, he is most frequently thrown, and in
-leaping comes short of his antagonist. Even in walking or running, if
-for a short distance, he is left behind; but in these last movements he
-possesses a power of perseverance and continued exertion to which there
-is scarcely any parallel. An individual has been known to travel nearly
-eighty miles in a day, and arrive at his destination without any symptoms
-of fatigue. These long journeys, also, are frequently performed without
-any refreshment, and even having the shoulders loaded with heavy burdens,
-their capacity of supporting which is truly wonderful. For about twelve
-miles, indeed, a strong European will keep ahead of the Indian; but then
-he begins to flag, while the other, proceeding with unaltered pace,
-outstrips him considerably. Even powerful animals cannot equal them in
-this respect. Many of their civilized adversaries, when overcome in war,
-and fleeing before them on swift horses, have, after a long chase, been
-overtaken and scalped.
-
-
-
-
-DRESS OF THE INDIANS.
-
-
-Having thus given a view of the persons of the Indians, we may proceed
-to consider the manner in which they are clothed and ornamented. This
-last object might have been expected to be a very secondary one, among
-tribes whose means of subsistence are so scanty and precarious; but, so
-far is this from being the case, that there is scarcely any pursuit which
-occupies so much of their time and regard. They have availed themselves
-of European intercourse to procure each a small mirror, in which, from
-time to time, they view their personal decorations, taking care that
-everything shall be in the most perfect order. Embellishment, however,
-is not much expended on actual clothing, which is simple, and chiefly
-arranged with a view to convenience. Instead of shoes, they wear what are
-termed moccasins, consisting of one strip of soft leather wrapped round
-the foot, and fastened in front and behind. Europeans, walking over hard
-roads, soon knock these to pieces; but the Indian, tripping over snow
-or grass, finds them a light and agreeable _chaussure_. Upward to the
-middle of the thigh, a piece of leather or cloth, tightly fitted to the
-limb, serves instead of pantaloons, stockings, and boots; it is sometimes
-sewed on so close as never to be taken off. To a string or girdle round
-the waist are fastened two aprons, one before and the other at the back,
-each somewhat more than a foot square and these are connected by a piece
-of cloth like a truss, often used also as a capacious pocket. The use
-of breeches they have always repelled with contempt, as cumbrous and
-effeminate. As an article of female dress, they would consider them less
-objectionable; but that the limbs of a warrior should be thus manacled,
-appears to them utterly preposterous. They were particularly scandalized
-at seeing an officer have them fastened over the shoulder by braces, and
-never after gave him any name but Tied-Breech.
-
-The garments now enumerated form the whole of their permanent dress. On
-occasions of ceremony, indeed, or when exposed to cold, they put over
-it a short shirt fastened at the neck and wrists, and above it a long
-loose robe, closed or held together in front. For this purpose they now
-generally prefer an English blanket. All these articles were originally
-fabricated from the skins of wild animals; but at present, unless for
-the moccasins, and sometimes the leggins, European stuffs are preferred.
-The dress of the female scarcely differs from that of the male, except
-that the apron reaches down to the knees; and even this is said to have
-been adopted since their acquaintance with civilized nations. The early
-French writers relate an amusing anecdote to prove how little dress was
-considered as making a distinction between the sexes. The Ursuline nuns,
-having educated a Huron girl, presented her, on her marriage to one
-of her countrymen, with a complete and handsome suit of clothes in the
-Parisian style. They were much surprised, some days after, to see the
-husband, who had ungenerously seized the whole of his bride’s attire and
-arrayed himself in it, parading back and forward in front of the convent,
-and betraying every symptom of the most extravagant exultation. This was
-farther heightened when he observed the ladies crowding to the window to
-see him, and a universal smile spread over their countenances.
-
-These vestments, as already observed, are simple, and adapted only for
-use. To gratify his passionate love of ornament, the Indian seeks chiefly
-to load his person with certain glittering appendages. Before the arrival
-of Europeans, shells and feathers took the lead; but, since that period,
-these commodities have been nearly supplanted by beads, rings, bracelets,
-and similar toys, which are inserted profusely into various parts of
-his apparel, particularly the little apron in front. The chiefs usually
-wear a breastplate ornamented with them; and among all classes it is
-an object of the greatest ambition to have the largest possible number
-suspended from the ear. That organ, therefore, is not bored, but slit to
-such an extent that a stick of wax may be passed through the aperture,
-which is then loaded with all the baubles that can be mustered; and if
-the weight of these gradually draw down the yielding flap till it rest on
-the shoulder, and the ornaments themselves cover the breast, the Indian
-has reached his utmost height of finery. This, however, is a precarious
-splendour; the ear becomes more and more unfit to support the burden,
-when at length some accident, the branch of a tree, or even a twitch by a
-waggish comrade, lays at his feet all his decorations, with the portion
-of flesh to which they were attached. Weld saw very few who had preserved
-this organ entire through life. The adjustment of the hair, again, is
-an object of especial study. As already observed, the greater part is
-generally eradicated, leaving only a tuft, varying in shape and place,
-according to taste and national custom, but usually encircling the crown.
-This lock is stuck full of feathers, wings of birds, shells, and every
-kind of fantastic ornament. The women wear theirs long and flowing, and
-contrive to collect a considerable number of ornaments for it, as well as
-for their ears and dress.
-
-But it is upon his skin that the American warrior chiefly lavishes his
-powers of embellishment. His taste in doing so is very different from
-ours. “While the European,” says Creuxius, “studies to keep his skin
-clean, and free from every extraneous substance, the Indian’s aim is,
-that his, by the accumulation of oil, grease, and paint, may shine like
-that of a roasted pig.” Soot scraped from the bottoms of kettles, the
-juices of herbs, having a green, yellow, and, above all, a vermilion
-tint, rendered adhesive by combination with oil and grease, are lavishly
-employed to adorn his person, or, according to our idea, to render it
-hideous. Black and red, alternating with each other in varied stripes,
-are the favourite tints. Some blacken the face, leaving in the middle
-a red circle, including the upper lip and tip of the nose; others
-have a red spot on each ear, or one eye black and the other of a red
-colour. In war the black tint is profusely laid on, the others being
-only employed to heighten its effect, and give to the countenance a
-terrific expression. M. de Tracy, when governor of Canada, was told by
-his Indian allies, that, with his good-humoured face, he would never
-inspire the enemy with any degree of awe. They besought him to place
-himself under their brush, when they would soon make him such that his
-very aspect would strike terror. The breast, arms, and legs are the seat
-of more permanent impressions, analogous to the tattooing of the South
-Sea Islanders. The colours are either elaborately rubbed in, or fixed
-by slight incisions with needles and sharp-pointed bones. His guardian
-spirit, and the animal that forms the symbol of his tribe, are the first
-objects delineated. After this, every memorable exploit, and particularly
-the enemies whom he has slain and scalped, are diligently graven on some
-part of his figure; so that the body of an aged warrior contains the
-history of his life.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN HUNTING.
-
-
-It is a mistake to suppose that hunting is pursued by the Indian merely
-as a means of subsistence. It is also his favourite sport; and no English
-gentleman who spends his thousands of pounds per annum on his horses and
-hounds, follows the sports of the field with a keener zest, than the
-wild Indian who has never beheld the face of a white man. The accounts
-of Catlin, who spent much time among the wildest tribes, show, that
-amusement, in its most liberal sense, is pursued by the Indians in this
-way. Hunting is not drudgery to them.
-
-The means of procuring subsistence must always form an important branch
-of national economy. Writers take a superficial view of savage life,
-and, seeing how scanty the articles of food are, while the demand is
-necessarily urgent, have assumed that the efforts to attain them must
-absorb his whole mind, and scarcely leave room for any other thought.
-But, on the contrary, these are to him very subordinate objects. To
-perform a round of daily labour, even though ensuring the most ample
-provision for his wants, would be equally contrary to his inclination
-and supposed dignity. He will not deign to follow any pursuit which does
-not, at the same time, include enterprise, adventure, and excitement.
-Hunting, which the higher classes in the civilized parts of the world
-pursue for mere recreation, is almost the only occupation considered of
-sufficient importance to engage his attention. It is peculiarly endeared
-by its resemblance to war, being carried on with the same weapons,
-and nearly in the same manner. In his native state, the arrow was the
-favourite and almost exclusive instrument for assailing distant objects;
-but now the gun has nearly superseded it. The great hunts are rendered
-more animating, as well as more effectual, from being carried on in large
-parties, and even by whole tribes. The men are prepared for these by
-fasting, dreaming, and other superstitious observances, similar to those
-which we shall find employed in anticipation of war. In such expeditions,
-too, contrivance and skill, as well as boldness and enterprise, are
-largely employed. Sometimes a circle is formed, when all the animals
-surrounded by it are pressed closer and closer, till they are collected
-in the centre, and fall under the accumulated weight of weapons. On other
-occasions they are driven to the margin of a lake or river, in which,
-if they attempt to seek refuge, canoes are ready to intercept them.
-Elsewhere a space is enclosed by stakes, only a narrow opening being
-left, which, by clamour and shouts, the game are compelled to enter, and
-thereby secured. In autumn and spring, when the ice is newly formed and
-slight, they are pushed upon it, and their legs breaking through, they
-are easily caught. In winter, when the snow begins to fall, traps are
-set, in which planks are so arranged, that the animal, in snatching at
-the bait, is crushed to death. Originally the deer, both for food and
-clothing, was the most valuable object of chase; but, since the trade
-with Europeans has given such a prominent importance to furs, the beaver
-has in some degree supplanted it. In attacking this animal, great care
-is taken to prevent his escape into the water, on which his habitation
-always borders; and with this view various kinds of nets and springes
-are employed. On some occasions the Indians place themselves upon the
-dike which encloses his amphibious village. They then make an opening in
-it, when the inmates, alarmed by seeing the water flowing out, hasten
-to this barrier, where they encounter their enemies, armed with all the
-instruments of destruction. At other times, when ice covers the surface
-of the pond, a hole is made, at which the animal comes to respire; he is
-then drawn out and secured. The bear is a formidable enemy, which must
-be assailed by the combined force of the hunters, who are ranged in two
-rows, armed with bows or muskets. One of them advances and wounds him,
-and, on being furiously pursued, he retreats between the files, followed
-in the same line by the animal, which is then overwhelmed by their
-united onset. In killing these quadrupeds, the natives seem to feel a
-sort of kindness and sympathy for their victim. On vanquishing a beaver
-or a bear, they celebrate its praises in a song, recounting those good
-qualities which it will never more be able to display, yet consoling
-themselves with the useful purposes to which its flesh and its skin will
-be applied.
-
-Of the animals usually tamed and rendered subservient to useful purposes,
-the Indians have only the dog, that faithful friend of man. Though
-his services in hunting are valuable, he is treated with but little
-tenderness, and is left to roam about the dwelling, very sparingly
-supplied with food and shelter. A missionary, who resided in a Huron
-village, represents his life as having been rendered miserable by these
-animals. At night they laid themselves on his person for the benefit of
-the warmth; and, whenever his scanty meal was set down, their snouts were
-always first in the dish. Dog’s flesh is eaten, and has even a peculiar
-sanctity attached to it. On all solemn festivals it is the principal
-meat, the use of which, on such occasions, seems to import some high and
-mysterious meaning.
-
-But, besides the cheering avocations of the chase, other means must be
-used to ensure the comfort and subsistence of the Indian’s family; all
-of which, however, are most ungenerously devolved upon the weaker sex.
-Women, according to Creuxius, serve them as domestics, as tailors, as
-peasants, and as oxen; and Long does not conceive that any other purposes
-of their existence are recognized, except those of bearing children
-and performing hard work. They till the ground, carry wood and water,
-build huts, make canoes, and fish; in which latter processes, however,
-and in reaping the harvest, their lords deign to give occasional aid.
-So habituated are they to such occupations, that when one of them saw a
-party of English soldiers collecting wood, she exclaimed that it was a
-shame to see men doing women’s work, and began herself to carry a load.
-
-Through the services of this enslaved portion of the tribe, those savages
-are enabled to combine in a certain degree the agricultural with the
-hunting state, without any mixture of the pastoral, usually considered
-as intermediate. Cultivation, however, is limited to small spots in
-the immediate vicinity of the villages, and these being usually at the
-distance of sixteen or seventeen miles from each other, it scarcely
-makes any impression on the immense expanse of forest. The women, in the
-beginning of summer, after having burned the stubble of the preceding
-crop, rudely stir the ground with a long, crooked piece of wood; they
-then throw in the grain, which is chiefly the coarse but productive
-species of maize peculiar to the Continent. The nations in the south
-have a considerable variety of fruits; whereas those of Canada appear
-to have raised only turnsols, watermelons, and pompions. Tobacco used
-to be grown largely; but that produced by the European settlers is now
-universally preferred, and has become a regular object of trade. The
-grain, after harvest (which is celebrated by a festival), is lodged in
-large subterraneous stores lined with bark, where it keeps extremely
-well. Previous to being placed in these, it is sometimes thrashed; on
-other occasions merely the ears are cut off, and thrown in. When first
-discovered by settlers from Europe, the degrees of culture were found
-to vary in different tribes. The Algonquins, who were the ruling people
-previous to the arrival of the French, wholly despised it, and branded
-as plebeian their neighbours, by whom it was practised. In general, the
-northern clans, and those near the mouth of the St. Lawrence, depended
-almost solely on hunting and fishing; and when these failed they were
-reduced to dreadful extremities, being often obliged to depend on the
-miserable resource of that species of lichen called _tripe de roche_.
-
-The maize, when thrashed, is occasionally toasted on the coals, and
-sometimes made into a coarse kind of unleavened cake. But the most
-favourite preparation is that called _sagamity_, a species of pap formed
-after it has been roasted, bruised, and separated from the husk. It is
-insipid by itself; yet when thrown into the pot, along with the produce
-of the chase, it enriches the soup or stew, one of the principal dishes
-at their feasts. They never eat victuals raw, but rather overboiled; nor
-have they yet been brought to endure French ragouts, salt, pepper, or,
-indeed, any species of condiment. A chief, admitted to the governor’s
-table, seeing the general use of mustard, was led by curiosity to take
-a spoonful and put it into his mouth. On feeling its violent effects, he
-made incredible efforts to conceal them, and escape the ridicule of the
-company; but severe sneezings, and the tears starting from his eyes, soon
-betrayed him, and raised a general laugh. He was then shown the manner in
-which it should be used; but nothing could ever induce him to allow the
-“boiling yellow,” as he termed it, to enter his lips.
-
-The Indians are capable of extraordinary abstinence from food, in which
-they can persevere for successive days without complaint or apparent
-suffering. They even take a pride in long fasts, by which they usually
-prepare themselves for any great undertaking. Yet, when once set down to
-a feast, their gluttony is described as enormous, and the capacity of
-their stomachs almost incredible. They will go from feast to feast, doing
-honour to each in succession. The chief giving the entertainment does not
-partake, but with his own hands distributes portions among the guests.
-On solemn occasions, it is a rule that everything shall be eaten; nor
-does this obligation seem to be felt as either burdensome or unpleasant.
-In their native state, they were not acquainted with any species of
-intoxicating liquors; their love of ardent spirits, attended with so many
-ruinous effects, having been entirely consequent on their intercourse
-with Europeans.
-
-
-
-
-HABITATIONS OF THE INDIANS.
-
-
-There is great diversity among the various tribes of North American
-Indians in respect to manners and customs, dress, and modes of living.
-The inhabitants of the sultry regions of Florida and Texas, of course
-pay less attention to the texture of their garments, and the comfort of
-their dwellings, than those who reside in the more northern regions; and
-other diversities of habit are produced by differences of climate and
-situation. Still there is a certain degree of simplicity inherent in
-savage life which pervades all the tribes:—it is the simplicity which is
-the necessary consequence of poverty and ignorance.
-
-The habitations of the Indians receive much less of their attention
-than the attire, or, at least, embellishment of their persons. Our
-countrymen, by common consent, give to them no better appellation than
-cabins. The bark of trees is their chief material both for houses and
-boats: they peel it off with considerable skill, sometimes stripping a
-whole tree in one piece. This coating, spread not unskilfully over a
-framework of poles, and fastened to them by strips of tough rind, forms
-their dwellings. The shape, according to the owner’s fancy, resembles a
-tub, a cone, or a cart-shed, the mixture of which gives to the village
-a confused and chaotic appearance. Light and heat are admitted only
-by an aperture at the top, through which also the smoke escapes, after
-filling all the upper part of the mansion. Little inconvenience is felt
-from this by the natives, who, within doors, never think of any position
-except sitting or lying; but to Europeans, who must occasionally stand
-or walk, the abode is thereby rendered almost intolerable; and matters
-become much worse when rain or snow makes it necessary to close the roof.
-These structures are sometimes upward of a hundred feet long; but they
-are then the residence of two or three separate families. Four of them
-occasionally compose a quadrangle, each open on the inside, and having
-a common fire in the centre. Formerly the Iroquois had houses somewhat
-superior, adorned even with some rude carving; but these were burned down
-by the French in successive expeditions, and were never after rebuilt in
-the same style. The Canadians in this respect seem to be surpassed by
-the Choctaws, Chickasaws, and other tribes in the south, and even by the
-Saukies in the west, whose mansions Carver describes as constructed of
-well-hewn planks, neatly jointed, and each capable of containing several
-families.
-
-In their expeditions, whether for war or hunting, which often lead them
-through desolate forests, several hundred miles from home, the Indians
-have the art of rearing, with great expedition, temporary abodes. On
-arriving at their evening station, a few poles, meeting at the top in
-the form of a cone, are in half an hour covered with bark; and having
-spread a few pine-branches within by way of mattress, they sleep as
-soundly as on beds of down. Like the Esquimaux, they also understand how
-to convert snow into a material for building; and find it in the depth
-of winter the warmest and most comfortable. A few twigs platted together
-secure the roof. Our own countrymen, in their several campaigns, have, in
-cases of necessity, used with advantage this species of bivouac.
-
-The furniture in these native huts is exceedingly simple. The chief
-articles are two or three pots or kettles for boiling their food, with a
-few wooden plates and spoons. The former, in the absence of metal, with
-which the inhabitants were unacquainted, were made of coarse earthenware
-that resisted the fire; and sometimes of a species of soft stone, which
-could be excavated with their rude hatchets. Nay, in some cases, their
-kitchen utensils were of wood, and the water made to boil by throwing in
-heated stones. Since their acquaintance with Europeans, the superiority
-of iron vessels has been found so decided, that they are now universally
-preferred. The great kettle or caldron, employed only on high festivals
-associated with religion, hunting, or war, attracts even a kind of
-veneration; and potent chiefs have assumed its name as their title of
-honour.
-
-
-
-
-INTELLECTUAL CHARACTER OF THE INDIANS
-
-
-The intellectual character of the American savage presents some very
-striking peculiarities. Considering his unfavourable condition, he of
-all other human beings might seem doomed to make the nearest approach
-to the brute; while, in point of fact, without any aid from letters
-or study, many of the higher faculties of his mind are developed in
-a very remarkable degree. He displays a decided superiority over the
-uninstructed labourer in a civilized community, whose mental energies
-are benumbed amid the daily round of mechanical occupation. The former
-spends a great part of his life in arduous enterprises, where much
-contrivance is requisite, and whence he must often extricate himself
-by presence of mind and ingenuity. His senses, particularly those of
-seeing and smelling, have acquired by practice an almost preternatural
-acuteness. He can trace an animal or a foe by indications which to a
-European eye would be wholly imperceptible; and in his wanderings he
-gathers a minute acquaintance with the geography of the countries which
-he traverses. He can even draw a rude outline of them by applying a
-mixture of charcoal and grease to prepared skins, and on seeing a regular
-map he soon understands its construction, and readily finds out places.
-His facility in discovering the most direct way to spots situated at the
-distance of hundreds of miles, and known perhaps only by the report of
-his countrymen, is truly astonishing. It has been ascribed by some to a
-mysterious and supernatural instinct, but it appears to be achieved by
-merely observing the different aspect of the trees or shrubs when exposed
-to the north or the south, as also the position of the sun, which he can
-point out, although hidden by clouds. Even where there is a beaten track,
-if at all circuitous, he strikes directly through the woods, and reaches
-his destination by the straightest possible line.
-
-Other faculties of a higher order are developed by the scenes amid which
-the life of savages is spent. They are divided into a number of little
-communities, between which are actively carried on all the relations
-of war, negotiation, treaty, and alliance. As mighty revolutions,
-observes an eloquent writer, take place in these kingdoms of wood and
-cities of bark, as in the most powerful civilized states. To increase
-the influence and extend the possessions of their own tribe, to humble
-and, if possible, to destroy those hostile to them, are the constant
-aims of every member of those little commonwealths. For these ends, not
-only deeds of daring valour are achieved, but schemes are deeply laid,
-and pursued with the most accurate calculation. There is scarcely a
-refinement in European diplomacy to which they are strangers. The French
-once made an attempt to crush the confederacy of the Five Nations by
-attacking each in succession; but as they were on their march against
-the first tribe, they were met by the deputies of the others, who
-offered their mediation, intimating that, if it were rejected, they
-would make common cause with the one threatened. That association also
-showed that they completely understood how to employ the hostility
-which prevailed between their enemy and the English for promoting their
-own aggrandizement. Embassies, announced by the calumet of peace, are
-constantly passing from one tribe to another.
-
-The same political circumstances develop in an extraordinary degree the
-powers of oratory; for nothing of any importance is transacted without
-a speech. On every emergency a council of the tribe is called, when the
-aged and wise hold long deliberations for the public weal. The best
-speakers are despatched to conduct their negotiations, the object of
-which is unfolded in studied harangues. The functions of orator, among
-the Five Nations, had even become a separate profession, held in equal
-or higher honour than that of the warrior; and each clan appointed the
-most eloquent of their number to speak for them in the public council.
-Nay, there was a general orator for the whole confederacy, who could say
-to the French governor, “Ononthio, lend thine ear; I am the mouth of all
-the country; you hear all the Iroquois in hearing my word.” Decanesora,
-their speaker at a later period, was greatly admired by the English, and
-his bust was thought to resemble that of Cicero. In their diplomatic
-discourses, each proposition is prefaced by the delivery of a belt of
-wampum, of which what follows is understood to be the explanation, and
-which is to be preserved as a record of the conference. The orator does
-not express his proposals in words only, but gives to every sentence
-its appropriate action. If he threatens war, he wildly brandishes the
-tomahawk; if he solicits alliance, he twines his arms closely with those
-of the chief whom he addresses; and if he invites friendly intercourse,
-he assumes all the attitudes of one who is forming a road in the Indian
-manner, by cutting down the trees, clearing them away, and carefully
-removing the leaves and branches. To a French writer, who witnessed the
-delivery of a solemn embassy, it suggested the idea of a company of
-actors performing on a stage. So expressive are their gestures, that
-negotiations have been conducted and alliances concluded between petty
-states and communities who understood nothing of one another’s language.
-
-The composition of the Indian orators is studied and elaborate. The
-language of the Iroquois is even held to be susceptible of an Attic
-elegance, which few can attain so fully as to escape all criticism. It
-is figurative in the highest degree, every notion being expressed by
-images addressed to the senses. Thus, to throw up the hatchet or to put
-on the great caldron is to begin a war; to throw the hatchet to the sky
-is to wage open and terrible war; to take off the caldron or to bury
-the hatchet is to make peace; to plant the tree of peace on the highest
-mountain of the earth is to make a general pacification. To throw a
-prisoner into the caldron is to devote him to torture and death; to take
-him out, is to pardon and receive him as a member of the community.
-Ambassadors coming to propose a full and general treaty say, “We rend
-the clouds asunder, and drive away all darkness from the heavens, that
-the sun of peace may shine with brightness over us all.” On another
-occasion, referring to their own violent conduct, they said, “We are
-glad that Assarigoa will bury in the pit what is past; let the earth
-be trodden hard over it, or, rather, let a strong stream run under the
-pit to wash away the evil.” They afterward added, “We now plant a tree,
-whose top will reach the sun, and its branches spread far abroad, and we
-shall shelter ourselves under it, and live in peace.” To send the collar
-under ground is to carry on a secret negotiation; but when expressing a
-desire that there might be no duplicity or concealment between them and
-the French, they said that “They wished to fix the sun in the top of the
-heaven, immediately above that pole, that it might beat directly down
-and leave nothing in obscurity.” In pledging themselves to a firm and
-steady peace, they declared that they would not only throw down the great
-war-caldron, and cause all the water to flow out, but would break it in
-pieces. This disposition to represent every thing by a sensible object
-extends to matters the most important. One powerful people assumed the
-appellation of Foxes, while another gloried in that of Cats. Even when
-the entire nation bore a different appellation, separate fraternities
-distinguished themselves as the tribe of the Bear, the Tortoise, and the
-Wolf. They did not disdain a reference even to inanimate things. The
-Black Caldron was at one time the chief warrior of the Five Nations; and
-Red Shoes was a person of distinction well known to Long the traveller.
-When the chiefs concluded treaties with Europeans, their signature
-consisted in a picture, often tolerably well executed, of the beast or
-object after which they chose to be named.
-
-The absence among these tribes of any written or even pictorial mode
-of recording events, was supplied by the memories of their old men,
-which were so retentive, that a certain writer calls them living books.
-Their only remembrancer consisted in the wampum belts; of which one was
-appropriated to each division of a speech or treaty, and had seemingly
-a powerful effect in calling it to recollection. On the close of the
-transaction, these were deposited as public documents, to be drawn forth
-on great occasions, when the orators, and even the old women, could
-repeat verbatim the passage to which each referred. Europeans were thus
-enabled to collect information concerning the revolutions of different
-tribes, for several ages preceding their own arrival.
-
-
-
-
-SINGULAR EXECUTION OF AN INDIAN.
-
-
-In March, 1823, a Choctaw savage, calling himself Doctor Sibley,
-belonging to a wandering tribe of his nation, in the Arkansas
-Territory,—while in a state of intoxication, stabbed to the heart another
-Indian; who instantly expired. This act called for revenge, founded on
-the _lex taliones_—that invariable custom of the aborigines. A brother
-of the deceased called upon Sibley, and told him, that he was come to
-take his life, in atonement for the death of his brother. With the
-composure of a philosopher, and the courage of a Roman, Sibley—readily,
-and without a murmur—yielded assent; only desiring the execution might be
-postponed until the following morning. This was granted;—the execution
-was postponed—and Sibley _left at large, under no restraint whatever_!
-
-When the morning came, Sibley went out with the rest of the party, and,
-with perfect apathy, aided in digging a grave for the murdered Indian.
-The work being finished, he calmly observed to the by-standers, that, he
-thought it large enough to contain two bodies;—signifying, at the same
-time, a wish to be buried in the same grave. This, too, was granted: and
-the murderer deliberately took a standing position over the grave, with
-outstretched arms; and, giving a signal to fire, the brother drove a
-rifle ball through his heart—and he dropt into the hole he had assisted
-to make!
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN VERACITY.
-
-
-“_He once told a lie_”—was the emphatical expression of an Indian to me,
-in 1794, when I was attending to the surveying of a large body of lands
-in, what was then called, ‘The French-Creek Country,’ and West of the
-Alleghany River: and, as some of my people were killed by the Western
-Indians, I found it necessary, while the surveying was going on, to visit
-the Indian Towns on the Alleghany River frequently:—they were inhabited
-by the Senecas. General Wayne was then on his way, with his army, to the
-Indian settlements on the Miami River.
-
-One day, when I was at the Cornplanter’s town, the ‘_News-Spout_,’ as it
-is called, was heard. All the Indians in the village immediately retired
-to their houses (and even their dogs went with them;) when an old man
-went out to meet the person who brought the news, and to take him to
-the Long, or Council-House, where a fire was made and refreshments were
-carried to him, and time given for him to dress and paint himself, so as
-to appear decent.
-
-When sufficient time had elapsed for the preparatives to be performed,
-the chiefs went first to the house; and, as the young men were following,
-I asked an Indian—who spoke English, and to whom (as he professed to be a
-priest, physician, and conjurer) I gave the name of Doctor—whether there
-was any impropriety in my going to hear the news. He said, “No”—and
-that, as I was received as a friend and visiter, all their houses were
-open to me: and if I did not go without any ceremony, it would appear as
-if _I doubted their words and hospitality_; which was considered as the
-greatest affront that could be put on an Indian. For that, if there was
-any secret business going on they would inform me of it, in a friendly
-way and then I might retire.
-
-I accordingly went into the house with him; when the Chiefs immediately
-rose, and gave me a seat among them.
-
-All the Indians in the house were smoking their pipes when I came in;
-and the stranger was sitting opposite the Chiefs, in a seat, or rather
-a platform, by himself. The time appeared to me very long, as I was
-anxious to hear the news; being much interested in the event, as the
-Indians had been deliberating, whether or not they would permit me to
-continue surveying, or send me out of the country: and, what surprised
-me, was, that no one—contrary to their usual custom—asked him for the
-news; and I was at a loss to account for their conduct. Eventually,
-the Indian himself—after prefacing the business, with telling them,
-he had no doubt,—as they knew he had been to the West—they would be
-gratified in hearing his news. But no one appeared to signify his assent
-or negative. The Indian then gave an account of an affair between a
-convoy of Americans—who were carrying reinforcements and provisions
-to one of our frontier posts—and the Indians; and they had killed the
-commanding officer and a number of our men: and, after he had related all
-he had to say, no one asked for any particulars of the action, or for
-any corroborating circumstance; as I had formerly observed, they were
-particularly polite to strangers and visiters, and were very cautious to
-say or do any thing to hurt their feelings, and, soon after, the chiefs
-and other Indians began to leave the house.
-
-I left the house with the Doctor; and, as soon as we had passed the
-door, I expressed my surprise to him, at the manner they treated the man
-who brought the news, as it was so different from any treatment I had
-before seen, when visited by strangers; and that I would thank him to
-inform me of the cause of it:—when he, without any hesitation, and with
-considerable emphasis, answered, “HE ONCE TOLD A LIE”—and continued:
-“What that man said, may be so true; may be so not. We always listen
-to what a newsman has to say,—even when we know him to be a liar. But,
-whether we believe him or not, it is not our custom to let him know; or
-to say any thing on the subject: for, if we had asked him any questions
-about the fight, it would have been a great gratification to him; as he
-would have concluded some of the company did believe him: which is a
-thing we do not indulge any person in, who has been guilty of telling a
-lie.” He concluded, by saying, “_He all one as dead._”
-
-
-
-
-PETER OTSAQUETTE, THE ONEIDAN
-
-
-Peter Otsaquette was the son of a man of consideration among the Oneida
-Indians of New York. At the close of the Revolutionary war, he was
-noticed by the Marquis de La Fayette, who, to a noble zeal for liberty,
-united the most philanthropic feelings. Viewing, therefore, this young
-savage with peculiar interest, and anticipating the happy results to be
-derived from his moral regeneration, he took him, though scarcely twelve
-years old, to France. Peter arrived at that period when Louis XVI. and
-Maria Antoinette were in the zenith of their glory. There he was taught
-the accomplishments of a gentleman;—music, drawing, and fencing, were
-made familiar to him, and he danced with a grace that a Vestris could not
-but admire. At about eighteen, his separation from a country in which
-he had spent his time so agreeably and so profitably, became necessary.
-Laden with favours from the Marquis, and the miniatures of those friends
-he had left behind. Peter departed for America—inflated, perhaps, with
-the idea, that the deep ignorance of his nation, with that of the Indians
-of the whole continent, might be dispelled by his efforts, and he become
-the proud instrument of the civilization of thousands.
-
-Prosecuting his route to the land of his parents, he came to the city
-of Albany; not the uncivilized savage, not with any of those marks
-which bespoke a birth in the forest, or years spent in toiling the wilds
-of a desert, but possessing a fine commanding figure, an expressive
-countenance, an intelligent eye, with a face scarcely indicative of
-the race from which he was descended. He presented, at this period, an
-interesting spectacle: a child of the wilderness was beheld about to
-proceed to the home of his forefathers, having received the brilliant
-advantages of a cultivated mind, and on his way to impart to the nation
-that owned him, the benefits which civilization had given him. It was an
-opportunity for the philosopher to contemplate, and to reflect on the
-future good this young Indian might be the means of producing.
-
-Shortly after his arrival in Albany—where he visited the first
-families—he took advantage of Governor Clinton’s journey to Fort Stanwix
-(where a treaty was to be held with the Indians,) to return to his tribe.
-On the route, Otsaquette amused the company (among whom were the French
-Minister, Count De Moustiers, and several gentlemen of respectability)
-by his powers on various instruments of music. At Fort Stanwix, he
-found himself again with the companions of his early days, who saw and
-recognised him. His friends and relations had not forgotten him, and he
-was welcomed to his home and to his blanket.
-
-But that which occurred soon after his reception, led him to a too
-fearful anticipation of an unsuccessful project; for the Oneidas, as if
-they could not acknowledge Otsaquette, attired in the dress with which
-he appeared before them,—a mark which did not disclose his nation,—and,
-thinking that he had assumed it, as if ashamed of his own native costume,
-the garb of his ancestors, they tore it from him with a savage avidity,
-and a fiend-like ferociousness, daubed on the paint to which he had
-been so long unused, and clothed him with the uncouth habiliments held
-sacred by his tribe. Their fiery ferocity, in the performance of the act,
-showed but too well the bold stand they were about to take against the
-innovations they supposed Otsaquette was to be the agent for affecting
-against their immemorial manners and customs, and which, from the
-venerable antiquity of their structure, it would be nothing short of
-sacrilege to destroy.
-
-Thus the reformed savage was taken back again to his native barbarity,
-and—as if to cap the climax of degradation to a mind just susceptible of
-its own powers—was _married to a squaw_!
-
-From that day, Otsaquette was no longer the accomplished Indian, from
-whom every wish of philanthropy was expected to be realized. He was no
-longer the instrument by whose power the emancipation of his countrymen
-from the thraldom of ignorance and superstition, was to be effected. From
-that day, he was again an inmate with the forest; was once more buried
-in his original obscurity, and his nation only viewed him as _an equal_.
-Even a liberal grant from the State, failed of securing to him that
-superior consideration among them which his civilization had procured
-for him with the rest of mankind. The commanding preeminence acquired
-from instruction, from which it was expected ambition would have sprung
-up, and acted as a double stimulant, from either the natural inferiority
-of the savage mind, or the predetermination of his countrymen—became of
-no effect, and, in a little time, was wholly annihilated. Otsaquette
-was lost! His moral perdition began from the hour he left Fort Stanwix.
-Three short months had hardly transpired, when Intemperance had marked
-him as her own, and soon hurried him to the grave. And, as if the very
-transition had deadened all the finer feelings of his nature, the picture
-given him by the Marquis—the very portrait of his affectionate friend and
-benefactor himself—he parted with!
-
-Extraordinary and unnatural as the conduct of this educated savage may
-appear, the anecdote is not of a kind altogether unique; which proves,
-that little or nothing is to be expected from conferring a literary
-education upon those children of the forest:—An Indian, named George
-White-Eyes, was taken, while a boy, to the college at Princeton, where he
-received a classical education. On returning to his nation, he made some
-little stay in Philadelphia. He was amiable in his manners, and of modest
-demeanour, without exhibiting any trait of the savage whatever; but, no
-sooner had he rejoined his friends and former companions, in the land
-of his nativity, than he dropped the garb and manners of civilization,
-and resumed those of the savage, and, drinking deep of their intoxicating
-cup, soon put a period to his existence.
-
-Many other instances might be adduced, to show how ineffectual have
-been the attempts to plant civilization on savage habits, by means of
-_literary_ education—“Can the leopard change his spots?”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-THE CATASTROPHE.
-
-
-The son of a Kickapoo Chief, being engaged to a Ouiattanon girl, came in
-quest of her to fort Knox, at Vincennes—though an Indian war was then
-waging against the United States; and, in this, the Kickapoos were among
-the most formidable. We happened to be there at this time. It was summer,
-and the weather very warm. The young Kickapoo was admitted into the
-fort, and, among other presents, threw down several joints of venison;
-observing to the commanding officer, that, if he could not eat them
-himself, (for they were tainted,) they might answer for his _hogs_ and
-_dogs_—muttering at the same time, and making the sign of a halter round
-his neck, that perhaps they might hang him for appearing among them;
-alluding, no doubt, to the then Indian war.
-
-On the evening of the same day the young Kickapoo got into a drunken
-frolic, with other savages, among whom was the before mentioned Indian.
-The latter said to the Kickapoo, “May be I shall kill you:” and, without
-further preface, he plunged a knife into him—which instantly proved
-fatal. At this moment the Ouiattanons in company took the alarm—fearful
-of the consequences that might befall their tribe, from the death of the
-son of a powerful chieftain. It was therefore determined to propitiate
-the Kickapoo’s father, by sending a deputation to him with the present of
-a ten gallon keg of whisky as a peace offering. This was furnished for
-the purpose, on request, by the commanding officer of the fort. They had
-not gone far when the precious liquor proved too great a temptation: the
-keg was broached, and soon emptied. What then was to be done?
-
-Next morning, however, they appeared again at the fort—deplored the
-‘_accident_,’ (as they called it,) and begged for another keg of liquor.
-This too was granted—and off they went again. But this keg met with the
-fate of the former: its contents proved an irresistible temptation. As no
-more whisky could now be obtained, the mission fell through.
-
-Upon this, the Indians appeared before the fort, with the murderer in
-custody, under the window of the writer, and demanded justice to be done
-on the prisoner. He told them it was an affair for themselves to settle,
-as it was confined to themselves alone. They now marched in Indian file,
-carrying off the murderer, who, every now and then, looked fearfully
-behind him—for the brother of the deceased’s sweetheart had taken post
-next in his rear. They had not proceeded far, when this brother plunged a
-knife into the prisoner’s back, which broke, and a part was left buried
-in the wound. The whole party now returned before the fort—the wounded
-man singing his death-song. He was borne off by his friends into a
-thicket, in the prairie, where all their efforts to extract the broken
-blade proved ineffectual; and the next day or two he died.
-
-The Spider, a brother of the murderer, and then at Kaskaskia, hearing of
-the predicament which had befallen the latter, hastened to Vincennes—but
-death had closed the scene. He came in time, however, to attend the
-funeral. When the body was about to be consigned to the earth, he opened
-the blanket which enveloped the corpse, and taking off a silver ornament
-which encompassed his head, he bound it around that of the defunct,
-saying, “There, brother! this will bring you respect in the land of
-Spirits.”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-BUFFALO HUNTING.
-
-
-The buffalo, more properly called the bison, is the great object of
-Indian hunting in the west. These animals abound in the prairies; and
-they are often seen coursing over the plains in immense herds. Thousands
-of them appear under the direction of one of their number, who acts as
-leader. This propensity to follow a leader affords a ready means to the
-Indians of destroying them. The manner in which this is accomplished is
-graphically described in the following extract from the account of a late
-writer. It affords a wild picture of the scenes which present themselves
-to the notice of the traveller as he passes through the great prairies of
-the west.
-
-We passed a precipice of about one hundred and twenty feet high, under
-which lay scattered the fragments of at least one hundred carcases of
-buffaloes, although the water, which had washed away the lower part of
-the hill, must have carried off many of the dead. These buffaloes had
-been chased down the precipice, in a way very common on the Missouri, and
-by which vast herds are destroyed in a moment. The mode of hunting is, to
-select one of the most active and fleet young men, who is disguised, by a
-buffalo skin around his body, the skin of the head, with the ears and the
-horns, fastened on his own head, in such a way as to deceive the buffalo.
-Thus dressed, he fixes himself at a convenient distance, between a herd
-of buffaloes and any of the river precipices, which sometimes extend
-for some miles. His companions, in the meantime, get into the rear,
-and on the side of the herd, and, at a given signal, show themselves,
-and advance towards the buffalo: they instantly take the alarm; and,
-finding the hunters beside them, they run towards the disguised Indian or
-decoy, who leads them on at full speed toward the river, when, suddenly
-securing himself in some crevice of the cliff which he had previously
-fixed on, the herd is left on the brink of the precipice. It is then in
-vain for the foremost to retreat, or even to stop—they are pressed on
-by the hindmost rank, who, seeing no danger, but from the hunters, goad
-on those before them, till the whole are precipitated, and the shore is
-strewed with their dead bodies. Sometimes, in this perilous seduction,
-the Indian is himself either trodden under foot, by the rapid movements
-of the buffaloes or missing his footing in the cliff, is urged down the
-precipice along with the falling herd.
-
-The Indians now select as much meat as they choose, and the rest is
-abandoned to the wolves, and creates a most dreadful stench. The wolves
-who had been feasting on these carcases were very fat, and so gentle,
-that one of them was killed with an espontoon.
-
-
-
-
-RELIGION OF THE INDIANS.
-
-
-The earliest visiters of the New World, on seeing among the Indians
-neither priests, temples, idols, nor sacrifices, represented them as a
-people wholly destitute of religious opinions. Closer inquiry, however,
-showed that a belief in the spiritual world, however imperfect, had
-a commanding influence over almost all their actions. Their creed
-includes even some lofty and pure conceptions. Under the title of the
-Great Spirit, the Master of Life, the Maker of heaven and earth, they
-distinctly recognise a supreme ruler of the universe and an arbiter of
-their destiny. A party of them, when informed by the missionaries of
-the existence of a being of infinite power, who had created the heavens
-and the earth, with one consent exclaimed, “_Atahocan! Atahocan!_” that
-being the name of their principal deity. According to Long, the Indians
-among whom he resided ascribe every event, propitious or unfortunate, to
-the favour or anger of the Master of Life. They address him for their
-daily subsistence; they believe him to convey to them presence of mind
-in battle; and amid tortures they thank him for inspiring them with
-courage. Yet though this one elevated and just conception is deeply
-graven on their minds, it is combined with others which show all the
-imperfection of unassisted reason in attempting to think rightly on this
-great subject. It may even be observed, that the term, rendered into our
-language “great spirit,” does not really convey the idea of an immaterial
-nature, it imports with them merely some being possessed of lofty and
-mysterious powers, and in this sense is applied to men, and even to
-animals. The brute creation, which occupies a prominent place in all
-their ideas, is often viewed by them as invested, to a great extent, with
-supernatural powers; an extreme absurdity, which, however, they share
-with the civilized creeds of Egypt and India.
-
-When the missionaries, on their first arrival, attempted to form an idea
-of the Indian mythology, it appeared to them extremely complicated,
-more especially because those who attempted to explain it had no fixed
-opinions. Each man differed from his neighbour, and at another time from
-himself; and when the discrepancies were pointed out, no attempt was made
-to reconcile them. The southern tribes, who had a more settled faith, are
-described by Adair as intoxicated with spiritual pride, and denouncing
-even their European allies as “the accursed people.” The native Canadian,
-on the contrary, is said to have been so little tenacious, that he would
-at any time renounce all his theological errors for a pipe of tobacco,
-though, as soon as it was smoked, he immediately relapsed. An idea was
-found prevalent respecting a certain mystical animal, called Mesou or
-Messessagen, who, when the earth was buried in water, had drawn it up and
-restored it. Others spoke of a contest between the hare, the fox, the
-beaver, and the seal, for the empire of the world. Among the principal
-nations of Canada, the hare is thought to have attained a decided
-preeminence; and hence the Great Spirit and the Great Hare are sometimes
-used as synonymous terms. What should have raised this creature to such
-distinction seems rather unaccountable; unless it were that its extreme
-swiftness might appear something supernatural. Among the Ottowas alone
-the heavenly bodies become an object of veneration; the sun appears to
-rank as their supreme deity.
-
-To dive into the abyss of futurity has always been a favourite object
-of superstition. It has been attempted by various means; but the Indian
-seeks it chiefly through his dreams, which always bear with him a sacred
-character. Before engaging in any high undertaking, especially in hunting
-or war, the dreams of the principal chiefs are carefully watched and
-studiously examined; and according to the interpretation their conduct is
-guided. A whole nation has been set in motion by the sleeping fancies of
-a single man. Sometimes a person imagines in his sleep that he has been
-presented with an article of value by another, who then cannot, without
-impropriety, leave the omen unfulfilled. When Sir William Johnson, during
-the American war, was negotiating an alliance with a friendly tribe, the
-chief confidentially disclosed that, during his slumbers, he had been
-favoured with a vision of Sir William bestowing upon him the rich laced
-coat which formed his full dress. The fulfilment of this revelation was
-very inconvenient; yet, on being assured that it positively occurred, the
-English commander found it advisable to resign his uniform. Soon after,
-however, he unfolded to the Indian a dream with which he had himself
-been favored, and in which the former was seen presenting him with a
-large tract of fertile land most commodiously situated. The native ruler
-admitted that, since the vision had been vouchsafed, it must be realized,
-yet earnestly proposed to cease this mutual dreaming, which he found had
-turned much to his own disadvantage.
-
-The manitou is an object of peculiar veneration; and the fixing upon
-this guardian power is not only the most important event in the history
-of a youth, but even constitutes his initiation into active life. As a
-preliminary, his face is painted black, and he undergoes a severe fast,
-which is, if possible, prolonged for eight days. This is preparatory
-to the dream in which he is to behold the idol destined ever after to
-afford him aid and protection. In this state of excited expectation, and
-while every nocturnal vision is carefully watched, there seldom fails
-to occur to his mind something which, as it makes a deep impression, is
-pronounced his manitou. Most commonly it is a trifling and even fantastic
-article; the head, beak, or claw of a bird, the hoof of a cow, or even
-a piece of wood. However, having undergone a thorough perspiration in
-one of their vapour-baths, he is laid on his back, and a picture of it
-is drawn upon his breast by needles of fish-bone dipped in vermilion. A
-good specimen of the original being procured, it is carefully treasured
-up; and to it he applies in every emergency, hoping that it will inspire
-his dreams, and secure to him every kind of good fortune. When, however,
-notwithstanding every means of propitiating its favour, misfortunes
-befall him, the manitou is considered as having exposed itself to just
-and serious reproach. He begins with remonstrances, representing all
-that has been done for it, the disgrace it incurs by not protecting its
-votary, and, finally, the danger that, in case of repeated neglect, it
-may be discarded for another. Nor is this considered merely as an empty
-threat; for if the manitou is judged incorrigible, it is thrown away; and
-by means of a fresh course of fasting, dreaming, sweating, and painting,
-another is installed, from whom better success may be hoped.
-
-The absence of temples, worship, sacrifices, and all the observances
-to which superstition prompts the untutored mind, is a remarkable
-circumstance, and, as we have already remarked, led the early visiters
-to believe that the Indians were strangers to all religious ideas.
-Yet the missionaries found room to suspect that some of their great
-feasts, in which every thing presented must be eaten, bore an idolatrous
-character, and were held in honour of the Great Hare. The Ottawas,
-whose mythological system seems to have been the most complicated,
-were wont to keep a regular festival to celebrate the beneficence of
-the sun; on which occasion the luminary was told that this service was
-in return for the good hunting he had procured for his people, and as
-an encouragement to persevere in his friendly cares. They were also
-observed to erect an idol in the middle of their town, and sacrifice to
-it; but such ceremonies were by no means general. On first witnessing
-Christian worship, the only idea suggested by it was that of their
-asking some temporal good, which was either granted or refused. The
-missionaries mention two Hurons, who arrived from the woods soon after
-the congregation had assembled. Standing without, they began to speculate
-what it was the white men were asking, and then whether they were getting
-it. As the service continued beyond expectation, it was concluded they
-were _not_ getting it; and as the devotional duties still proceeded, they
-admired the perseverance with which this rejected suit was urged. At
-length, when the vesper hymn began, one of the savages observed to the
-other: “Listen to them now in despair, crying with all their might.”
-
-The grand doctrine of a life beyond the grave was, among all the tribes
-of America, most deeply cherished and most sincerely believed. They
-had even formed a distinct idea of the region whither they hoped to
-be transported, and of the new and happier mode of existence, free
-from those wars, tortures, and cruelties which throw so dark a shade
-over their lot upon earth. Yet their conceptions on this subject were
-by no means either exalted or spiritualized. They expected simply a
-prolongation of their present life and enjoyments, under more favourable
-circumstances, and with the same objects furnished in greater choice
-and abundance. In that brighter land the sun ever shines unclouded,
-the forests abound with deer, the lakes and rivers with fish; benefits
-which are farther enhanced in their imagination by a faithful wife and
-dutiful children. They do not reach it, however, till after a journey
-of several months, and encountering various obstacles; a broad river, a
-chain of lofty mountains, and the attack of a furious dog. This favoured
-country lies far in the west, at the remotest boundary of the earth,
-which is supposed to terminate in a steep precipice, with the ocean
-rolling beneath. Sometimes, in the too eager pursuit of game, the spirits
-fall over, and are converted into fishes. The local position of their
-paradise appears connected with certain obscure intimations received
-from their wandering neighbours of the Mississippi, the Rocky Mountains,
-and the distant shores of the Pacific. This system of belief labours
-under a great defect, inasmuch as it scarcely connects felicity in the
-future world with virtuous conduct in the present. The one is held to
-be simply a continuation of the other; and under this impression, the
-arms, ornaments, and everything that had contributed to the welfare of
-the deceased, are interred along with him. This supposed assurance of
-a future life so conformable to their gross habits and conceptions,
-was found by the missionaries a serious obstacle when they attempted to
-allure them by the hope of a destiny, purer and higher indeed, but less
-accordant with their untutored conceptions. Upon being told that in the
-promised world they would neither hunt, eat, drink, nor marry, many of
-them declared that, far from endeavouring to reach such an abode, they
-would consider their arrival there as the greatest calamity. Mention is
-made of a Huron girl whom one of the Christian ministers was endeavouring
-to instruct, and whose first question was what she would find to eat.
-The answer being “Nothing,” she then asked what she would see; and being
-informed that she would see the Maker of heaven and earth, she expressed
-herself much at a loss how she should address him.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN FUNERALS.
-
-
-Another sentiment, congenial with that now described, is most deeply
-rooted in the mind of the Indians. This is reverence for the dead,
-with which Chateaubriand, though somewhat hastily, considers them more
-deeply imbued than any other people. During life they are by no means
-lavish in their expressions of tenderness, but on the hour of final
-separation it is displayed with extraordinary force. When any member
-of a family becomes seriously ill, all the resources of magic and
-medicine are exhausted in order to procure his recovery. When the fatal
-moment arrives, all the kindred burst into loud lamentations, which
-continue till some person possessing the requisite authority desires
-them to cease. These expressions of grief, however, are renewed for a
-considerable time at sunrise and sunset. After three days the funeral
-takes place, when all the provisions which the family can procure are
-expended in a feast, to which the neighbours are generally invited; and,
-although on all solemn occasions it is required that every thing should
-be eaten, the relations do not partake. These last cut off their hair,
-cover their heads, paint their faces of a black colour, and continue
-long to deny themselves every species of amusement. The deceased is
-then interred with his arms and ornaments, his face painted, and his
-person attired in the richest robes which they can furnish. It was the
-opinion of one of the early missionaries, that the chief object of the
-Hurons in their traffic with the French was to procure materials for
-honouring their dead; and, as a proof of this, many of them have been
-seen shivering half naked in the cold, while their hut contained rich
-robes to be wrapped round them after their decease. The body is placed
-in the tomb in an upright posture, and skins are carefully spread round
-it, so that no part may touch the earth. This, however, is by no means
-the final ceremony, being followed by another still more solemn and
-singular. Every eighth, tenth, or twelfth year, according to the custom
-of the different nations, is celebrated the festival of the dead; and,
-till then, the souls are supposed to hover round their former tenement,
-and not to depart for their final abode in the west. On this occasion
-the people march in procession to the places of interment, open the
-tombs, and, on beholding the mortal remains of their friends, continue
-some time fixed in mournful silence. The women then break out into loud
-cries, and the party begin to collect the bones, removing every remnant
-of flesh. The remains are then wrapped in fresh and valuable robes, and
-conveyed amid continual lamentation to the family cabin. A feast is then
-given, followed during several days by dances, games, and prize-combats,
-to which strangers often repair from a great distance. This mode of
-celebration certainly accords very ill with the sad occasion; yet the
-Greek and Roman obsequies were solemnized in a similar manner; nay,
-in many parts of Scotland, till very recently, they were accompanied
-by festival, and often by revelry. The relics are then carried to the
-council-house of the nation, where they are hung for exhibition along
-the walls, with fresh presents destined to be interred along with them.
-Sometimes they are even displayed from village to village. At length,
-being deposited in a pit previously dug in the earth, and lined with
-the richest furs, they are finally entombed. Tears and lamentations are
-again lavished; and during a few days food is brought to the place. The
-bones of their fathers are considered by the Indians the strongest ties
-to their native soil; and when calamity forces them to quit it, these
-mouldering fragments are, if possible, conveyed along with them.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN CANNIBALISM.
-
-
-It has been made a question whether the Indians can be justly charged
-with cannibalism. It is certain that all the terms by which they
-designate their inhuman mode of putting a prisoner to death bear
-reference to this horrid practice. The expressions are to throw him into
-the caldron, to devour him, to eat soup made of his flesh. It has hence
-been plausibly inferred that this enormity really prevailed in early
-times, but was changed, we can scarcely say mitigated, into the present
-system of torture. Yet, as every action is described by them in terms
-highly figurative, those now quoted may have been used as expressing
-most fully the complete gratification of their revenge. Of this charge
-they cannot now be either condemned or wholly acquitted. In the excited
-fury of their passions, portions of the flesh are often seized, roasted,
-and eaten, and draughts taken of the blood. To eat an enemy’s heart is
-considered a peculiar enjoyment. Long mentions a gentleman who came upon
-a party who were busy broiling a human heart, when he with difficulty
-prevailed on them to desist. There is little hesitation among them, in
-periods of scarcity, to relieve hunger with the flesh of their captives;
-and during one war, this fate is said to have befallen many French
-soldiers who fell into the hands of the Five Nations. Colonel Schuyler
-told Colden, that, having entered the cabin of a chief who had some rich
-soup before him, he was invited to partake. Being hungry and tired, he
-readily agreed, till the ladle, being put into the great caldron, brought
-up a human hand, the sight of which put an immediate end to his appetite
-and meal.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN DANCES.
-
-
-The dances of the Indians, even those at common festivals, are on an
-extensive scale, requiring to a complete performance forty or fifty
-persons, who execute their evolutions by following each other round
-a great fire kindled in the centre. Their movements, monotonous but
-violent, consist in stamping furiously on the ground, and often
-brandishing their arms in a manner compared by an able writer to a
-baker converting flour into dough. They keep good time; but the music
-is so exceedingly simple that this implies little merit. They conclude
-with a loud shout or howl, which echoes frightfully through the woods.
-The dances in celebration of particular events are of a more varied
-character, and often form a very expressive pantomime. The war-dance
-is the most favourite and frequent. In this extraordinary performance,
-a complete image is given of the terrible reality; the war-whoop is
-sounded with the most frightful yells; the tomahawk is wildly brandished;
-and the enemy are surprised, seized, and scalped, or carried off for
-torture. The calumet-dance, which celebrates peace between nations,
-and the marriage-dance, which represents domestic life, are much more
-pleasing. Some mention is made of a mystic dance, carried on by the
-jugglers or doctors, with strange superstitious ceremonies, and in which
-a supernatural personage, termed by some the devil, rises and performs;
-but it does not seem to have been witnessed by any European, and is said
-to be now in a great measure disused.
-
-
-
-
-INDIAN GAMES.
-
-
-There are games to which the Indians are fondly attached, which, though
-they be only ranked under the head of amusement, are yet constructed in
-the same serious manner as their other transactions. Their great parties
-are said to be collected by supernatural authority, communicated by
-the jugglers; and they are preceded, like their wars and hunts, by a
-course of fasting, dreaming, and other means of propitiating fortune.
-The favourite game is that of the bone, in which small pieces of that
-substance, resembling dice, and painted of different colours, are thrown
-in the air, and according to the manner in which they fall, the game is
-decided. Only two persons can play; but a numerous party, and sometimes
-whole villages, embrace one side or the other, and look on with intense
-interest. At each throw, especially if it be decisive, tremendous
-shouts are raised; the players and spectators equally resemble
-persons possessed; the air rings with invocations to the bones and to
-the manitous. Their eagerness sometimes leads to quarreling and even
-fighting, which on no other occasion ever disturb the interior of these
-societies. To such a pitch are they occasionally worked up, that they
-stake successively all they possess, and even their personal liberty; but
-this description must apply only to the more southern nations, as slavery
-was unknown among the Canadian Indians.
-
-A temporary interval of wild license, of emancipation from all the
-restraints of dignity and decorum, seems to afford an enjoyment highly
-prized in all rude societies. Corresponding with the saturnalia and
-bacchanals of antiquity, the Indians have their festivals of dreams,
-which, during fifteen days, enlivens the inaction of the coldest
-season. Laying aside all their usual order and gravity, they run about,
-frightfully disguised, and committing every imaginable extravagance.
-He who meets another demands an explanation of his visions, and if not
-satisfied, imposes some fantastic penalty. He throws upon him cold
-water, hot ashes, or filth; sometimes, rushing into his cabin, he
-breaks and destroys the furniture. Although everything appears wild and
-unpremeditated, it is alleged that opportunities are often taken to give
-vent to old and secret resentments. The period having elapsed, a feast is
-given, order is restored, and the damages done are carefully repaired.
-
-
-
-
-BEAUTIFUL TRAIT OF CHARACTER.
-
-
-One M’Dougal, a native of Argyleshire, having emigrated to Upper Canada,
-from anxiety to make the most of his scanty capital, or some other
-motive, he purchased a location, where the price of land is merely
-nominal, in a country thinly peopled, and on the extreme verge of
-civilization. His first care was to construct a house, and plant in the
-wild. This task finished, he spent his whole time, early and late, in the
-garden and the fields. By vigorous exertions, and occasional assistance,
-he brought a few acres of ground under crop; acquired a stock of cattle,
-sheep and hogs; made additional inroads on the glade and the forest,
-and, though his toils were hard, gradually and imperceptibly became, in
-a rough way, “well enough to live,” as compared with the poverty he had
-abandoned at home.
-
-His greatest discomforts were, distance from his neighbours, the church,
-markets, and even the mill; and, along with these, the suspension (or
-rather, the enjoyment) after long intervals of time, of those endearing
-charities and friendly offices, which lend such a charm to social life.
-
-On one occasion, M’Dougal had a melder of corn to grind, and as the
-distance was considerable, and the roads none of the smoothest, this
-important part of his duty could only be performed by starting with the
-sun, and returning with the going down of the same. In his absence, the
-care of the cattle devolved on his spouse, and as they did not return
-at the usual hour, the careful matron went out in quest of them. Beyond
-its mere outskirts, the forest was, to her, _terra incognita_, in the
-most emphatic sense of the term; and with no compass, or notched trees
-to guide, it is not to be wondered at that she wandered long and wearily
-to very little purpose. Like alps on alps, tall trees arose on every
-side—a boundless continuity of shade—and, fatigued with the search,
-she deemed it prudent to retrace her steps, while it was yet time. But
-this resolution was much easier formed than executed; returning was as
-dangerous as “going o’er,” and, after wandering for hours, she sunk on
-the ground, her eyes swollen and filled with tears, and her mind agitated
-almost to distraction. But here she had not rested many minutes, before
-she was startled by the sound of approaching footsteps, and, anon, an
-Indian hunter stood before her, “a stoic of the woods, a man without
-fear.” Mrs. M’Dougal knew that Indians lived at no great distance, but
-as she had never seen a member of the tribe, her emotions were those
-of terror—quickening, it may be said, every pulse, and yet paralyzing
-every limb. The Indian’s views were more comprehensive; constantly on
-the look out, in search of the quarry, and accustomed to make circuits,
-comprising the superficies of many a highland mountain and glen, he had
-observed her, without being observed himself, knew her home, recognized
-her person, comprehended her mishap, divined her errand, and immediately
-beckoned her to follow him. The unfortunate woman understood his signal,
-and obeyed it, as far as terror left her power; and, after a lengthened
-sweep, which added not a little to her previous fatigue, they arrived at
-the door of an Indian wigwam.
-
-Her conductor invited her to enter, by signs: but this she sternly
-refused to do, dreading the consequence, and preferring death in the open
-air to the tender mercies of cannibals within. Perceiving her reluctance,
-and scanning her feelings, the hospitable Indian darted into the wigwam,
-and communed with his wife, who, in a few minutes, also appeared: and,
-by certain signs and sympathies, known only to females, calmed the
-stranger’s fears, and induced her to enter their lowly abode. Venison was
-instantly prepared for supper, and Mrs. M’Dougal—though still alarmed at
-the novelty of her situation, found the viands delicious, and had rarely,
-if ever, partaken of so savoury a meal. Aware that she was wearied, the
-Indians removed from their place near the roof, two beautiful deer skins,
-and, by stretching and fixing them across, divided the wigwam into two
-apartments. Mats were also spread in both, and next, the stranger was
-given to understand, that the further dormitory was expressly designed
-for her accommodation. But here again her courage failed her, and to the
-most pressing intreaties, she replied by signs, as well as she could,
-that she would prefer to sit and sleep by the fire. This determination
-seemed to puzzle the Indian and his squaw sadly. Often they looked at
-each other, and conversed softly in their own language: and, at last,
-the Red took the White woman by the hand, led her to her couch, and
-became her bedfellow. In the morning she awoke greatly refreshed, and
-anxious to depart, without further delay—but the Indian would on no
-account permit it. Breakfast was prepared—another savoury and well-cooked
-meal—and then the Indian accompanied his guest, and conducted her to the
-very spot where the cattle were grazing. These he kindly drove from the
-wood, on the verge of which Mrs. M’Dougal descried her husband, running
-about every where, hallooing and seeking for her, in a state of absolute
-distraction. Great was his joy, and great his gratitude to her Indian
-benefactor, who was invited to the house, and treated to the best the
-larder afforded, and presented, on his departure, with a suit of clothes.
-
-In about three days he returned, and endeavoured, by every wile, to
-induce Mr. M’Dougal to follow him into the forest. But this invitation
-the other positively declined—and the poor Indian went on his way,
-obviously grieved and disappointed. But again he returned; and, though
-words were wanting, renewed his intreaties—but still vainly, and
-without effect: and then, as a last desperate effort, he hit upon an
-expedient, which none, save an Indian hunter, would have thought of.
-Mrs. M’Dougal had a nursling only a few months old—a fact the Indian
-failed not to notice. After his pantomimic eloquence had been thrown
-away, he approached the cradle, seized the child, and darted out of
-the house with the speed of an antelope. The alarmed parents instantly
-followed, supplicating and imploring, at the top of their voices. But the
-Indian’s resolves were as fixed as fate—and away he went, slow enough
-to encourage his pursuers, but still in the van by a good many paces,
-and far enough ahead to achieve the secret purpose he had formed—like
-the parent-bird, skimming the ground, when she wishes to wile the enemy
-from her nest. Again and again Mr. M’Dougal wished to continue the chase
-alone—but maternal anxiety baffled every remonstrance; and this anxiety
-was, if possible, increased, when she saw the painted savage enter the
-wood, and steer, as she thought, his course towards his own cabin. The
-Indian, however, was in no hurry;—occasionally, he cast a glance behind,
-poised the child almost like a feather, treading his way with admirable
-dexterity, and kept the swaddling clothes so closely drawn around it,
-that not even the winds of heaven were permitted to visit it roughly.
-It is, of course, needless to go into all the details of this singular
-journey, further than to say, that the Indian, at length, called a halt
-on the margin of a most beautiful prairie, teeming with the richest
-vegetation, and comprising many thousands of acres. In a moment the child
-was restored to its parents—who, wondering what so strange a procedure
-could mean, stood, for some minutes, panting for breath, and eyeing one
-another in silent and speechless astonishment.
-
-The Indian, on the other hand, appeared overjoyed at the success of his
-manœuvre—and never did a human being frisk about and gesticulate with
-greater animation. We have heard, or read, of a professor of signs: and
-supposing such a character were wanted, the selection could not—or, at
-least should not—be a matter of difficulty, so long as even a remnant
-remains of the aborigines of North America. All travellers agree in
-describing their gestures as highly dignified, eloquent, and intelligent:
-and we have the authority of Mr. M’Dougal for saying, that the hero of
-the present strictly authentic tale, proved himself to be a perfect
-master of the art. The restoration of the child—the beauty and wide
-extent of the prairies, and various other circumstances combined—flashed
-across our countryman’s mind—operating conviction where jealously and
-distrust had lurked before. Mr. M’Dougal, in a trice, examined the soil,
-and immediately saw the propriety of the advice given by the _untutored
-one_. By a sort of tacit agreement, a day was fixed for the removal of
-the materials of our countryman’s cabin, goods and chattels;—and the
-Indian, true to his word, brought a detachment of his tribe to assist
-in one of the most romantic “flittings” that ever was undertaken either
-in the old or new world. In a few days a roomy log-house was fashioned,
-and a garden formed in a convenient section of the beautiful prairie,
-from which the smoke was seen curling, and the woodpecker tapping at
-no great distance. M’Dougal was greatly pleased at the change—and no
-wonder, seeing that he could almost boast of a body-guard as bold as the
-bowmen of Robin Hood. His Indian friend speedily became a sort of foster
-brother, and his tribe as faithful as the most attached Tail of Gillies
-that ever surrounded a Highland chieftain. Even the stupid kine lowed, on
-finding themselves suddenly transferred to a boundless range of richest
-pasture:—and, up to the date of the last advices, were improving rapidly
-in condition, and increasing in numbers.
-
-The little garden was smiling like a rose in the desert—grass,
-overabundant, was gradually giving way to thriving crops, and the kine
-so well satisfied with their _gang_, that the herds and enclosures were
-like unheeded to keep them from the corn. The Indians continued friendly
-and faithful—occasionally bringing presents of venison and other game,
-and were uniformly rewarded from the stores of a dairy, overflowing with
-milk, butter, and cheese.
-
-Attached as the Red man was to his own mode of life, he was induced
-at length to form a part of the establishment, in the capacity of
-grieve, or head shepherd—a duty he undertook most cheerfully, as it
-still left him opportunities of meeting and communing with his friends,
-and reconnoitering the altering denizens of the forest. Let us hope,
-therefore, that no untoward accident will occur to mar this beautiful
-picture of sylvan life; that the M’Dougal colony will wax stronger, till
-every section of the prairie is forced to yield tribute to the spade and
-the plough.
-
-
-
-
-THE REFORMED INDIAN.
-
-
-Some of the Indians believe, that the “Evil Spirit” is the maker of
-spirituous liquors, from which, notwithstanding, hardly one of them can
-refrain. An Indian near the Delaware Water Gap, told Mr. Heckewelder,
-a missionary, that he had once, when under the influence of strong
-liquor, killed the best Indian friend he had, fancying him to be his
-worst avowed enemy. He said that the deception was complete; and that
-while intoxicated, the face of his friend presented to _his_ eyes all
-the features of the man with whom he was in a state of hostility. It is
-impossible to express the horror which struck him, when he awoke from
-that delusion. He was so shocked, that from that moment, he resolved
-never more to taste of the maddening potion, of which he was convinced
-the devil was the inventor; for that it could only be the “Evil Spirit”
-who made him see his enemy when his friend was before him, and produced
-so strong a delusion on his bewildered senses, that he actually killed
-him. From that time until his death, which happened thirty years
-afterwards, he never drank a drop of ardent spirits, which he always
-called “the devil’s blood;” and was firmly persuaded that the devil, or
-some of his infernal spirits, had a hand in preparing it.
-
-
-
-
-FIDELITY.
-
-
-Among the North American Indians, one of the first lessons they inculcate
-on their children, is duty to their parents, and respect for old age;
-and there is not among the most civilized nations, any people who more
-strictly observe the duty of filial obedience. A father need only to say,
-in the presence of his children, “I want such a thing done”—“I want one
-of my children to go upon such an errand”—“Let me see who is the good
-child that will do it.” The word _good_ operates as it were by magic, and
-the children immediately vie with each other to comply with the parent’s
-wishes. If a father sees an old decrepid man or woman pass by, led along
-by a child, he will draw the attention of his own children to the object,
-by saying, “What a _good_ child that must be, which pays such attention
-to the aged! That child, indeed, looks forward to the time when it will
-likewise be old, and need its children’s help.” Or he will say, “May the
-Great Spirit, who looks upon him, grant this _good_ child a long life!”
-
-
-
-
-STRATAGEM DEFEATED.
-
-
-Early in the war of the American revolution, a Sergeant, who travelled
-through the woods of New Hampshire, on his way to the American army, met
-with a singular adventure, which ended much to his credit.
-
-He had twelve men with him. Their route was far from any settlement, and
-they were obliged every night to encamp in the woods. The Sergeant had
-seen a good deal of the Indians, and understood them well;—early in the
-afternoon, one day, as they were marching on, over bogs, swamps, and
-brooks, under the towering maple trees, a body of Indians, exceeding
-their own number, rushed out upon a hill in front of them.
-
-They appeared to be pleased at meeting with the Sergeant and his party.
-They considered them, they said, as their best friends; for themselves,
-they had taken up the hatchet for the Americans, and would scalp and
-strip those rascally English for them, like so many wild cats. “How do
-you do, pro?” (meaning brother) said one. “How do you do, pro?” said
-another, and so they went about, shaking hands with the Sergeant and his
-twelve men.
-
-They went off, at last, and the Sergeant, having marched onward a mile or
-two, halted his men, and addressed them,—“My brave fellows,” said he, “we
-must use all possible caution, or before morning we shall all of us be
-dead men. You are amazed, but depend upon me, these Indians have tried to
-put our suspicion to sleep; you will see more of them by-and-bye.”
-
-It was concluded, finally, to adopt the following scheme for defence:
-they encamped for the night, near a stream of water, which protected them
-from behind. A large oak was felled, and a brilliant fire kindled; each
-man cut a log of wood, about the size of his body, rolled it nicely up
-in his blanket, placed his hat on the end of it, and laid it before the
-fire, that the enemy might take it for a man.
-
-Thirteen logs were fitted out in this way, representing the Sergeant and
-his twelve men. They then placed themselves, with loaded guns, behind the
-fallen tree; by this time it was dark, but the fire was kept burning till
-midnight. The Sergeant knew, that if the Savages ever came, they would
-come now.
-
-A tall Indian was seen, at length, through the glimmering of the fire,
-which was getting low. He moved cautiously towards them, skulking, as an
-Indian always does. He seemed to suspect, at first, that a guard might
-be watching, but seeing none, he came forward more boldly, rested on
-his toes, and was seen to move his finger, as he counted the thirteen
-men, sleeping, as he supposed, by the fire. He counted them again, and
-retired; another came up, and did the same. Then the whole party, sixteen
-in number, came up and glared silently at the logs, till they seemed to
-be satisfied they were fast asleep. Presently they took aim, fired their
-whole number of guns upon the logs, yelled the horrid war-whoop, and
-pushed forward to murder and scalp their supposed victims. The Sergeant
-and his men were ready for them; they fired upon them, and not one of the
-Indians was left to tell the story of that night. The Sergeant reached
-the army in safety.
-
-
-
-
-SCENES IN KING WILLIAM’S WAR, 1689.
-
-
-SURPRISE OF DOVER.
-
-Thirteen years had almost elapsed since the seizure of the 400 Indians,
-at Cocheco, by Major Waldron; during all which time an inextinguishable
-thirst of revenge had been cherished among them, which never till now
-found opportunity for gratification. Wonolanset, one of the sachems of
-Penacook, who was dismissed with his people at the time of the seizure,
-always observed his father’s dying charge, not to quarrel with the
-English; but Hagkins, another sachem, who had been treated with neglect
-by Cranfield, was more ready to listen to the seducing invitations of
-Castine’s emissaries. Some of those Indians, who were then seized and
-sold into slavery abroad, had found their way home, and could not rest
-till they had their revenge. Accordingly a confederacy being formed
-between the tribes of Penacook and Pigwacket, and the strange Indians
-(as they were called) who were incorporated with them, it was determined
-to surprise the major and his neighbours, among whom they had all this
-time been peaceably conversant.
-
-In that part of the town of Dover which lies about the first falls in
-the river Cocheco, were five garrisoned houses; three on the north side,
-called respectively, Waldron, Otis, and Heard; and two on the south side,
-Peter Coffin and his son’s. These houses were surrounded with timber
-walls, the gates of which, as well as the house doors, were secured with
-bolts and bars. The neighbouring families retired to these houses by
-night; but by an unaccountable negligence, no watch was kept. The Indians
-who were daily passing through the town, visiting and trading with the
-inhabitants, as usual in time of peace, viewed their situation with an
-attentive eye. Some hints of a mischievous design had been given out by
-their squaws; but in such dark and ambiguous terms that no one could
-comprehend their meaning. Some of the people were uneasy; but Waldron,
-who, from a long course of experience, was intimately acquainted with
-the Indians, and on other occasions had been ready enough to suspect
-them, was now so thoroughly secure, that when some of the people hinted
-their fears to him, he merrily bade them to go and plant their pumpkins,
-saying that he would tell them when the Indians would break out. The very
-evening before the mischief was done, being told by a young man that the
-town was full of Indians, and the people were much concerned; he answered
-that he knew the Indians very well, and there was no danger.
-
-The plan which the Indians had preconcerted was, that two squaws should
-go to each of the garrisoned houses in the evening, and ask leave to
-lodge by the fire; that in the night when the people were asleep they
-should open the doors and gates, and give the signal by a whistle,
-upon which the strange Indians, who were to be within hearing, should
-rush in, and take their long meditated revenge. This plan being ripe
-for execution, on the evening of Thursday the 27th of June, two squaws
-applied to each of the garrisons for lodging, as they frequently did in
-time of peace. They were admitted into all but the younger Coffin’s,
-and the people, at their request, shewed them how to open the doors, in
-case they should have occasion to go out in the night. Mesandowit, one
-of their chiefs, went to Waldron’s garrison, and was kindly entertained,
-as he had often been before. The squaws told the major, that a number
-of Indians were coming to trade with him the next day, and Mesandowit
-while at supper, with his usual familiarity, said, “Brother Waldron, what
-would you do if the strange Indians should come?” The major carelessly
-answered, that he could assemble 100 men, by lifting up his finger. In
-this unsuspecting confidence the family retired to rest.
-
-When all was quiet, the gates were opened and the signal given. The
-Indians entered, set a guard at the door, and rushed into the major’s
-apartment, which was an inner room. Awakened by the noise, he jumped out
-of bed, and though now advanced in life to the age of eighty years, he
-retained so much vigour as to drive them with his sword through two or
-three doors, but as he was returning for his other arms, they came behind
-him, stunned him with a hatchet, drew him into his hall, and seating him
-in an elbow chair on a long table insultingly asked him, “Who shall judge
-Indians now?” They then obliged the people in the house to get them some
-victuals: and when they had done eating, they cut the major across the
-breast and belly with knives, each one with a stroke saying, “I cross out
-my account.” They then cut off his nose and ears, forcing them into his
-mouth—and when, spent with the loss of blood, he was falling down from
-the table, one of them held his own sword under him, which put an end to
-his misery. They also killed his son in law Abraham Lee; but took his
-daughter Lee with several others, and having pillaged the house, left it
-on fire. Otis’s garrison, which was next to the major’s, met with the
-same fate; he was killed, with several others, and his wife and child
-were captured. Heard’s was saved by the barking of a dog just as the
-Indians were entering: Elder Wentworth, who was awakened by the noise,
-pushed them out, and falling on his back, set his feet against the gate
-and held it till he had alarmed the people; two balls were fired through
-it but both missed him. Coffin’s house was surprised, but as the Indians
-had no particular enmity to him, they spared his life, and the lives of
-his family, and contended themselves with pillaging the house. Finding
-a bag of money, they made him throw it by handfuls on the floor, while
-they amused themselves in scrambling for it. They then went to the house
-of his son who would not admit the squaws in the evening, and summoned
-him to surrender, promising him quarter: he declined their offer, and
-determined to defend his house, till they brought out his father and
-threatened to kill him before his eyes; filial affection then overcame
-his resolution, and he surrendered. They put both families together into
-a deserted house, intending to reserve them for prisoners; but while the
-Indians were busy in plundering, they all escaped.
-
-Twenty-three people were killed in this surprisal, and twenty-nine
-were captured; five or six houses with the mills were burned; and so
-expeditious were the Indians in the execution of their plot, that before
-the people could be collected from the other parts of the town to oppose
-them, they fled with their prisoners and booty. As they passed by Heard’s
-garrison in their retreat, they fired upon it, but the people being
-prepared and resolved to defend it, and the enemy being in haste, it was
-preserved. The preservation of its owner was more remarkable.
-
-Elizabeth Heard, with her three sons and a daughter, and some others,
-were returning in the night from Portsmouth; they passed up the river
-in their boat unperceived by the Indians, who were then in possession of
-the houses; but suspecting danger by the noise which they heard, after
-they had landed they betook themselves to Waldron’s garrison, where
-they saw lights, which they imagined were set up for direction to those
-who might be seeking a refuge. They knocked and begged earnestly for
-admission, but no answer being given, a young man of the company climbed
-up the wall, and saw, to his inexpressible surprise, an Indian standing
-in the door of the house with his gun. The woman was so overcome with the
-fright that she was unable to fly, but begged her children to shift for
-themselves, and they with heavy hearts left her. When she had a little
-recovered she crawled into some bushes, and lay there till day-light: she
-then perceived an Indian coming toward her with a pistol in his hand,
-he looked at her and went away; returning, he looked at her again, and
-she asked him what he would have. He made no answer, but ran yelling to
-the house, and she saw him no more. She kept her place till the house
-was burned and the Indians were gone, and then returning home found her
-own house safe. Her preservation in these dangerous circumstances was
-more remarkable, if (as it is supposed) it was an instance of justice
-and gratitude in the Indians: for at the time when the 400 were seized
-in 1676, a young Indian escaped and took refuge in her house, where she
-concealed him; in return for which kindness he promised her that he
-never would kill her, nor any of her family in any future war, and that
-he would use his influence with the other Indians to the same purpose.
-This Indian was one of the party who surprised the place, and she was
-well known to the most of them.
-
-The same day, after the mischief was done, a letter from Secretary
-Addington, written by order of the government, directed to Major Waldron,
-giving him notice of the intention of the Indians to surprise him under
-pretence of trade, fell into the hands of his son. This design was
-communicated to Governor Bradstreet by Major Henchman of Chelmsford, who
-had learned it of the Indians. The letter was dispatched from Boston, the
-day before, by Mr. Weare; but some delay which he met with at Newbury
-ferry prevented his arrival in season.
-
-The prisoners taken at this time were mostly carried to Canada, and sold
-to the French; and these, so far as can be learned, were the first that
-ever were carried thither. One of these prisoners was Sarah Gerrish, a
-remarkably fine child, of seven years old, and grand-daughter of Major
-Waldron, in whose house she lodged that fatal night. Some circumstances
-attending her captivity are truly affecting. When she was awakened by the
-noise of the Indians in the house, she crept into another bed, and hid
-herself under the clothes to escape their search. She remained in their
-hands till the next winter, and was sold from one to another several
-times. An Indian girl once pushed her into a river; but, catching by
-the bushes, she escaped drowning, yet durst not tell how she came to be
-wet. Once she was so weary with travelling, that she did not awake in
-the morning till the Indians were gone, and then found herself alone in
-the woods, covered with snow, and without any food; having found their
-tracks, she went crying after them till they heard her and took her with
-them. At another time they kindled a great fire, and the young Indians
-told her she was to be roasted. She burst into tears, threw her arms
-round her master’s neck, and begged him to save her, which he promised
-to do if she would behave well. Being arrived in Canada, she was bought
-by the Intendant’s lady, who treated her courteously, and sent her to a
-nunnery for education. But when Sir William Phips was at Quebec she was
-exchanged, and returned to her friends, with whom she lived till she was
-sixteen years old.
-
-The wife of Richard Otis was taken at the same time, with an infant
-daughter of three months old. The French priests took this child under
-their care, baptised her by the name of Christina, and educated her in
-the Romish religion. She passed some time in a nunnery, but declined
-taking the veil, and was married to a Frenchman, by whom she had two
-children. But her desire to see New England was so strong, that upon an
-exchange of prisoners in 1714, being then a widow, she left both her
-children, who were not permitted to come with her, and returned home,
-where she abjured the Romish faith. M. Siguenot, her former confessor,
-wrote her a flattering letter, warning her of her danger, inviting her
-to return to the bosom of the catholic church, and repeating many gross
-calumnies which had formerly been vented against Luther and the other
-reformers. This letter being shown to Governor Burnet, he wrote her a
-sensible and masterly answer, refuting the arguments, and detecting the
-falsehoods it contained: both these letters were printed. She was married
-afterwards to Captain Thomas Baker, who had been taken at Deerfield, in
-1704, and lived in Dover, where she was born, till the year 1773. The
-Indians had been seduced to the French interest by popish emissaries, who
-had begun to fascinate them with their religious and national prejudices.
-They had now learned to call the English heretics, and that to extirpate
-them as such was meritorious in the sight of heaven. When their minds
-were filled with religious frenzy, they became more bitter and implacable
-enemies than before; and finding the sale of scalps and prisoners turn
-to good account in Canada, they had still farther incitement to continue
-their depredations, and prosecute their vengeance.
-
-
-TREATMENT OF THE PRISONERS AT SALMON FALLS IN 1690.
-
-The following instances of cruelty, exercised towards the prisoners
-taken at Salmon falls, are mentioned by Dr. Mather. Robert Rogers, a
-corpulent man, being unable to carry the burden which the Indians imposed
-upon him, threw it in the path and went aside in the woods to conceal
-himself. They found him by his track, stripped, beat, and pricked him
-with their swords: then tied him to a tree and danced round him till they
-had kindled a fire. They gave him time to pray, and take leave of his
-fellow prisoners, who were placed round the fire to see his death. They
-pushed the fire toward him, and when he was almost stifled, took it away
-to give him time to breathe, and thus prolong his misery; they drowned
-his dying groans with their hideous singing and yelling, all the while
-dancing round the fire, cutting off pieces of his flesh and throwing them
-in his face. When he was dead they left his body broiling on the coals,
-in which state it was found by his friends and buried. Mehetabel Goodwin
-was taken with a child of five months old; when it cried they threatened
-to kill it, which made the mother go aside and sit for hours together in
-the snow to lull it to sleep; her master seeing that this hindered her
-from travelling, took the child, struck its head against a tree, and hung
-it on one of the branches; she would have buried it but he would not
-let her, telling her that if she came again that way she might have the
-pleasure of seeing it. She was carried to Canada, and after five years
-returned home. Mary Plaisted was taken out of her bed, having lain in
-but three weeks: they made her travel with them through the snow and “to
-ease her of her burden,” as they said, struck the child’s head against a
-tree, and threw it into a river. An anecdote of another kind may relieve
-the reader after these tragical accounts. Thomas Toogood was pursued
-by three Indians and overtaken by one of them, who having enquired his
-name, was preparing strings to bind him, holding his gun under his arm,
-which Toogood seized and went backward, keeping the gun presented at him,
-and protesting that he would shoot him if he alarmed the others who had
-stopped on the opposite side of the hill. By this dexterity he escaped
-and got safe into Cocheco; while his adversary had no recompense in his
-power but to call after him by the name of Nogood.
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES
-
-
-[1] General Jackson.
-
-[2] Published in the Mobile Com. Register. March, 1824.
-
-[3] This speech is the most manly and dignified piece of Indian oratory
-that has ever met our eye. It even surpasses the admired speech of
-Caractacus, the Briton, when led captive to Rome;—and is, in no wise,
-inferior to that of Logan.
-
-[4] This interesting fact of a young Indian Chief of the Pawnee nation,
-at the foot of the Rocky Mountains, who was on a visit to Washington in
-the winter of 1824, is extracted from a letter of the Rev. Richard Reece,
-to the editor of the London Wesleyan Methodist Magazine.
-
-[5] In 1775 Shenandoh was present at a treaty made in Albany. At night he
-was excessively drunk; and in the morning, found himself in the street,
-stripped of all his ornaments, and every article of clothing. His pride
-revolted at his self-degradation, and he resolved never more to deliver
-himself over to the power of ‘strong water.’
-
-[6] The Editor of the Indian Anecdotes, is not responsible for the
-sentiments, which any of the Anecdotes of this collection may seem to
-illustrate. And although he has carefully omitted such as would tend to
-corrupt, or exert an immoral influence on the character; he disclaims
-every political or religious partiality. The above has been introduced as
-an interesting specimen of Indian logic.
-
-[7] The Mandan tribe is now entirely extinct—_Catlin._
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BOYS' BOOK OF INDIAN
-BATTLES AND ADVENTURES ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
-Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
-on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
-phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg™ License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
-other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
-Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-provided that:
-
-• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.”
-
-• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
- works.
-
-• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
-of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you “AS-IS”, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
-
-Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/69769-0.zip b/old/69769-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index fd2eac8..0000000
--- a/old/69769-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h.zip b/old/69769-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 409a924..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/69769-h.htm b/old/69769-h/69769-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index ea4de80..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/69769-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9473 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8">
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Boys’ Book of Indian Battles and Adventures, by John Lauris Blake.
- </title>
-
- <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover">
-
- <style>
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h2.nobreak {
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-hr.chap {
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- clear: both;
- width: 65%;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-img.w100 {
- width: 100%;
-}
-
-div.chapter {
- page-break-before: always;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 10%;
-}
-
-.caption {
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.caption-r {
- text-align: right;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.footnotes {
- margin-top: 1em;
- border: dashed 1px;
-}
-
-.footnote {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- font-size: 0.9em;
-}
-
-.footnote .label {
- position: absolute;
- right: 84%;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-.larger {
- font-size: 150%;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: 4%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {
- margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;
-}
-
-.poetry .verse {
- padding-left: 3em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent0 {
- text-indent: -3em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent2 {
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.right {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.smaller {
- font-size: 80%;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.titlepage {
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 3em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker img {
- max-width: 100%;
- width: auto;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 5%;
-}
-
-/* Illustration classes */
-.illowp100 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp48 {width: 48%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp48 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp61 {width: 61%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp61 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp75 {width: 75%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp75 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp80 {width: 80%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp80 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp95 {width: 95%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp95 {width: 100%;}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The boys&#039; book of Indian battles and adventures, by John Blake</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The boys&#039; book of Indian battles and adventures</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:1em;'>with anecdotes about them</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: John Blake</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: January 11, 2023 [eBook #69769]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Brian Coe and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BOYS&#039; BOOK OF INDIAN BATTLES AND ADVENTURES ***</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_i"></a>[i]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus01" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus01.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">INDIAN MAIDEN.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_ii"></a>[ii]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_iii"></a>[iii]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center larger"><span class="smaller">THE</span><br>
-BOYS’ BOOK<br>
-<span class="smaller">OF</span><br>
-INDIAN<br>
-Battles and Adventures.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter titlepage illowp75" id="illus02" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus02.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<p class="titlepage">New York:<br>
-JAMES MILLER.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_iv"></a>[iv]</span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage larger"><span class="smaller">THE</span><br>
-BOYS’ BOOK<br>
-OF INDIAN<br>
-Battles and Adventures,<br>
-<span class="smaller">WITH ANECDOTES ABOUT THEM.</span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">ILLUSTRATED WITH TEN ENGRAVINGS</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">BY THE AUTHOR OF “EVENINGS IN BOSTON,” “RAMON<br>
-THE ROVER OF CUBA,” ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">New York:<br>
-JAMES MILLER, 522 BROADWAY.<br>
-<span class="smaller">M.DCCC.LXVI.</span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage smaller">Entered, according to Act of Congress, in the year 1860, by<br>
-JAMES MILLER,<br>
-in the Clerk’s office of the District Court of the United States, for the<br>
-Southern District of New York.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_v"></a>[v]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PREFACE">PREFACE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The character of the aboriginal inhabitants
-of the western continent is in many respects
-remarkable and striking. It possesses great
-interest for the student of history as well as the
-observer of human nature. Still this character
-has never been properly exhibited in a connected
-view. One is obliged to detect the traits in detached
-incidents and scattered descriptions; and
-thus by a sort of inductive process to determine
-the real disposition, powers and capabilities of
-the North American Savage. It is for the
-purpose of bringing the materials of this inductive
-process within the compass of a single
-volume of moderate size that these “Anecdotes”
-have been collected. They present the savage
-in all his various aspects and relations, in all
-circumstances of sorrow and joy, danger, difficulty
-and triumph. The incidents here narrated,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_vi"></a>[vi]</span>
-while they exhibit the most prominent traits of
-the Indian character, also bring into view the
-most striking passages of our national history
-in its connection with the aborigines, and thus
-serve a double purpose as an exercise in historical
-as well as philosophical study. Its chief
-object is utility. Its particular design is to
-subserve the great cause of national education.</p>
-
-<p class="smaller"><span class="smcap">New York</span>, <i>Oct. 1st, 1860</i>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_7"></a>[7]</span></p>
-
-<h1>INDIAN BATTLES<br>
-<span class="smaller">AND</span><br>
-ADVENTURES.</h1>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_HONESTY">INDIAN HONESTY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In the character of the Indians of North
-America there are many traits which their white
-neighbours would do well to imitate. Among
-these, strict honesty is one. Mr. Catlin gives
-the credit of this virtue to all the wild tribes
-which he visited, not corrupted by intercourse
-with civilized nations. Bolts and bars, for the
-protection of property, among them are unknown.
-He cites many examples to prove this.
-The following anecdote is from another source.</p>
-
-<p>An Indian being among his white neighbours,
-asked for a little tobacco to smoke, and one of
-them, having some loose in his pocket, gave
-him a handful. The day following, the Indian
-came back, inquiring for the donor, saying he
-had found a quarter of a dollar among the tobacco;
-being told that as it was given him he
-might as well keep it, he answered, pointing to
-his breast: ‘I got a good man and a bad man
-here; and the good man say, it is not mine, I
-must return it to the owner; the bad man say,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_8"></a>[8]</span>
-why he gave it to you, and it is your own
-now; the good man say, that’s not right, the
-tobacco is yours, not the money; the bad man
-say, never mind, you got it, go buy some dram;
-the good man say, no, no, you must not do so;
-so I don’t know what to do, and I think to go
-to sleep; but the good man and the bad man
-keep talking all night, and trouble me; and
-now I bring the money back I feel good.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="HONOR_AMONG_INDIANS">HONOR AMONG INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>There is no class of human beings on earth,
-who hold a pledge more sacred and binding,
-than do the North American Indians. A sample
-of this was witnessed during the Winnebago
-war of 1827, in the person of Dekker-re,
-a celebrated chief of that nation, who, among
-four other Indians of his tribe, was taken prisoner
-at Prairie du Chien. Colonel Snelling, of
-the 5th regiment of infantry, who then commanded
-that garrison, despatched a young Indian
-into the nation, with orders to inform the
-other chiefs of Dekker-re’s band, that unless
-those Indians who were perpetrators of the
-horrid murders of some of our citizens, were
-brought to the fort and given up within ten
-days, Dekker-re and the other four Indians who
-were retained as hostages, would be shot at the
-end of that time. The awful sentence was pronounced
-in the presence of Dekker-re, who,
-though proclaiming his own innocence of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_9"></a>[9]</span>
-outrages which had been committed by others
-of his nation, exclaimed that he feared not
-death, though it would be attended with serious
-consequences, inasmuch as he had two
-affectionate wives and a large family of small
-children who were entirely dependent on him
-for their support; but if necessary, he was willing
-to die for the honour of his nation. The
-young Indian had been gone several days, and
-no intelligence was yet received from the murderers.
-The dreadful day being near at hand,
-and Dekker-re being in a bad state of health,
-asked permission of the Colonel to go to the
-river to indulge in his long accustomed habit of
-bathing; in order to improve his health. Upon
-which, Col. S. told him that, if he would promise,
-on the honor of a chief, that he would not
-leave the town, he might have his liberty, and
-enjoy all his privileges, until the day of the appointed
-execution. Accordingly he first gave
-his hand to the Colonel, thanked him for his
-friendly offer, then raised both his hands aloft,
-and in the most solemn adjuration, promised
-that he would not leave the bounds prescribed,
-and said, if he had a hundred lives, he would
-sooner lose them all than forfeit his word, or
-deduct from his proud nation one particle of its
-boasted honor. He was then set at liberty. He
-was advised to flee to the wilderness, and make
-his escape. “But no,” said he, “do you think
-I prize life above honor? or that I would betray
-a confidence reposed in me, for the sake of
-saving my life?” He then complacently remained<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_10"></a>[10]</span>
-until nine days of the ten which he had
-to live had elapsed, and nothing heard from the
-nation with regard to the apprehension of the
-murderers, his immediate death became apparent;
-but no alteration could be seen in the
-countenance of the chief. It so happened that
-on that day, Gen. Atkinson arrived with his
-troops from Jefferson Barracks, and the order
-for execution was countermanded, and the
-Indians permitted to repair to their homes.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_ELOQUENCE">INDIAN ELOQUENCE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The Indian warrior Tecumseh, who fell in
-the late American war, was not only an accomplished
-military commander, but also a great
-natural statesman and orator. Among the many
-strange, and some strongly characteristic events
-of his life, the council which the American General
-Harrison held with the Indians at Vincennes,
-in 1811, affords an admirable instance of
-the sublimity which sometimes distinguished
-his eloquence. The chiefs of some tribes had
-come to complain of a purchase of lands which
-had been made from the Kickafoos. The council
-effected nothing, but broke up in confusion,
-in consequence of Tecumseh having called General
-Harrison “a liar.” During the long talks
-which took place in the conference, Tecumseh
-having finished one of his speeches, looked
-round, and seeing every one seated, while no
-seat was prepared for him, a momentary frown<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_11"></a>[11]</span>
-passed over his countenance. Instantly General
-Harrison ordered that a chair should be
-given him. Some person presented one, and
-bowing, said to him, “Warrior, your father,
-General Harrison, offers you a seat.” Tecumseh’s
-dark eye flashed. “My father!” he exclaimed
-indignantly, extending his arms towards
-heaven; “the sun is my father, and the
-earth is my mother; she gives me nourishment,
-and I repose upon her bosom.” As he ended,
-he suddenly seated himself on the ground.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_COQUETRY">INDIAN COQUETRY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The Chawanon Indians, inhabiting the lake
-of Marcotti, and who are considered the most
-warlike and civilized of the American Indians,
-have a manner of courtship which we believe
-to be peculiar to themselves. When such of their
-young women as have pretensions to beauty, attain
-their twelfth year, which is the usual period
-of their marriage, they either keep themselves
-quite secluded at home, or when they go out
-muffle themselves up in such a manner, that
-nothing is seen but their eyes. On these indications
-of beauty, they are eagerly sought in
-marriage, and those suitors who have acquired
-the greatest reputation as warriors or hunters,
-obtain the consent of the family. After this,
-the lover repairs to the cabin, where the beauty
-is lying enveloped on her couch. He gently
-approaches and uncovers her face, so that his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_12"></a>[12]</span>
-person may be seen, and if this be to her mind,
-she invites him to lie down by her side; if not,
-she again conceals her face, and the lover retires.
-A husband has the privilege of marrying
-all his wife’s sisters as they arrive at age, so
-that after, often before, his first wife is thirty,
-he has married and abandoned at least a
-dozen.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="WEATHERFORD">WEATHERFORD.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“I come, my Wilwullah!</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Guide hither our boy!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">I bring from the forest</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Its spirit and joy:</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Why lingereth my soft-eyed?”</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And dark grew his brow;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“Thy hunter returneth—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Where, truant, art thou?”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">He enters his wigwam—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">What meaneth that cry?</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">His bold form what freezeth?</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">What filmeth his eye?</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The work of the white men!</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">His mate of the wood,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And their fawns, the light-footed,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">All couched in their blood!</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">Before a cold foeman</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">The Indian is cold;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">But his heart in his wild-wood</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Is like molten gold.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The warrior has clasped them—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">He’s red in their gore!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Has raved and wept o’er them—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">But ne’er will weep more!</div><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_13"></a>[13]</span>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“Ye snow-brow destroyers!</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Ye false and ye foul!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">For this, by Manito!</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">For this shall ye howl!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">I swear that pale thousands</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Shall weep for this blow;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">For each drop here wasted,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Red rivers shall flow!</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“When smoke dims the distance,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And shrieks fill the air,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Then white lips will whisper,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">‘<i>Fly! Weatherford’s there!</i>’</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Your warriors shall perish;</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">We’ll laugh at their shame;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And the blood of your loved ones</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Shall hiss in the flame!”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">How was that vow answered?</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Ask Mimms: it will tell!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Where the battle was hottest</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">There <i>his</i> hatchet fell;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Where the shriek was the loudest,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Where freest ran blood,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Be sure, mid his victims,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">There Weatherford stood!</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">But feeble the red men,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Though fierce in the fray;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Like mists in the morning,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">They melted away.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“Give us peace!” prayed the vanquished;</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">“The white chieftain gives</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">No peace”—was the answer—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">“While Weatherford lives.”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">That lion-souled chieftain’s<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Alone in his tent:</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">’Tis midnight; still over</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">His toil he is bent.</div><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_14"></a>[14]</span>
- <div class="verse indent0">The drapery is rustled—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">He turns not his ear:</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“Ho! Look up, proud warrior,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Thy foreman is here!”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">A dark form stood o’er him,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">His red arm on high;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">But quailed not the chieftain</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Beneath his dark eye.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“What art thou, bold savage?</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Sooth, light the foot fell</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">That stole through the watch</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Of my tried sentinel.”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“Where Weatherford willeth,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Even there will he go;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">He heeds not thy sentry</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">When seeking his foe.”</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“I fear thee not, boaster!”</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">“Thou needest not fear;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">For peace for my people,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">For peace came I here.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“Thou’d’st have me sent to thee.</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And sent to thee bound;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">But Weatherford dies not</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">The death of a hound:</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">No recreant, no trembler,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">No captive am I—</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">I’ve fetterless lived, and</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Will fetterless die.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“To save my crushed people</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">I die, but die free—</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">A sacrifice worthy</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Of them and of thee!”</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“No—back to thy forest—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Bold warrior go!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">I strike not the head</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">That is bent to the blow</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“Aye, go! but remember</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">When meet we again,</div><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_15"></a>[15]</span>
- <div class="verse indent0">Thy lot is the gibbet,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">The cord and the chain.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Be strong for the battle!</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">No quarter we yield:</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">No fear and no mercy!</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Now, back to the field!”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“I long have fought with thee,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And still would fight on—</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">But my true Seminoles—</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">My warriors are gone!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">My brave ones I’d rally,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And fight at their head;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">But where is the warrior</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Can rally the dead!</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“At red Talledegha,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Emuckfaw they stood—</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Thou knowest that our valleys</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Are black with their blood.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">By the wailing Savannah</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Unburied they lie;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Spare, warrior, the remnant,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Let Weatherford die!”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">No longer the soldier</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">The bold plea could hear,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">But quick from his bronzed cheek</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">He hurried a tear.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“Devoted and brave! As</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Thou will’st shall it be;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Here’s peace to thy people,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And friendship for thee!”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus03" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus03.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Weatherford’s Revenge.</p>
-</div>
-
-<h3>THE FOLLOWING IS THE INCIDENT ON WHICH
-THE FOREGOING LINES ARE FOUNDED.<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a></h3>
-
-<p>Billy Weatherford, the celebrated savage
-warrior, is, at length, vanquished—the destroyer<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_16"></a>[16]</span>
-is conquered—the hand which so profusely
-dealt death and desolation among the whites,
-is now paralyzed—it is motionless. He died
-at his late residence near Montpelier, in this
-state, on the 9th inst. His deeds of war are
-well known to the early settlers in South Alabama,
-and will be remembered by them while
-they live: and be talked of, with horror, by
-generations yet unborn. But his dauntless spirit
-has taken its flight—“he is gone to the land
-of his fathers.”</p>
-
-<p>Billy Weatherford, denominated ‘The Prophet,’
-was about one-fourth Indian (some say
-a half breed) his ancestry, on the white side,
-having been Scottish. It has been said, that
-he boasted of having no <i>Yankee</i> (meaning
-American) blood in his veins.</p>
-
-<p>This ferocious chief led the hostile Indians to
-the attack of Fort Mimms, at Tensau, on the
-30th of August, 1813; which resulted in the
-indiscriminate massacre of men, women, and
-children, to the number of near four hundred.
-He was also a leader associated with the prophets
-Francis and Sinquister, at the battle
-fought on the 23d of December following, at
-Ekchanachaca, or ‘The Holy Ground;’ which
-had been considered by them inaccessible to
-their enemies, and the ‘Grave of White Men.’
-But it proved a fatal delusion. His party suffered
-great loss of warriors, and all the provisions,
-munitions of war, &amp;c., deposited at this
-place of imaginary security; being, as they
-supposed, rendered secure by the protecting influence
-of some supernatural agency.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_17"></a>[17]</span></p>
-
-<p>It is stated, that—after being sated with the
-blood of Americans, and witnessing the almost
-total extinction of his warriors—he voluntarily
-and dauntlessly flung himself into the hands of
-General Jackson, and demanded his protection.
-He is said, on surrendering himself, to have
-made the following speech to the General—which
-looks very little like claiming <i>protection</i>.
-It displays a spirit, which would have done
-credit to Napoleon, under similar circumstances,
-after the battle of Waterloo:</p>
-
-<p>“I am in your power: do with me what you
-please. I am a soldier. I have done the white
-people all the harm I could. I have fought
-them, and fought them bravely. If I had an
-army, I would yet fight, and contend to the
-last. But I have done—my people are all
-gone—I can do no more than weep over the
-misfortunes of my nation. Once I could animate
-my warriors to battle: but I cannot animate
-the dead. My warriors can no longer
-hear my voice—their bones are at Talladega,
-Tallaschatchee, Emuckfaw, and Tohopeka. I
-have not surrendered myself thoughtlessly.
-Whilst there were chances of success, I never
-left my post, nor supplicated peace. But my
-people are gone, and I now ask it for my nation,
-and for myself.</p>
-
-<p>“On the miseries and misfortunes brought
-upon my country, I look back with the deepest
-sorrow, and wish to avert still greater calamities.
-If I had been left to contend with the
-Georgian army, I would have raised my corn<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_18"></a>[18]</span>
-on one bank of the river, and have fought them
-on the other. But your people have destroyed
-my nation. You are a brave man. I rely upon
-your generosity. You will exact no terms of a
-conquered people, but such as they should accede
-to. Whatever they may be, it would now
-be madness and folly to oppose them. If they
-are opposed, you shall find me among the
-sternest enforcers of obedience. Those who
-would still hold out, can be influenced only by
-a mean spirit of revenge; and, to this, they
-must not, and <i>shall not</i>, sacrifice the last remnant
-of their country. You have told us,
-where we might go, and be safe. This is a
-good talk, and my nation ought to listen to it.
-<i>They <span class="smcap">shall</span> listen to it.</i>”<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_CHARACTER">INDIAN CHARACTER.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A striking display of Indian character occurred
-some years since in a town in Maine.
-An Indian of the Kennebeck tribe remarkable
-for his good conduct, received a grant of land
-from the state, and fixed himself in a new
-township, where a number of families settled.
-Though not ill treated, yet the common prejudice
-against Indians prevented any sympathy<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_19"></a>[19]</span>
-with him. This was shown at the death of his
-only child, when none of the people came near
-him. Shortly afterwards he went to some of
-the inhabitants, and said to them. <i>When white
-man’s child die—Indian man be sorry—he
-help bury him—when my child die—no one
-speak to me—I make his grave alone—I cant
-no live here.</i>—He gave up his farm, <i>dug up
-the body of his child</i> and carried it with him
-two hundred miles through the forest, to join
-the Canada Indians. What energy and depth
-of feeling does this specimen of Indian character
-exhibit!</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="AN_INDIAN_BEAU">AN INDIAN BEAU.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A young Indian warrior is, notoriously, the
-most thoroughgoing beau in the world. Bond-street
-and Broadway furnish no subjects that
-will undergo as much crimping and confinement,
-to appear in full dress. We are confident
-that we have observed such a character
-constantly occupied with his paints and his
-pocket-glass, three full hours, laying on his colours,
-and adjusting his tresses, and contemplating,
-from time to time, with visible satisfaction,
-the progress of his growing attractions.
-When he has finished, the proud triumph of
-irresistible charms is in his eye. The chiefs
-and warriors, in full dress, have one, two, or
-three broad clasps of silver about their arms;
-generally jewels in their ears, and often in their<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_20"></a>[20]</span>
-noses; and nothing is more common than to
-see a thin circular piece of silver, of the size of
-a dollar, depending from their nose, a little below
-the upper lip. Nothing shows more clearly
-the influence of fashion. This ornament—so
-painfully inconvenient, as it evidently is to
-them, and so horribly ugly and disfiguring—seems
-to be the utmost finish of Indian taste.
-Porcupine quills, stained of different colours,
-are twisted in their hair. Tails of animals hang
-from their hair behind. A necklace of bears’
-or alligators’ teeth, or claws of the bald eagle,
-hangs loosely down; and an interior and smaller
-circle of large red beads, or in default of
-them, a rosary of red hawthorn berries, surrounds
-the neck. From the knees to the feet,
-the legs are decorated with great numbers of
-little perforated cylindrical pieces of silver or
-brass, that emit a simultaneous tinkle as the
-person walks. If, to all this, he add an American
-hat, and a soldier’s coat, of blue, faced
-with red, over the customary calico shirt of the
-gaudiest colours that can be found, he lifts his
-feet high, and steps firmly on the ground, to
-give his tinklers a uniform and full sound; and
-apparently considers his person with as much
-complacency as the human bosom can be supposed
-to feel. This is a very curtailed view of
-an Indian beau; but every reader, competent
-to judge, will admit its fidelity, as far as it goes,
-to the description of a young Indian warrior
-over the whole Mississippi Valley, when prepared
-to take part in a public dance.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_21"></a>[21]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="AN_INDIAN_TOAST">AN INDIAN TOAST.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>When General Wayne was holding his treaty
-with the Indians at Greenville, a young chief
-sat down at the dinner table, next to the General.
-This was not much relished by the <i>White
-Chief</i>; but he did not wish to give open offence
-to his <i>Red Brother</i>. The cloth being removed,
-the wine began to circulate; when Wayne—thinking
-to confound and abash the young
-chief—asked him for a <i>toast</i>. This being interpreted
-and explained to this son of the forest,
-he filled his tumbler with wine, and gave ‘<i>The
-Great Spirit</i>’—and after an impressive pause,
-pressing his hand on his breast—he added,
-“<i>Because he put it into the heart of man to
-make such good liquor!</i>”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="SHREWDNESS">SHREWDNESS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="center">“<i>He that delivereth it unto thee hath the
-greater sin.</i>”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“I am glad,” said the Rev. Dr. Y⸺s to
-the chief of the Little Ottowas, “that you do
-not drink whiskey. But it grieves me to find
-that your people use so much of it.” “Ah,
-yes,” replied the Indian,—and he fixed an
-arch and impressive eye upon the Doctor,
-which communicated the reproof before he
-uttered it—“we Indians <i>use</i> a great deal of
-whiskey, but we do not <i>make</i> it.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_22"></a>[22]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="LANGUAGE_BY_SIGNS">LANGUAGE BY SIGNS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It is pretty well ascertained that there exists
-among mankind a universal language of signs,
-taught by nature herself. Voyagers have always
-used these signs among savage and previously
-undiscovered nations. They are always understood,
-and invariably form the basis of intercourse.
-The former director of the Hartford
-Asylum for the Deaf and Dumb, informed the
-writer, that all the mutes who came to that institution
-from different parts of the country,
-brought with them signs and motions which
-were essentially the same, and which coincided
-with those used in the institution. This proves
-that they are <i>natural</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Andrew Ellicott, Esq., commissioned by the
-United States to determine, in conjunction with
-the Commissioners of Spain, a line of demarcation
-between the territories of both nations,—related
-to the writer a curious trait in the
-savage character.</p>
-
-<p>On his way down the Mississippi, a number
-of strange Indians came into his camp, from
-the west side of the river. A Mr. Nolin happened
-to be there at the time,—well known for
-his enterprize and skill in catching wild horses
-in the Internal Provinces of Spanish America.
-He addressed them in such of the languages as
-he was acquainted with—but was not understood.
-He then conversed by certain signs.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_23"></a>[23]</span>
-These were understood by the Indians, and were
-answered in like manner. Thus (if the expression
-may be allowed) a conversation ensued, in
-which not a word was spoken:—“and this,”
-said Nolin, “is a sort of universal language
-common to the Western tribes.”—(<i>See Major
-Long’s Expedition.</i>)</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="LOGAN">LOGAN.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This celebrated Indian chief, who had always
-been a zealous friend of the English, and
-had often distinguished himself in their service,
-was taken prisoner, and brought before the
-General Assembly of Virginia, who hesitated
-whether he should be tried by court martial as
-a soldier, or at the criminal bar for high treason.
-Logan stated that they had no jurisdiction
-to try him; that he owed no allegiance to
-the King of England, being an Indian Chief,
-independent of every nation. In answer to
-their inquiries as to his motives for taking up
-arms against the English, he thus addressed
-the Assembly. “I appeal to any white man,
-to say if ever he entered Logan’s cabin hungry,
-and I gave him not meat; if ever he came cold
-or naked, and I gave him not clothing. During
-the last long and bloody war, Logan remained
-idle in his tent, an advocate for peace;
-nay such was my love for the whites, that
-those of my country pointed at me, as they
-passed by, and said, ‘Logan is the friend of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_24"></a>[24]</span>
-white men.’ I had ever thought to live with
-you but for the injuries of one man. Colonel
-Cressap, the last spring, in cold blood, and unprovoked,
-cut off all the relations of Logan,
-not sparing even my women and children.
-There runs not a drop of my blood in the veins
-of any human creature. This called on me
-for revenge. I have sought it. I have killed
-many. I have fully glutted my vengeance.
-For my country, I rejoice at the beams of
-peace. But do not harbor the thought that
-mine is the joy of fear. Logan never felt fear.
-He will not turn his heel to save his life. Who
-is there to mourn for Logan? Not one!”</p>
-
-<p>This pathetic speech touched the sensibility
-of all who heard it. The General Assembly
-applauded his noble sentiments, and immediately
-set him at liberty. The inhabitants of
-Virginia vied with each other who should entertain
-him the best, or show him the greatest
-respect; and he returned to his native country
-loaded with presents and honors.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_INDIANS_VIEWS_OF_THE_TRINITY">THE INDIAN’S VIEWS OF THE TRINITY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Elliot had been lecturing on the doctrine of
-the trinity, when one of his auditors, after a
-long and thoughtful pause, thus addressed him.
-‘I believe, Mr. Minister, I understand you. The
-trinity is just like water and ice and snow.
-The water is one, the ice is another, and the
-snow is another; and yet they are all one
-water.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_25"></a>[25]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="MORE_ROOM">MORE ROOM.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>When General Lincoln went to make peace
-with the Creek Indians, one of the chiefs asked
-him to sit down on a log; he was then desired
-to move, and in a few minutes to move still
-farther; the request was repeated till the General
-got to the end of the log. The Indian said,
-‘Move farther.’ To which the General replied,
-‘I can move no farther.’ ‘Just so it is with us,’
-said the chief; ‘you have moved us back to
-the water, and then ask us to move farther.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_MENDACITY">INDIAN MENDACITY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Of all the vices incident to the aborigines of
-this country, from their intercourse with the
-whites, that of lying is, probably, not among
-the least. Some years anterior to the independence
-of the United States, one Tom Hyde,
-an Indian famous for his cunning, went into a
-tavern in Brookfield, Massachusetts, and after
-a little chat told the landlord he had been hunting,
-and had killed a fine fat deer, and if he
-would give him a quart of rum he would tell
-him where it was. Mine host, unwilling to let
-slip so good an opportunity of obtaining venison,
-immediately struck the bargain and measured
-the Indian his quart of rum, at the same
-time asking where the deer was to be found.
-‘Well,’ says Tom, ‘do you know where the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_26"></a>[26]</span>
-great meadow is?’ ‘Yes.’ ‘Well, do you know
-the great marked maple tree that stands in it?’
-‘Yes.’ ‘Well, there lies the deer.’ Away
-posted the landlord with his team, in quest of
-his purchase. He found the meadow and the
-tree, it is true; but all his searching after the
-deer was fruitless, and he returned home no
-heavier than he went, except in mortification
-and disappointment. Some days after, mine
-host met the Indian, and feeling indignant at
-the deception practised on him, accused him in
-no gentle terms of the trick. Tom heard him
-out—and, with the coolness of a stoic, replied—‘Did
-you not find the meadow, as I said?’
-‘Yes.’ ‘And the tree?’ ‘Yes.’ ‘And the
-deer?’ ‘No.’ ‘Very good,’ continued he, ‘you
-found <i>two truths for one lie, which is very
-well for an Indian</i>.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CANONICUS1">CANONICUS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Drake, in his Book of the Indians, thus
-mentions Canonicus, the sachem of the Narragansets:—</p>
-
-<p>He was contemporary with Miantunnomoh,
-who was his nephew. We know not the time
-of his birth, but a son of his was at Boston in
-1631, the next year after it was settled. But
-the time of his death is minutely recorded by
-Governor Winthrop, in his “Journal,” thus:
-“June 4, 1647, Canonicus, the great sachem of
-Narraganset, died, a very old man.” He is<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_27"></a>[27]</span>
-generally supposed to have been about 85 years
-of age when he died.</p>
-
-<p>He is mentioned with great respect by Rev.
-Roger Williams, in the year 1654. After observing
-that many hundreds of the English were
-witnesses to the friendly disposition of the Narragansets,
-he says, “their late famous long-lived
-Canonicus so lived and died, and in the same
-most honourable manner and solemnity, (in their
-way,) as you laid to sleep your prudent peace-maker,
-Mr. Winthrop, did they honour this their
-prudent and peaceable prince; yea, through all
-their towns and countries how frequently do
-many, and oft times our Englishmen, travel
-alone with safety and loving kindness?”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="ESQUIMAUX_INDIANS">ESQUIMAUX INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>Captain Ross, in the Journal of his Arctic Expedition,
-gives the following account of his first
-interview with the Esquimaux, in the northern
-parts of Baffin’s Bay:</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“These Esquimaux,” says he, “conceived
-the <i>ships to be living and flying creatures</i>.”
-... “I had been employed, with a
-good telescope, in observing their motions, and
-beheld the first man approach, with every mark
-of fear and distrust—looking frequently behind
-to the other two, and beckoning them to come
-on, as if for support. They occasionally retreated,
-then advanced again, with cautious<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_28"></a>[28]</span>
-steps, in the attitude of listening; generally
-keeping one hand down by their knees, in
-readiness to pull out a knife, which they had in
-their boots: in the other hand they held their
-whips, with the lash coiled up: their sledges
-remained at a little distance—the fourth man
-being apparently stationed to keep them in
-readiness for escape. Sometimes they drew
-back the covering they had on their heads, as
-if wishing to catch the most distant sounds:
-at which time I could discern their features,
-displaying extreme terror and amazement,
-while every limb appeared to tremble as they
-moved.” They were requested to cross a
-chasm, which separated them from the interpreter,
-by a plank; but “appeared still much
-alarmed, and requested that Sackhouse (the
-interpreter) only should come over. He accordingly
-passed to the opposite side, on which
-they earnestly beseeched him not to touch
-them, as, if he did, <i>they should certainly die</i>.
-After he had used many arguments to persuade
-them that he was flesh and blood, the
-native, who had shown most courage, ventured
-to touch his hand; then, pulling himself by the
-nose, set up a shout, in which he was joined by
-Sackhouse and the other three. The presents
-were then distributed, consisting of two or
-three articles of clothing, and a few strings of
-beads. After which, Sackhouse exchanged his
-knife for one of theirs.”</p>
-
-<p>Captain Ross and Lieutenant Parry then went
-on the ice, and, “by the time they reached it,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_29"></a>[29]</span>
-the whole were assembled: those who had
-originally been left at a distance, with their
-sledges, having driven up to join their comrades.
-The party now, therefore, consisted of
-eight natives, with all their sledges, and about
-fifty dogs, two sailors, Sackhouse, Lieutenant
-Parry, and myself—forming a group of no
-small singularity, not a little increased, also, by
-the peculiarity of the situation on a field of ice,
-far from the land. The noise and clamour may
-be easily conceived—the whole talking and
-shouting together, and the dogs howling, while
-the natives were flogging them with their long
-whips, to preserve order. Our arrival produced
-considerable alarm, causing them to retreat
-a few steps towards their sledges. On
-this, Sackhouse called to us to <i>pull our noses</i>,
-as he had discovered this to be the mode of
-friendly salutation among them. This ceremony
-was accordingly performed by each of
-us, the natives, during their retreat, making use
-of the same gesture; the nature of which we
-had not before understood.” Presents were
-then made, and, “on seeing their faces in the
-glasses, their astonishment appeared extreme,
-and they looked round in silence, for a moment,
-at each other, and at us. Immediately afterwards,
-they set up a general shout, succeeded
-by a loud laugh, expressive of extreme delight
-as well as surprise—in which we joined, partly
-from inability to avoid it, and willing also to
-show that we were pleased with our new acquaintances.”
-Confidence shortly after became<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_30"></a>[30]</span>
-established, and uncovering of heads was substituted
-for pulling of noses—the natives appearing
-to comprehend the nature of this ceremony
-more quickly than the seamen did the
-other, and probably not considering it a much
-more reasonable, although a more inconvenient,
-testimony of respect. They were then invited
-to the ship, to which one of them thought proper
-to <i>address a speech</i>, “<i>pausing between
-every question, and pulling his nose with the
-utmost solemnity</i>.” All the wonder to be expected
-was here excited; but the quantity of the
-wood and iron appeared to be the chief objects
-of surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Their knowledge of wood seemed to be
-limited to some heath of a dwarfish growth,
-with stems no thicker than the finger; and,
-accordingly, they knew not what to think of
-the timber they saw on board. Not being
-aware of its weight, two or three of them, successively,
-seized on the spare topmast, evidently
-with the view of carrying it off; and, as
-soon as they became familiar with the people
-around them, they showed that desire of possessing
-what they admired, which is so universal
-among savages. The only thing they
-looked upon with contempt, was a little terrier
-dog;—judging, no doubt, that it was too small
-for drawing a sledge. But they shrunk back,
-as if in terror, from a pig, whose pricked ears
-and ferocious aspect (being of the Shetland
-breed) presented a somewhat formidable appearance.
-This animal happening to grunt,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_31"></a>[31]</span>
-one of them was so terrified, that he became,
-from that moment, uneasy, and appeared impatient
-to get out of the ship. In carrying his
-purpose into effect, however, he did not lose
-his propensity to thieving, as he seized and
-endeavoured to carry off the smith’s anvil:
-finding that he could not remove it, he laid
-hold of the large hammer, threw it on the ice,
-and following it himself, deliberately set it on
-his sledge, and made off.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus04" style="max-width: 31.25em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus04.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_32"></a>[32]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="A_CHOCTAW_COUNCIL">A CHOCTAW COUNCIL.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The conduct of the government of the United
-States towards the Indian tribes, however politic
-it may seem, is certainly not based upon the
-Christian precept “to do unto others as we would
-that they should do unto us.” All our proceedings
-towards them have tended to their gradual
-extirpation from the land of their birth. Our
-wars, our treaties, our purchases of land, our
-system of intercourse with them, have all the
-same end. The following extract will show
-how well the Indians understand this.</p>
-
-<p>The reader will recollect, that it has become
-the settled policy of the United States to remove
-the several tribes of Indians to a country west
-of the Mississippi. In order to discuss and determine
-on this subject, in 1830 the Choctaw
-Indians held a council, in which it was resolved
-to sell off their lands to the United States, for
-one million of dollars, and to remove without
-the States, provided Government would give to
-each man a section of land, in fee simple, west
-of the Mississippi, and be at the expense of
-transporting the tribe to their place of destination,
-and of supporting them twelve months
-after their arrival. The council sat four days,
-and the following is a short sketch of their
-proceedings:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_33"></a>[33]</span></p>
-
-<p>The National Council was organized in the
-afternoon of the 15th of March. This was a
-juncture of peculiar interest. To see the rulers
-of a people, preparing to decide upon a course
-in which their posterity, to the latest generation,
-was deeply affected, could not but produce
-a deep and universal solemnity, and this interest
-was greatly increased by the bitter tears
-shed by some of the females present. The
-voice of sorrow is always eloquent; but, at
-such a season, never could the female voice
-speak more forcibly the sympathies of our nature.
-Who could avoid exclaiming, ‘O, my
-native country! Land of my fathers, I must
-leave thee!’</p>
-
-<p>The Chief presented them with a concise
-view of the difficulties of their situation, and
-the alternatives which were before them, and
-the sad necessity of immediately making their
-selection. It was at the intimation, that a removal
-was one of the alternatives, that the
-women wept.</p>
-
-<p>The Chief was followed by an old Captain
-in the nation, who, in brief simplicity, recounted
-his sufferings as a warrior and captain, in fighting
-for his White brothers, under General Jackson.
-He named several places where he had
-fought, and seen the Choctaws bleed and die.
-At that time, little did he think that his White
-brothers would ever make it necessary for him,
-in his old age, to leave his country, and the
-bones of his father. He would greatly prefer
-giving up his country, than submit to laws, the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_34"></a>[34]</span>
-nature of which he could not learn, and among
-a people, the wicked part of whom would
-harass and ruin them. He expressed a belief
-that the President would give them a good
-treaty; and, if he would do so, aged as he was,
-he would give his voice to go to their lands
-west of the Mississippi—and, moreover, expressed
-his belief, that the Great Father above,
-would go with them, and bless them in their
-new home.</p>
-
-<p>A Captain of the eastern part of the nation,
-next came forward. He appeared many years
-in advance of the first speaker. His white
-head, palsied limbs, and tremulous voice, made
-him an object of deepest interest. He was said
-to have been a warrior under General Wayne.
-He recounted some of the scenes of his past
-life, and the hopes which had borne him onward
-in his course;—he touched upon the disappointment
-that had clouded his setting sun;
-but, awakening, as if by supernatural power,
-he spoke boldly of his confidence in his <span class="smcap">Great
-Father</span> above, and expressed his full assurance,
-that <span class="smcap">He</span> would accompany his nation, and bless
-them. The discussion continued until a late
-hour of the fourth day, when the vote was
-taken, and found in favour of emigration.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus05" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus05.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Indians Shooting their Prisoners.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_35"></a>[35]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_YOUNG_INDIAN_CHIEF4">THE YOUNG INDIAN CHIEF.<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This young warrior, of fine size, figure and
-countenance, is now about 25 years old. At
-the age of 21 his heroic deeds had acquired for
-him in his nation the rank of “bravest of the
-brave.” The savage practice of torturing and
-burning to death their prisoners existed in this
-nation. An unfortunate female taken in war,
-of the Paduca nation, was destined to this horrible
-death. The fatal hour had arrived, the
-trembling victim, far from her home and her
-friends, was fastened to the stake; the whole
-tribe was assembled on the surrounding plain
-to witness the awful scene. Just when the fire
-was about to be kindled, and the spectators on
-the tiptoe of expectation, this young warrior,
-who sat composedly among the chiefs, having
-before prepared two fleet horses, with the necessary
-provisions, sprung from his seat, rushed
-through the crowd, loosed the victim, seized
-her in his arms, placed her on one of the
-horses, mounted the other himself, and made
-the utmost speed towards the nation and friends
-of the captive. The multitude, dumb and
-nerveless with amazement at the daring deed,
-made no effort to rescue their victim from her<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_36"></a>[36]</span>
-deliverer. They viewed it as an act of the
-Great Spirit, submitted to it without a murmur,
-and quietly returned to their village. The released
-captive was accompanied through the
-wilderness towards her home, till she was out
-of danger. He then gave her the horse on
-which she rode, with the necessary provisions
-for the remainder of the journey, and they
-parted. On his return to the village, such was
-the respect entertained for him, that no inquiry
-was made into his conduct; no censure was
-passed on it, and since the transaction, no human
-sacrifice has been offered in this or any
-other of the Pawnee tribes. Of what influence
-is one bold act in a good cause!</p>
-
-<p>On the publication of this anecdote at Washington,
-the young ladies of Miss White’s Seminary,
-in that city, presented that brave and humane
-Indian with a handsome silver medal, on
-which was engraven an appropriate inscription,
-accompanied by an address, of which the following
-is the close:—“Brother, accept this
-token of our esteem; always wear it for our
-sake; and when you have again the power to
-save a poor woman from death and torture,
-think of this, and of us, and fly to her rescue.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="RED_JACKET">RED JACKET.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It happened during the Revolutionary war,
-that a treaty was held with the Indians, at
-which La Fayette was present. The object
-was to unite the various tribes in amity with<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_37"></a>[37]</span>
-America. The majority of the Chiefs were
-friendly, but there was much opposition made
-to it, more especially by a young warrior, who
-declared that when an alliance was entered into
-with America, he should consider the sun of
-his country as set forever. In his travels
-through the Indian country, when lately in
-America, it happened at a large assemblage of
-Chiefs, that La Fayette referred to the treaty in
-question, and turning to Red Jacket, said, “pray
-tell me if you can, what has become of that
-daring youth, who so decidedly opposed all our
-propositions for peace and amity? Does he
-still live—and what is his condition?” “I, myself,
-am the man,” replied Red Jacket, “the
-decided enemy of the Americans, as long as the
-hope of opposing them with success remained
-but now their true and faithful ally until death.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_MODE_OF_GETTING_A_WIFE">INDIAN MODE OF GETTING A WIFE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>An aged Indian, who for many years had
-spent much of his time among the white people
-both in Pennsylvania and New Jersey, one day,
-about the year 1770, observed, that the Indians
-had not only a much easier way of getting a
-wife than the whites, but were also more certain
-of getting a <i>good</i> one; ‘for’ (said he in his
-broken English) ‘white man court—court—may
-be one whole year!—may be two before
-he marry!—well!—may be then get <i>very good</i>
-wife—but, may be <i>not</i>—may be <i>very</i> cross!<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_38"></a>[38]</span>
-Well now, suppose cross! Scold so soon at
-get awake in the morning! Scold all day!
-Scold until sleep!—all one; he must keep <i>him</i>!
-White people have law forbidding throwing
-away wife, be <i>he</i> ever so cross! must keep <i>him</i>
-always! Well? how does Indian do? Indian
-when he see industrious squaw, which he like,
-he go to <i>him</i>, place his two fore-fingers close
-aside each other, make two look like one—look
-squaw in the face—see <i>him</i> smile—which is
-all one <i>he</i> say, yes! so he take <i>him</i> home—no
-danger <i>he</i> be cross! no! no! Squaw know
-too well what Indian do if <i>he</i> be cross!—throw
-<i>him</i> away and take another! Squaw love to eat
-meat! no husband! no meat! Squaw do every
-thing to please husband; he do the same to
-please squaw! live happy!’</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus06" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus06.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_39"></a>[39]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="SHENANDOH_THE_ONEIDA_CHIEF">SHENANDOH, THE ONEIDA CHIEF.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Although the dignity of a chief is hereditary
-in his family, generally, the aristocracy of the
-Indians is not one of birth merely, nor one
-of wealth; but it is an aristocracy of merit. A
-chief is liable to be deposed for misconduct;
-and a brave warrior takes his place on account
-of the actions he has performed. Among those
-who have maintained an ascendancy among
-their countrymen by the force of individual
-merit, none is more remarkable than Shenandoh,
-the Oneida chief.</p>
-
-<p>This celebrated chief, whose life measured a
-century, died in 1816. He was well known in
-the wars which occurred while the United
-States were British colonies; and, also, in the
-war of the Revolution—as the undeviating
-friend of the Americans.</p>
-
-<p>In his youth he was very savage, and addicted
-to drunkenness; but, by the force of
-reflection, and the benevolent exhortations of a
-missionary to the tribe, he lived a reformed
-man for more than sixty years, and died in
-Christian hope.<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_40"></a>[40]</span></p>
-
-<p>Shenandoh’s person was tall and muscular
-but well made—his countenance was intelligent,
-and beamed with all the ingenuous dignity
-of an Indian Chief. In youth, he was
-brave and intrepid—in his riper years, one of
-the ablest counsellors among the North American
-tribes. He possessed a strong and vigorous
-mind; and, though terrible as the tornado
-in war—he was bland and mild as the zephyr
-in peace. With the cunning of the fox, the
-hungry perseverance of the wolf, and the
-agility of the mountain cat, he watched and
-repelled Canadian invasions. His vigilance
-once preserved from massacre the inhabitants
-of the then infant settlements of the German
-Flats. His influence brought his tribe to assist
-the Americans, in their war of the Revolution.
-His many friendly actions in their behalf,
-gained for him, among the Indian tribes, the
-appellation of the ‘<i>White Man’s Friend</i>.’</p>
-
-<p>To a friend who called to see him, in his wane
-(he was then blind), he thus expressed himself:</p>
-
-<p>“I am an aged hemlock—the winds of a
-hundred winters have whistled through my
-branches—I am dead at the top. The generation
-to which I belonged have run away and
-left me. Why <i>I</i> live, the Great Spirit alone
-knows! Pray to my Jesus that I may have
-patience to wait for my appointed time to die.”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">‘Indulge my native land; indulge the tear</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">That steals impassioned o’er the nation’s doom:</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To me each twig from Adam’s stock is near,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And sorrows fall upon an Indian’s tomb.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_41"></a>[41]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_GRATITUDE_AND_WIT">INDIAN GRATITUDE AND WIT.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Soon after Litchfield began to be settled by
-the English, an unknown Indian came into the
-inn at dusk, and requested the hostess to furnish
-him with food and drink; stating, that he
-had had no success in hunting, and could not pay
-till he had better fortune. The woman refused;
-calling him a lazy, drunken, good-for-nothing
-fellow. A man who sat by, noticed the Indian
-as he turned away from the inhospitable place,
-and perceiving that he was suffering very severely
-from want and weariness, he generously
-ordered the hostess to furnish him with a good
-supper, and call on him for payment. After
-the Indian had finished his meal, he thanked
-his benefactor again and again, and assured
-him he should never forget his kindness, and
-would, if it were ever in his power, faithfully
-recompense it. He observed, that he had one
-more favor to ask; if the woman was willing,
-he wished to tell a story. The hostess, whose
-good nature had been restored by money,
-readily consented. The Indian, addressing his
-benefactor, said, “I suppose you read the
-Bible?” The man assented. “Well, the Bible
-says, God make the world; and then he took
-him, and looked on him, and say ‘all very
-good.’ Then he made light; and took him,
-and looked on him, and say, ‘all very good.’
-Then he made land and water, sun and moon,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_42"></a>[42]</span>
-grass and trees; and he took him, and looked
-on him, and say, ‘all very good.’ Then he
-made beasts, and birds, and fishes; and he
-took him, and looked on him, and say, ‘all
-very good.’ Then he made man; and took
-him, and looked on him, and say, ‘all very
-good.’ Then he made woman; and took him,
-and looked at him, and——he no dare say
-one such word.”</p>
-
-<p>Many years after this, the Indian’s benefactor
-was taken prisoner by an Indian scout,
-and carried into Canada. He was saved from
-death by one of the tribe, who asked leave to
-adopt him in the place of a son, who had
-fallen in battle. Through the winter, he experienced
-the customary effects of savage hospitality.
-The following summer as he was at
-work in the forest alone, an unknown Indian
-came to him and appointed a meeting at a certain
-place, on a given day. The prisoner consented;
-but afterwards, fearing mischief might
-be intended, he neglected the engagement.
-The Indian again sought him, reproved him
-for his want of confidence in him, and assured
-him the meeting would be for his good. Encouraged
-by his apparent friendship, the man
-followed his directions. He found the Indian
-provided with muskets, ammunition, and knapsacks.
-The Indian ordered him to arm himself
-and follow him. Their course was towards
-the south, and day after day the Englishman
-followed, without being able to conjecture
-the motives of his guide. After a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_43"></a>[43]</span>
-tedious journey, he arrived at the top of an
-eminence, commanding a view of a country
-somewhat cultivated and populous. “Do you
-know that country?” said the Indian, with an
-arch smile. “Oh, yes! it is Litchfield,” replied
-the white man, as he cordially pressed his
-hand. “Many years ago, you give weary Indian
-supper there,” said he. “He promise to
-pay you, and he pay you now. Go home, and
-be happy.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="HEAD_WORK">HEAD WORK.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Colonel Dudley, governor of Massachusetts,
-in the beginning of the last century, had a
-number of workmen employed in building him
-a house on his plantation; and one day as he
-was looking at them, he observed a stout Indian,
-who, though the weather was very cold,
-was a naked as well as an idle spectator.
-‘Hark ye, friend,’ said the governor, ‘why don’t
-you work like these men, and get clothes to
-cover you?’ ‘And why you no work, governor?’
-replied the Indian. ‘I work,’ answered
-the governor, putting his finger on his
-forehead, ‘with my head, and therefore need
-not work with my hands.’ ‘Well,’ replied the
-Indian, ‘and if I would work, what have you
-for me to do?’ ‘Go kill me a calf,’ said the
-governor, ‘and I will give you a shilling.’ The
-Indian did so. The governor asked him why
-he did not skin and dress it. ‘Calf dead,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_44"></a>[44]</span>
-governor—give me my shilling; give me another,’
-said the Indian, ‘and I will skin and dress it.’
-This was complied with. The Indian then
-went to a tavern with his two shillings, and
-soon spending one for rum, returned to the
-governor, saying, ‘Your shilling bad, the man
-no take it.’ The governor believing him, gave
-him another; but soon returning in the same
-manner, with the second, the governor discerned
-his roguery; however, he exchanged
-that also, reserving his resentment for a proper
-opportunity. To be prepared for it, the governor
-wrote a letter directed to the keeper of
-Bridewell, in Boston, requesting him to take
-the bearer and give him a sound whipping.
-This he kept in his pocket, and in the course of
-a few days the Indian came again to stare at
-the workmen; the governor took no notice of
-him for some time, but at length taking the letter
-out of his pocket, and calling the Indian to
-him, said, ‘I will give you half a crown if you
-will carry this letter to Boston.’ The Indian
-closed with his proposal, and set out on his
-journey. He had not gone far, before he met
-with another Indian in the employ of the governor,
-to whom he gave the letter, and told
-him that the governor had sent him to meet
-him, and to bid him return with that letter to
-Boston, as soon as he possibly could.</p>
-
-<p>The poor fellow carried it with great diligence,
-and received a severe flogging for his
-pains; at the news of which, the governor was
-not a little astonished on his return. The other<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_45"></a>[45]</span>
-Indian came no more; but, after the lapse of
-some months, at a meeting with some of his
-nation, the governor saw him there among the
-rest, and asked him how he durst serve him
-such a trick? The Indian looking him full in
-the face, and putting his forefinger to his forehead,
-replied, ‘<i>Head work! governor, head
-work!</i>’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="MAGNANIMITY_AND_DISINTERESTED_GENEROSITY">MAGNANIMITY AND DISINTERESTED GENEROSITY:<br>
-<span class="smaller">WITH STRIKING TRAITS IN THE SAVAGE CHARACTER.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The Pawnee Loups (Wolf Pawnees) a tribe
-of Missouri savages, lately exhibited the anomaly
-among the American aborigines of a people
-addicted to the superstitious rite of offering
-human victims, in propitiation of ‘<i>Venus, the
-Great Star</i>.’ The inhuman ceremony was
-annually performed at the period immediately
-preceding their horticultural operations, in order
-to insure a bountiful return from the earth:—the
-neglect of which duty, it was believed,
-would occasion a total failure of crops. To obviate,
-therefore, a national calamity so formidable,
-any person was at liberty to offer up a
-prisoner, of either sex, whom the fortune of
-war had placed in his power.</p>
-
-<p>The devoted individual was clad in the gayest
-attire, pampered with a profusion of the
-choicest food, and constantly attended by the
-conjurers, alias priests, who anticipated all his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_46"></a>[46]</span>
-wants—cautiously concealed from him the real
-object of their sedulous attentions—and endeavoured
-to preserve his mind in a state of cheerful
-composure:—with the view of promoting
-obesity, and thus rendering the sacrifice more
-acceptable to their Ceres.</p>
-
-<p>When the victim was sufficiently fattened, a
-day was appointed for the sacrifice, that all
-might attend the celebration. In the presence
-of the assembled multitude, he was bound to a
-cross; a solemn dance was performed; and,
-after certain ceremonies, the warrior who had
-captured him, cleft his head with a tomahawk;
-and, at the same moment, numerous arrows
-were discharged at the body.</p>
-
-<p>It appears, this barbarous rite has lately been
-abolished. <i>Latelesha</i>, or Knife Chief, principal
-of the nation, having long regarded this sacrifice
-as cruel and unnecessary, had vainly endeavoured
-to wean his countrymen from the
-observance of it. At length an Iotan woman,
-brought captive into the village, was doomed to
-the Great Star. Having undergone the necessary
-treatment, she was bound to the cross. At
-this critical juncture, <i>Petalesharoo</i>, son of <i>Latelesha</i>,
-stepped forward, and declared, that it
-was his father’s wish to abolish a custom so inhuman;
-that, for his part, he was determined
-to release the victim, at the risk of his life. He
-now cut the cords that bound her, carried her
-swiftly through the crowd, and placed her on a
-horse; mounted another himself, and conveyed
-her beyond the reach of pursuit.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_47"></a>[47]</span></p>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding the success of this enterprise,
-it was reserved for another display of the
-firmness of this young warrior, to abolish the
-sanguinary sacrifice—we hope for ever. The
-succeeding spring, a Spanish boy was captured,
-and confided, by the warrior who took him, to
-the priests, to undergo the usual preparation for
-sacrifice. The Knife Chief consulted with his
-son how to avoid the repetition of the horrible
-rite. “<i>I</i> will rescue the boy,” said <i>Petalesharoo</i>,
-“as a warrior ought—by force.” But the
-father, unwilling that his son should again expose
-himself to imminent danger, devised other
-means for rescuing the devoted victim:—that
-is, by ransom. For this purpose he repaired to
-a Mr. Pappon, then trading in the village, who
-generously contributed a quantity of merchandize.
-Other contributions were added by
-the Knife Chief himself, and by Petalesharoo,
-and other Indians. The whole was laid up in
-a heap, in the Chieftain’s lodge, and the warrior
-was summoned to attend.</p>
-
-<p>Latelesha, armed with his war-club, commanded
-the warrior to accept of the merchandize,
-as a ransom for the boy, or prepare
-for instant death. The warrior refused to comply:
-the chief flourished his club in the air.
-“Strike!” said Petalesharoo, “I will meet the
-vengeance of his friends.” But the more politic
-Chief preferred adding to the mass of merchandize
-a few more articles, in order to give
-the warrior another opportunity of complying,
-without breaking his word. The expedient<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_48"></a>[48]</span>
-succeeded. The goods were reluctantly accepted;
-the boy was liberated, and afterwards
-conducted to St. Louis by the traders. The
-merchandize was sacrificed in his place: the
-cloth was cut in shreds, and suspended on poles,
-and many of the valuables were consumed by
-fire, to appease and propitiate the Indian Ceres.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus07" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus07.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_49"></a>[49]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="TECUMSEH_WHEN_A_YOUTH">TECUMSEH, WHEN A YOUTH.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Tecumseh was one of the most remarkable
-men that has ever figured in our aboriginal
-history. He gained an ascendancy over the
-minds of his countrymen entirely by the commanding
-force of his character, and the persuasive
-power of his eloquence. These instruments
-enabled him to produce a degree of union and
-combination among the North-western tribes, by
-no means less remarkable than the confederacies
-which signalized the times of king Philip and of
-Pontiac. His brother, the prophet, was a pusillanimous
-driveller, compared with Tecumseh;
-and exerted all his influence by addressing the
-superstitious fears of his countrymen; whereas
-the great warrior addressed himself to the
-higher principles of their nature, and made successful
-appeals to their reason, and even to their
-humanity. Of the last we have a signal example
-in his arresting the massacre of the American
-prisoners at Fort Meigs.</p>
-
-<p>It has somewhere been observed, that “every
-circumstance relating to this extraordinary man
-will be read with interest.” We believe it, and
-therefore proceed with the following account,
-which appeared in a western periodical of 1826.</p>
-
-<p>“About thirty years ago (as the writer received
-the narrative from Captain Thomas
-Bryan, of Kentucky) the said Bryan was employed
-as a surveyor of the Virginia Military
-Lands, northwest of the Ohio river. While
-engaged in completing a chain of surveys, extending<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_50"></a>[50]</span>
-from the head waters of Brush Creek
-to those of Paint Creek (now the central part
-of the State of Ohio), his provisions became
-scant, and at length entirely exhausted. He
-directed his hunter—who had been unsuccessful
-on a recent excursion—to make another
-attempt to procure subsistence, and to meet
-him at a particular point then designated;
-where, after closing the labour of the day, he
-should encamp with his chain-men and marker.</p>
-
-<p>“Towards evening, the men became exhausted
-with hunger. They were in the heart
-of a solitary wilderness, and every circumstance
-was calculated to produce the greatest
-dejection of spirit. After making great exertions
-to reach the point designated, where they
-were to encamp upon their arrival, they met
-their hunter, who had been again unsuccessful.
-Feeling for himself and his comrades every
-emotion of a noble heart, he was alarmed for
-their situation. The hunter declared he had
-used every exertion in pursuit of game, but all
-his attempts were of no avail; that the whole
-forest appeared to him to be entirely destitute
-both of birds and beasts! Under these awful
-apprehensions of starvation, he knew that it
-would be a vain attempt to reach the settlement;—he
-trembled, and shed tears. Captain
-Bryan, at this critical juncture, felt his spirits
-roused at the reflection of their desperate situation;
-he thrust his jacob-staff in the earth, and
-ordered his men to prepare a camp, and make
-a good fire; he seizes the gun and ammunition<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_51"></a>[51]</span>
-of the unsuccessful hunter, and darted forth in
-pursuit of game. The weather had become
-exceedingly cold, for it was in the depth of
-winter—every rivulet was bound in ice. He
-had not proceeded far before he was gratified
-with the cheering sight of three elks, making
-towards him. He succeeded in killing two,
-and, shortly after, a bear. He now called for
-his men, and ordered his game to be carried to
-the camp. No one, but those similarly situated,
-can conceive the feelings excited on such an
-occasion.</p>
-
-<p>“But, perilous as the situation of the surveyor
-and his party might appear, there were others
-who were threatened with the like appalling
-distress. Three or four Indians, who had been
-out on a hunting excursion, hearing the report
-of Captain Bryan’s gun, made immediately
-in that direction, and had arrived at the camp
-before Bryan returned. On his appearance
-there, they informed him, as well as they could
-(some of them speaking a little English), of
-their wretched situation. They told him that,
-for three days, their whole party had subsisted
-on one skunk, and that was exhausted. They
-described the absence of the game, in the language
-of the hunter, as if “the whole forest
-was entirely destitute both of <i>birds</i> and <i>beasts</i>.”
-They were informed by Captain Bryan, that he
-had plenty for himself, his men, and themselves;
-desired them to fix their camp, make a
-good fire, and assist his men in flaying the bear
-and elks, which were now brought into camp—and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_52"></a>[52]</span>
-then to cut, carve, and cook for themselves.
-Their very looks were expressive of the joy
-they now felt for a deliverance so unexpected—nor
-did they spare the provisions. Their hunger
-was such, that, as soon as one round was
-served, another—another—and another, in succession—was
-greedily devoured.</p>
-
-<p>“A fine-looking, tall, dignified savage, then
-approached the surveyor’s camp—rather young
-in appearance than otherwise. He very gracefully
-stepped up to Captain Bryan (who was
-now reposing in his camp, on account of rheumatism,
-occasioned by his recent exposure),
-and informed him, that the old man in his
-camp was a Chief; that he felt under great
-obligations to the Great and Good Spirit for so
-signal an interposition in their favour; that he
-was about to make a prayer, and address the
-Good Spirit, and thank him: that it was the
-custom, on such occasions, for the Indians to
-stand up in their camp; and that his Chief requested
-the captain and his men, to conform,
-in like manner, by standing up in <i>their</i> camp.
-The captain replied, that his men would all
-conform, and order should be preserved; but,
-as for himself, his affliction would compel him
-to keep his seat—but this must not be construed
-into disrespect. The captain remarked
-to me, that he was not himself a religious character,
-though a man of feeling.</p>
-
-<p>“The old Chief raised himself upon his feet,
-as did those around him; and, lifting up his
-hands, commenced his prayer and thanksgiving<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_53"></a>[53]</span>
-with an audible voice. And such an address
-to Deity, on such an occasion—as far as I could
-understand him—I never before heard flow
-from mortal lips! The tone—the modulation
-of his voice—the gestures—all corresponded to
-make a very deep impression upon us. In the
-course of his thanksgiving—as I gathered from
-the Indians—he recapitulated the doleful situation
-in which they were so recently placed—the
-awful horrors of starvation, with which
-they were threatened—the vain attempts they
-had made to procure food, until He, the Great
-and Good Spirit, had sent that good White
-man, and had crowned his exertions with success;
-and so directed him and them to meet,
-and to find plenty.” Who can fully describe
-the abundant overflowings of a grateful heart?
-He continued in this vehement strain for about
-half an hour, “when,” remarked Captain B.,
-“my own men reflecting on their own recent
-situation, retrospecting what had taken place,
-and beholding the pious gratitude of a ‘Child
-of the Forest,’ feeling the same sensations, they
-were melted into tenderness—if not into tears.”</p>
-
-<p>The person who so gracefully addressed
-Captain Bryan, in behalf of his Chief, was
-<span class="smcap">Tecumseh</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_54"></a>[54]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_LOGIC6">INDIAN LOGIC.<a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A few years since, whilst the mistaken zeal
-of many good men, led them to think that their
-red brethren of the forest might be Christianized
-before they were civilized,—a missionary
-was sent out among them to convert them to
-the Christian faith. The missionary was unfortunately
-one of those preachers who delight
-in speculative and abstruse doctrines, and who
-teach the inefficacy of all human exertions in
-obtaining salvation. He called the Indians together
-to hear what he called the Gospel. The
-Sachem or Chief of the tribe to which he was
-sent, came with the rest. The missionary in
-the course of his sermon, (which was upon the
-very simple and intelligible doctrine of <i>election</i>)
-undertook to prove, that some were made to be
-saved, and some to be damned, without any
-regard to their good or bad conduct. As an
-illustration of his doctrine, he cited the case of
-Jacob and Esau, and attempted to show that
-God loved the one and hated the other before
-either of them was born. The Sachem heard
-him attentively, and after meeting invited him
-to his wigwam. After some conversation, the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_55"></a>[55]</span>
-Sachem thus addressed the Missionary. “Sir,
-me tell you a story: My wife have two boys,
-twins; both of them as pretty as the two you
-tell me about to-day. One of them she love
-and feed him; the other she let lie on the
-ground crying. I tell her take him up, or he
-die. She no mind me. Pretty soon he die.
-Now what shall I do to her?”—Why, said the
-Missionary, she ought to be hung!—“Well,”
-said the Sachem, “then you go home and hang
-your God, for you say he do just so. You no
-preach any more here, unless you preach more
-good than this.” The Missionary finding himself
-amongst a people too enlightened to give
-credence to his narrow and heart-revolting principles,
-thought it expedient to seek a new field
-of labor.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_INDIAN_AND_THE_DUTCH_CLERGYMAN">THE INDIAN AND THE DUTCH CLERGYMAN.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A Dutch clergyman in the then province of
-New York, 1745, asked an Indian, whom he
-had baptized, whether he had been in Shekomeko,
-and had heard the Moravian missionary
-preach, and how he liked him? The Indian
-answered, ‘That he had been there, and had
-attended to the missionary’s words, and liked
-to hear them; that he would rather hear the
-missionary than him, for when the former
-spoke, it was as though his words laid hold of
-his heart, and a voice within said, ‘that is
-truth;’ but that <i>he</i> was always playing about<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_56"></a>[56]</span>
-the truth, and never came to the point. That
-he had no love for their souls, for when he had
-once baptized them, he let them run wild, never
-troubling himself any further about them. That
-he acted much worse than one who planted
-Indian corn; for, added he, ‘the planter sometimes
-goes to see whether his corn grows or not.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_WHO_IS_YOUR_CAPTAIN">“INDIAN, WHO IS YOUR CAPTAIN?”</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>An English captain, in the year 1759, who
-was beating up for recruits in the neighbourhood
-of Bethlehem, met one day a Moravian
-Indian, and asked him whether ‘he had a mind
-to be a soldier.’ ‘No,’ answered he, ‘I am
-already engaged.’ ‘Who is your captain?’
-asked the officer. ‘I have a very brave and
-excellent captain,’ replied the Indian, ‘his name
-is Jesus Christ; Him will I serve as long as I
-live: my life is at his disposal;’ upon which
-the British officer suffered him to pass unmolested.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_BON_MOT">INDIAN BON MOT.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One of the Moravian Indians who had been
-baptized by the name of Jonathan, meeting
-some white people, who had entered into so
-violent a dispute about baptism and the holy
-communion, that they at last proceeded to
-blows—‘These people,’ said he, ‘know nothing
-of our Saviour; for they speak of Him as we
-do of a strange country.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_57"></a>[57]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_FIDELITY">INDIAN FIDELITY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Some time after the commencement of the
-Revolutionary war, when the northern Indians
-were beginning to make inroads on the people
-living on the east side of the Ohio river, General
-O’Hara having come out to the upper Moravian
-town, on the Muskingum, on business
-and there taken lodging with a respectable and
-decent family of Indians in the village—I had
-one evening scarcely laid down to sleep when
-I was suddenly roused from my bed by an Indian
-runner, (or messenger) who in the night
-had been sent to me, 9 miles, with the following
-verbal message: “My friend, see that our friend
-O’Hara, now at your town, be immediately
-taken off to the settlement of white people,
-avoiding all paths leading to that river. Fail
-not in taking my advice, for there is no time to
-lose—and hear my son further on the subject.”</p>
-
-<p>The fact was, that eleven warriors from Sandusky,
-were far advanced on their way to take
-or murder O’Hara; who at break of day would
-be at this place for the purpose. I immediately
-sent for this gentleman, and told him that I
-would furnish him with a conductor, on whom
-he might depend, and having sent for Anthony,
-(otherwise called Luke Holland) informed him
-of the circumstance and requested his services;
-he (the Indian) wished first to know, whether
-my friend placed <i>confidence</i> in him, and trusted
-to his fidelity; which question being answered<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_58"></a>[58]</span>
-by O’Hara himself, and to his full satisfaction;
-he replied,’well, our lives cannot be separated!
-we must stand or fall together! but take courage,
-for no enemy shall discover us!’</p>
-
-<p>The Indian then took Mr. O’Hara through
-the woods, and arriving within a short distance
-of the Ohio river, pointed out to him a hiding
-place, until he, by strolling up and down the
-river, should discover white people on the opposite
-shore; when finally observing a house
-where two white men were cleaning out a
-canoe for use, he hurried back to bring on his
-friend, who, when near the spot, advised his
-Indian conductor to hide himself, knowing those
-people to be bad men, he feared they might kill
-him, for his services. The Indian finally seeing
-his friend safe across the river, returned and
-made report thereof.</p>
-
-<p>The young Indian, who had been the bearer
-of the message from his father to me, had immediately
-returned on seeing O’Hara off, in
-order to play a further deception on the war
-party, for the purpose of preventing them even
-from going to our town, fearing, that if there,
-and not finding their object, they might probably
-hunt for his track, and finding this, pursue
-him. He indeed effected his purpose so
-completely, that while they were looking for
-him in one direction, his conductor was taking
-him off in another.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus08" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus08.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Indian Friendship.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The father of the young lad, who was the
-principal cause that O’Hara’s life had been
-saved, had long been admired by all who knew<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_59"></a>[59]</span>
-him for his <i>philanthropy</i>; on account of which
-the traders had given him the name of “<i>the
-gentleman</i>.” Otherwise this Indian was not
-in connection with the Christian Indian Society,
-though a friend to them. He lived with his
-family retired and in a decent manner.</p>
-
-<p>While I feel a delight in offering to the relatives
-and friends of the deceased, as also to the
-public, this <i>true</i> and <i>faithful</i> picture of Indian
-<i>fidelity</i>—I regret that, on necessarily having
-had to recur to the names ‘Anthony’ and ‘Luke
-Holland,’ I am drawn from scenes of pleasure,
-to crimes of the <i>blackest hue</i>. The very Indian
-just named, who at that time joyfully reported
-to me his having conducted his friend out of
-danger, to a place of safety, some years after
-approached me with the doleful news that
-every one of his children, (all minors) together
-with his hoary headed parents, <i>had been murdered
-by the white people</i>, at Gradenhutten, on
-the Muskingum.</p>
-
-<p class="right">JOHN HECKELWELDER.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_HOSPITALITY">INDIAN HOSPITALITY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>I can give, says Colden, in his history of the
-five Indian Nations, two strong instances of the
-hospitality of the Mohawks, which fell under
-my own observation; and which will show,
-that they have the very same notion of hospitality
-which we find in the ancient poets.
-When I was last in the Mohawk’s country,
-the sachems told me that they had an Englishman<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_60"></a>[60]</span>
-among their people, a servant who had
-run away from his master in New York. I
-immediately told them they must deliver him
-up. ‘No,’ they answered, ‘we never serve
-any man so, who puts himself under our protection.’
-On this I insisted on the injury they
-did thereby to his master: they allowed it
-might be an injury, and replied, ‘Though we
-will never deliver him up, we are willing to
-pay the value of the servant to the master.’
-Another man made his escape from the jail in
-Albany, where he was in prison on an execution
-of debt: the Mohawks received him, and,
-as they protected him against the sheriff and
-officers they not only paid the debt for him,
-but gave him land over and above, sufficient
-for a good farm, whereon he lived when I was
-last there.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="KINDNESS_OF_AN_INDIAN_HUSBAND">KINDNESS OF AN INDIAN HUSBAND.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>There was a famine in the land, and a sick
-Indian woman expressed a great desire for a
-mess of Indian corn. Her husband having
-heard that a trader at Lower Sandusky had a
-little, set off on horseback for that place, one
-hundred miles distant, and returned with as
-much corn as filled the crown of his hat, for
-which he gave his horse in exchange, and
-came home on foot, bringing his saddle back
-with him.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_61"></a>[61]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_RECORDS">INDIAN RECORDS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>At certain seasons the Indians meet to study
-the meaning, and renew their ideas of their
-strings and belts of wampum. On such occasions,
-they sit down around the place in which
-they are deposited, and taking out a string or
-belt, one after another, hand them to every
-person present; and in order that they may all
-comprehend its meaning, repeat the words pronounced
-on the delivery, in their whole connexion.
-By these means they are enabled to
-remember the promises reciprocally made; and,
-as they admit young boys who are related to
-the chiefs, they become early acquainted with
-all their national concerns; and thus the contents
-of their wampum documents are transmitted
-to their posterity. The following instance
-may serve to show how well this mode
-of communication answers the purpose of refreshing
-the memory:—A gentleman in Philadelphia,
-once gave an Indian a string of wampum,
-saying, ‘I am your friend, and will serve
-you to the utmost of my power.’ Forty years
-after, the Indian returned the string, adding,
-‘Brother, you gave me this string of wampum,
-saying, I am your friend, and will serve you to
-the utmost of my power.’ ‘I am now aged,
-infirm, and poor; do now as you promised.’
-The gentleman honourably redeemed his promise,
-and generously assisted the old Indian.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_62"></a>[62]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="BURNING_OF_BROOKFIELD">BURNING OF BROOKFIELD.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It has been remarked, that the history of every
-incursion of the Indians into the territory of the
-whites may be written in the words <i>surprise</i>,
-<i>massacre</i>, <i>plunder</i> and <i>retreat</i>. They fall upon
-the defenceless village in the dead of night, “as
-falls the plague on men,” or as the lightning
-falls on the forest. No vigilance seems to have
-been sufficient effectually to guard against these
-attacks, and no prudence or foresight could
-avert them. The Indians made their approaches
-to the isolated villages by creeping cautiously
-through the surrounding woods in the dead of
-night. The outposts were seized, and the sentinels
-silently tomahawked, ere the war-whoop
-roused the sleeping families from their beds.</p>
-
-<p>During the early settlements of New England,
-the inhabitants suffered much from the
-incursions of the Indians. The most celebrated
-war, perhaps, which ever took place with the
-natives, however, was King Philip’s war.
-During its continuance, the town of Brookfield,
-Massachusetts, was attacked. The inhabitants
-collected in one house which was immediately
-besieged by the savages, who set fire instantly
-to every other building in the town. For two
-days and nights the Indians shot upon the people
-in the house incessantly, but were met with
-a most determined defence on the part of the
-besieged. They then attempted to fire the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_63"></a>[63]</span>
-house by flaming torches at the ends of long
-poles; but the garrison continued to defend
-themselves by firing from the windows, and
-throwing water upon the flames, as they fortunately
-had a pump within the house. These
-attempts failing, the Indians then prepared a cart
-loaded with flax, hemp, and other combustible
-matters, and under cover of a barricade of boards,
-thrust the burning mass, by means of long timbers,
-against the house. In this movement one
-of the wheels came off, which turned the machine
-aside, and exposed the Indians to the fire
-of the garrison; a shower of rain coming on at
-the same time extinguished the flames. Shortly
-afterwards a reinforcement of forty men arrived
-from Boston, forced their way through the
-enemy, and joined the garrison. The Indians
-then abandoned the siege and retired, having
-suffered a heavy loss.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_HEROIC_COLLAPISSA">THE HEROIC COLLAPISSA.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In the heart of the savage, there are some
-noble and redeeming qualities; he can be
-faithful, even unto death, to the friend or the
-stranger who has dwelt beneath his roof, or
-sat under the shadow of the same tree. He
-can be generous also; can endure all tortures,
-rather than show weakness or fear.</p>
-
-<p>“An instance of this occurred,” says Bossu,
-“when the French were in possession of New
-Orleans: a Chactaw, speaking very ill of them,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_64"></a>[64]</span>
-said the Collapissas were their slaves; one of
-the latter, vexed at such words, killed him with
-his gun. The nation of Chactaws, the greatest
-and most numerous on the continent, armed
-immediately, and sent deputies to New Orleans
-to ask for the head of the murderer, who had
-put himself under the protection of the French.
-They offered presents to make up the quarrel,
-but the cruel people would not accept any!
-they even threatened to destroy the village of
-the Collapissas. To prevent the effusion of
-blood, the unhappy Indian was delivered up to
-them: the Sieur Ferrand was charged with the
-commission. The Indian was called Tichou;
-he stood upright in the midst of his own people
-and of his enemies, and said, “I am a true man,
-that is, I do not fear death; but I pity the fate
-of a wife and four children, whom I leave behind
-me very young; and of my father and
-mother, who are old, and for whom I got subsistence
-by hunting.” (He was the best hunter
-in the nation.)</p>
-
-<p>He had hardly spoken the last word of this
-short speech, when his father, penetrated with
-his son’s love, rose amidst the people, and
-spoke as follows:—</p>
-
-<p>“It is through courage that my son dies;
-but, being young and full of vigour, he is more
-fit than myself to provide for his mother, wife,
-and four little children: it is therefore necessary
-he should stay on earth to take care of them.
-As to myself, I am near the end of my career;
-I am no longer fit for anything: I cannot go<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_65"></a>[65]</span>
-like the roebuck, whose course is like the
-winds, unseen; I cannot sleep like the hare,
-with my ears never shut; but I have lived as
-a man, and will die as such, therefore I go to
-take his place.”</p>
-
-<p>At these words, his wife, his son, his daughter-in-law,
-and their little children, shed tears
-round the brave old man: he embraced them
-for the last time. The relations of the dead
-Chactaw accepted the offer; after that, he laid
-himself on the trunk of a tree, and his head
-was cut off with one stroke of a hatchet.
-Every thing was made up by this death; but
-the young man was obliged to give them his
-father’s head: in taking it up, he said to it,
-“Pardon me thy death, and remember me in
-the country of spirits.”</p>
-
-<p>All the French who assisted at this event
-were moved even to tears, and admired this
-noble old man. A people among whom such
-things could be done, hardly deserved the
-sweeping censures of Mather and other good
-men, who painted them rather as fiends in
-human shape. Courage is, of course, the virtue
-held in most honour: those who run away
-or desert in an action are not punished, they
-are considered as the disgrace of human nature:
-the ugliest girls will not accept of them
-for husbands: they are obliged to let their hair
-grow, and to wear an alcoman, or apron, like
-the women. “I saw one of them,” says Bossu,
-who dwelt a long time among the Indians
-“who, being ashamed of his figure, went by<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_66"></a>[66]</span>
-himself to fight the Chicachas, for his misery
-was more than he could bear: for three or four
-days he went on creeping like a snake, and
-hiding himself in the great grass, without eating
-or drinking; so he came to their country,
-and watched a long time to do some exploit;
-often lying down in the rushes, when his enemies
-came near, and putting out his head
-above the water from time to time, to take
-breath. At last he drew near a village in the
-night, cried the cry of death, killed one of the
-people, and then fled with the speed of an
-arrow. He was out three months upon this
-expedition: when he drew nigh to his own
-village, weary, and bearing the head of his
-enemy, they came down the hill to meet him.
-The women were loud in his praises—the
-warriors gathered round him; and then they
-gave him a wife.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="JOHN_ELIOTS_FIRST_MISSION_TO_THE_INDIANS">JOHN ELIOT’S FIRST MISSION TO THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>On the 28th of October, 1646, Eliot set out
-from his home, in Roxbury, Massachusetts, in
-company with three friends, to the nearest Indian
-settlement: he had previously sent to give
-this tribe notice of his coming, and a very large
-number was collected from all quarters. If the
-savages expected the coming of their guest, of
-whose name they had often heard, to be like
-that of a warrior or sachem, they were greatly
-deceived. They saw Eliot on foot, drawing<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_67"></a>[67]</span>
-near, with his companions; his translation of
-the scriptures, like a calumet of peace and love,
-in his hand. He was met by their chief, Waubon
-who conducted him to a large wigwam.
-After a short rest, Eliot went into the open air
-and standing on a grassy mound, while the people
-formed around him in all the stillness of
-strong surprise and curiosity, he prayed in the
-English tongue, as if he could not address heaven
-in a language both strange and new. And
-then he preached for an hour in their own
-tongue, and gave a clear and simple account of
-the religion of Christ, of his character and life,
-of the blessed state of those who believed in
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Of what avail would it have been to set before
-this listening people the terrors of the
-Almighty, and the doom of the guilty? This
-wise man knew, by long experience as a minister,
-that the heart loves better to be persuaded
-than terrified—to be melted than alarmed. The
-whole career of the Indian’s life tended to
-freeze up the finer and softer feelings, and make
-the more dark and painful passions familiar to
-him. He resolved to strike a new chord, and
-when he saw the tear stream down their stern
-faces, and the haughty head sink low on the
-breast, as he painted the ineffable love of
-Christ, he said it was “a glorious and affecting
-spectacle to see a company of perishing forlorn
-outcasts, so drinking in the word of salvation.”
-The impressions this discourse produced, were
-of a very favourable nature: as far as the chief,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_68"></a>[68]</span>
-Waubon, was concerned, they were never
-effaced. Afterwards the guest passed several
-hours conversing with the Indians, and answering
-their questions. When night came, he returned
-to the tent with the chief, and the people
-entered their wigwams, or lay down around,
-and slept on the grass. What were Eliot’s feelings
-on this night? At last, the longing of
-years was accomplished; the fruit of his
-prayers was given to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Could the walls of his loved study speak,”
-says his friend, “they would tell of the entreaties
-poured forth before the Lord, of the days
-and nights set apart with fasting—that thus,
-thus it might be.” A few of the chiefs’ friends
-alone remained, after the people were retired.
-One of the Christians perceived an Indian, who
-was hanging down his head, weeping; the
-former went to him, and spoke encouraging
-words, after which he turned his face to the
-wall, and wept yet more abundantly: soon
-after, he rose and went out. “When they told
-me of his tears,” said Eliot, “we resolved to go
-forth, and follow him into the wood, and speak
-to him. The proud Indian’s spirit was quite
-broken: at last we parted, greatly rejoicing for
-such sorrowing.”</p>
-
-<p>He now resolved to continue his labours;
-but, on the 26th of November, when he met
-the assembly of the Indians for the third time,
-he found that, though many of them had constructed
-wigwams at the place of meeting, for
-the more readily attending his ministry, his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_69"></a>[69]</span>
-audience was not so numerous as on the former
-occasions. The Powahs (or soothsayers) had
-strictly charged the people not to listen to the
-instructions of the English, and threatened them
-with death in case of disobedience. Having
-warned his auditors against the impositions of
-these men, he proceeded to discourse as formerly,
-and was heard with the greatest attention.
-“It is wonderful,” observed one of his
-friends, “to see what a little light will effect,
-even upon hearts and spirits most incapable.”</p>
-
-<p>On the night after this third meeting, many
-were gathered in the tent, looking earnestly at
-Eliot, with the solemn gravity and stillness
-which these savages affected; when the chief,
-Waubon, suddenly rose, and began to instruct
-all the company out of the things he had heard
-that day from Eliot, with the wild and impressive
-eloquence of the desert. And waking
-often that night, he many times was heard
-speaking to some or other of his people, of the
-words of truth and mercy that he had heard.</p>
-
-<p>Two or three days after these impressions
-had been made, Eliot saw that they were likely
-to be attended with permanent consequences.
-Wampas, an intelligent Indian, came with two
-of his companions to the English, and desired
-to be admitted into their families. He brought
-his son, and several other children with him,
-and begged that they might be educated in the
-Christian faith: the example quickly spread
-and all the Indians who were present at the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_70"></a>[70]</span>
-fourth meeting, on the 9th of December, offered
-their children to be instructed.</p>
-
-<p>The missionary was himself surprised at the
-success of his first efforts, as well as at his
-facility of preaching and conversing in the Indian
-tongue; it was the reward of his long and
-patient application. “To think of raising,”
-says Mather, “these hideous creatures unto the
-elevations of our holy religion, must argue a
-more than common or little soul in the undertaker:
-could he see any thing angelical to encourage
-his labours?—all was diabolical among
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>Eliot saw that they must be civilized ere they
-could be christianized; that he must make men
-of them, ere he could hope to see them saints.
-It is, no doubt, far easier and more flattering to
-the soul of the agent, to see men weep and
-tremble beneath his word, than to teach them
-to build, to plant, to rear the walls and the roof-tree,
-and sit at their own hearth-side: this is
-slow and painful work for a man of lofty mind
-and glowing enthusiasm. But in his own
-words, “he abhorred that he should sit still,
-and let that work alone;” and lost no time in
-addressing himself to the General Court of the
-colony, in behalf of those who showed a willingness
-to be placed under his care. His application
-was successful; and the Indians, having
-received a grant of land on which they might
-build a town, and enjoy the Christian instruction
-which they desired, met together, and gave<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_71"></a>[71]</span>
-their assent to several laws which he had
-framed, to enforce industry and decency—to
-secure personal and domestic comfort.</p>
-
-<p>The ground of the town having been marked
-out, Eliot advised the Indians to surround it
-with ditches and a stone wall; gave them instruments
-to aid these objects, and such rewards,
-in money, as induced them to work
-hard. It was a strange and novel thing to see
-these men of the wilderness, to whom a few
-months previous all restraint was slavery, and
-their lakes and forests dearer than the palaces
-of kings, submit cheerfully to this drudgery of
-bricks and mortar—chief as well as serf; the
-very hands that were lately red with slaughter,
-scooping the earth at the bidding of Eliot, from
-morn to night. He soon had the pleasure of
-seeing Nonanetum completed.</p>
-
-<p>The progress of civilization which followed,
-was remarkable for its extent and rapidity: the
-women were taught to spin, and they soon
-found something to send to the nearest markets
-all the year round: in winter they sold staves,
-baskets, and poultry; in spring and summer
-fish, grapes, strawberries, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>In the mean while, he instructed the men in
-husbandry, and the more simple mechanical
-arts: in hay-time and harvest, he went forth
-into the fields with them. All this was not done
-in a day, for they were neither so industrious
-nor so capable of hard labour as those who had
-been accustomed to it from early life.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_72"></a>[72]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="AN_INDIAN_FUNERAL_AT_NONANETUM">AN INDIAN FUNERAL AT NONANETUM.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>At a funeral, on the 7th of October, 1647, a
-change in the usages and prejudices of the Indians
-was evinced in a striking manner. The
-deceased was a man of some consequence.
-Their custom had been to mourn much for the
-dead, and to appear overcome with grief, especially
-when the earth shrouded them from their
-sight. The departed was borne to the grave
-on a light bier, and interred in a sitting posture;
-in his hand was placed a calumet and some
-tobacco, that he might present the ensigns of
-peace to the people of another world. If the
-corpse was that of a warrior, his quiver full of
-arrows, a bow, and a hatchet, were placed by
-his side, and also a little mirror, that he might
-see how his face looked after passing through
-the region of death; and a little vermilion to
-take away its extreme paleness. His was a
-bold hand that could at once tear aside these
-loved usages, and make the dust of the warrior
-of no more consequence than that of the meanest
-of his followers. The cemetery of the new
-town was in the woods, and the procession of
-all the inhabitants moved slowly beneath their
-shadow, in deep and solemn silence, with the
-missionary at their head: no wail was heard—no
-wild gush of sorrow. To estimate this
-sacrifice, it is necessary to recur to the Indian
-belief, “that after death they should go to a
-very fertile country, where they were to have<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_73"></a>[73]</span>
-many wives, and, above all, lovely places for
-hunting:” often, no doubt, the shadowy chase
-of the bear and the stag came on the dreams
-of the dying man; and afterwards, beautiful
-women would welcome him, weary to his
-home. When the dead was laid in the grave,
-Eliot read the funeral service over him, and
-then told the many people, that in heaven they
-neither married nor were given in marriage;
-that the passions of this world, the wild chase
-or the warrior’s joy, could never come there;
-<i>there</i> was neither chieftain nor slave; that in
-the love of Christ, who was the resurrection
-and the life, all these things would be lost.
-And they believed him—those fierce and brutal
-men—and wept, not for the dead, but for themselves;
-“so that the woods,” says a gentleman
-who was present, “rang with their sighs and
-prayers;” he also adds these words,—“God
-was with Eliot, and the sword of his word will
-pierce deep, in the hand of the mighty.” His
-opinion of the mental powers of this people
-was not a very low one:—“There is need,”
-he says, in one of his letters, “of learning, in
-ministers who preach to Indians, much more
-than to Englishmen and gracious Christians;
-for these had sundry philosophical questions,
-which some knowledge of the arts must help
-to give answer to, and without which they
-would not have been satisfied. Worse than
-Indian ignorance hath blinded their eyes, that
-renounce learning as an enemy to gospel ministers”.
-So acute were many of the questions<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_74"></a>[74]</span>
-proposed by the Indians, and so deeply expressive
-of a gentler and better nature, that more
-than one educated stranger was induced to
-attend regularly the assemblies of the missionary.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="LOVEWELLS_FIGHT">LOVEWELL’S FIGHT.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Captain John Lovewell, of Dunstable, raised
-a volunteer company and met with great success.
-At one time he fell in with an Indian
-trail and pursued it till he discovered them
-asleep on the bank of a pond. They were all
-killed, and their scalps, stretched upon hoops,
-served to decorate their triumphal return.
-They, of course, received the bounty, which
-amounted to ten pounds.</p>
-
-<p>(1725.) Lovewell, having augmented his
-company to 46 men, again set out with the intention
-of attacking an Indian town on the
-Saco. They built a fort on the Great Ossapy
-pond, and then proceeded, leaving one of their
-number sick, and eight men to guard the fort.</p>
-
-<p>When about 22 miles from the fort they
-rested on the banks of a pond, where they discovered
-a single Indian at a distance, on a point
-of land, and rightly judging that he was attached
-to a large party of Indians, Lovewell
-determined to advance and attack them. Accordingly
-the whole company threw off their
-packs in one place among the brakes; and, to
-gain the advantage, the men were spread so as<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_75"></a>[75]</span>
-partially to surround the water. Lovewell had,
-however, mistaken the position of the Indians,
-who were already on his track, and coming to
-the place where the packs were deposited, by
-counting them discovered the number of English
-to be less than their own. They, therefore
-marched to assault the English in the rear, and
-actually hemmed them in between the mouth
-of a brook, a rocky point, a deep bog, and the
-pond. The company, completely surrounded,
-fought desperately till nightfall, when the Indians,
-tired of the conflict, moved off. The
-number of killed and wounded amounted to
-23, Lovewell being among the former. The
-remainder of the party returned to the fort
-which had been deserted, in consequence of the
-arrival of one of Lovewell’s men who fled at
-the beginning of the fight, and reported all the
-rest killed. After resting, they started for home,
-where they arrived, to the great joy of their
-friends, after enduring the severest hardships.
-The survivors were liberally compensated, and
-the widows and families of the slain were provided
-for by the government of the province.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="COTTON_MATHERS_ACCOUNT_OF_THE_INDIANS_OF_HIS_TIME">COTTON MATHER’S ACCOUNT OF THE INDIANS OF HIS TIME.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“These shiftless Indians,” says Mather,
-“their housing is nothing but a few mats tied
-about poles fastened into the earth, where a
-good fire is their bed-clothes in the coldest season:<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_76"></a>[76]</span>
-their diet has not a greater dainty; a
-handful of meal and a spoonful of water being
-their food for many days; for they depend on
-the produce of their hunting and fishing, and
-badly cultivated grounds: thus they are subject
-to long fastings. They have a cure for some
-diseases, even a little cave: after they have terribly
-heated it, a crew of them go and sit there
-with the priest, looking in the heat and smoke
-like so many fiends, and then they rush forth
-on a sudden, and plunge into the water: how
-they escape death, instead of getting cured, is
-marvellous; they are so slothful, that their poor
-wives must plant, and build, and beat their
-corn. All the religion they have is a belief in
-many gods, who made the different nations of
-the world, but chiefly in one great one of the
-name of Kicktan, who dwelt in the south-west
-regions of the heavens, who created the original
-parents of mankind, who, though never
-seen by the eye of man, was entitled to their
-gratitude, that we have in us immortal souls,
-which, if good, should go to a splendid entertainment
-with Kicktan; but, otherwise, must
-wander about in a restless horror for ever.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_VALIANT_OLD_MOHAWK">THE VALIANT OLD MOHAWK.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>(1696.) On one occasion, when Count Frontignac
-succeeded in capturing a Mohawk fort,
-it was found deserted of all its inhabitants except
-a sachem in extreme old age, who sat with<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_77"></a>[77]</span>
-the composure of an ancient Roman in his capitol,
-and saluted his civilized compeer in age
-and infirmity, with dignified courtesy and venerable
-address. Every hand was instantly raised
-to wound and deface his time-stricken frame
-and while French and Indian knives were
-plunged into his body, he recommended to his
-Indian enemies rather to burn him with fire,
-that he might teach their French allies how
-to suffer like men. “Never, perhaps,” says
-Charlevoix, “was a man treated with more cruelty;
-nor ever did any endure it with superior
-magnanimity and resolution.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="OPECHANCANOUGHS_LAST_WAR">OPECHANCANOUGH’S LAST WAR.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Opechancanough was by no means backward
-in taking advantage of the repose afforded by
-the treaty of 1632. For the long period which
-elapsed between its conclusion and his final
-effort, in 1644, he was industriously occupied in
-making preparations for a renewal of hostilities.
-An opportunity at length presented itself
-for executing his long-cherished purpose. The
-colony was involved in intestine dissensions.
-An insurrection had taken place in consequence
-of the unpopularity of the governor, and at a
-moment when the people were occupied with
-internal disorders and heedless of danger from
-without, their great enemy struck a powerful
-and almost fatal blow.</p>
-
-<p>He was now advanced to extreme old age,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_78"></a>[78]</span>
-being supposed to have numbered nearly a
-hundred years, but the powers of his mind
-were still so vigorous, that he was the leading
-spirit of a confederacy embracing all the Indian
-tribes distributed over a space of country six
-hundred miles in extent. Unable to walk, he
-was borne in a litter to the scene of action
-(April 18th, 1644,) and thus led his warriors to
-the attack. Such was the skill with which his
-measures had been concerted that the whole
-force of the Indians commenced their operations
-upon the entire line of the frontier at the
-same instant of time, with the intention of carrying
-a war of extermination down to the sea,
-and thus annihilating the colony at a single
-blow. In two days, five hundred persons had
-fallen in the massacre. Of course, every operation
-of industry was instantly abandoned, and
-all who were able to bear arms were embodied
-to oppose so terrible an invasion. Governor
-Berkeley, at the head of a chosen force, consisting
-of every twentieth man in the colony,
-marched into the enemy’s country, and thus
-gave him the first check. Of the details of the
-campaign, in consequence of the confusion and
-distress prevailing at the time, no details are
-furnished by the contemporary historians. Beverly’s
-account, the only one which survived
-the ravages of the time, is meagre and unsatisfactory.
-One result of the war, however, is
-sufficiently well attested, since it terminated the
-horrors of the season. This was the capture of
-the aged Opechancanough, who was surprised<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_79"></a>[79]</span>
-and taken prisoner by a squadron of horse under
-the command of Governor Berkeley, who
-forthwith conducted him in triumph to James-Town.</p>
-
-<p>It was the governor’s intention to have sent
-this remarkable person to England; but he was
-shot after being taken prisoner, by a soldier, in
-resentment of the calamities he had inflicted on
-the province. He lingered under the wound
-for several days, and died with the pride and
-firmness of an old Roman. Indignant at the
-crowds who came to gaze at him on his deathbed,
-he exclaimed; “If I had taken Sir William
-Berkeley prisoner, I would not have exposed
-him as a show to the people.” Perhaps he remembered
-that he had saved the life of Captain
-Smith, and forgot the numberless instances
-in which he had exposed other prisoners to
-public derision and lingering torture.</p>
-
-<p>After the decease of their great enemy, the
-colonists had no difficulty in concluding a treaty
-with the Indians, which gave tranquillity to the
-province for a long term of years.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus09" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus09.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_80"></a>[80]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_BURNING_OF_SCHENECTADY">THE BURNING OF SCHENECTADY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The incursions of the Indians on our frontiers
-in early times were usually the result of Spanish
-influence in the South, or French influence in
-the North. The French reduced the incitement
-of Indian hostilities to a complete system, and
-their officers and soldiers were not ashamed to
-accompany the savages in their murdering and
-marauding expeditions into New England and
-New York. Among all the recorded instances
-of this kind, none appears to have been attended
-with more atrocious circumstances of cruelty
-and rapine, than the burning of Schenectady.
-This affair is marked by many traits of the very
-worst description. The inhumanity of murdering
-in their beds the very people who had formerly
-relieved their wants, is, perhaps, without
-a parallel.</p>
-
-<p>In 1690, Count de Frontignac, governor
-general of Canada, sent out three expeditions
-against the American colonies. The first of
-these proceeded against Schenectady, then a
-small village, situated on the Mohawk river.
-This party, after wandering for twenty-two
-days through deserts rendered trackless by
-snow, approached the village of Schenectady
-in so exhausted a condition, that they had determined
-to surrender themselves to the inhabitants
-as prisoners of war. But, arriving at a
-late hour on an inclement night, and hearing
-from the messengers they had sent forward that
-the inhabitants were all in bed, without even<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_81"></a>[81]</span>
-the precaution of a public watch, they exchanged
-their intention of imploring mercy to
-themselves, for a plan of nocturnal attack and
-massacre of the defenceless people, to whose
-charity their own countrymen had once been so
-highly indebted. This detestable requital of
-good with evil was executed with a barbarity
-which, of itself, must be acknowledged to form
-one of the most revolting and terrific pictures
-that has ever been exhibited of human cruelty
-and ferocity. Dividing themselves into a number
-of parties, they set fire to the village in various
-places, and attacked the inhabitants with
-fatal advantage when, alarmed by the conflagration,
-they endeavoured to escape from their
-burning houses. The exhausted strength of
-the Frenchmen appeared to revive with the
-work of destruction, and to gather energy from
-the animated horror of the scene. Not only
-were all the male inhabitants they could reach
-put to death, but women were murdered, and
-their infants dashed on the walls of the houses.
-But either the delay caused by this elaborate
-cruelty, or the more merciful haste of the
-flames to announce the calamity to those who
-might still fly from the assassins, enabled many
-of the inhabitants to escape. The efforts of
-the assailants were also somewhat impeded by
-a sagacious discrimination which they thought
-it expedient to exercise. Though unmindful
-of benefits, they were not regardless of policy:
-and of a number of Mohawk Indians who
-were in the village, not one sustained an injury.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_82"></a>[82]</span>
-Sixty persons perished in the massacre, and
-twenty-seven were taken prisoners. Of the
-fugitives who escaped half naked, and made
-their way through a storm of snow to Albany,
-twenty-five lost their limbs from the intensity
-of the frost. The French, having totally destroyed
-Schenectady, retired loaded with plunder
-from a place where, we think, it must be
-acknowledged that even the accustomed atrocities
-of Indian warfare had been outdone.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus10" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus10.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_83"></a>[83]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="REMARKABLE_CUSTOM_OF_THE_NATCHES">REMARKABLE CUSTOM OF THE NATCHES.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The Natches were a very considerable nation;
-they formed several villages, that were
-under some peculiar chief, and these obeyed
-one superior of the whole nation. All these
-chiefs bore the name of suns; they adored
-that luminary, and carried his image on their
-breasts, rudely carved. The manner in which
-the Natches rendered divine service to the sun
-has something solemn in it. The high-priest
-got up at break of day, and marched at the
-head of the people with a grave pace, the calumet
-of peace in his hand. He smoked in
-honour of the sun, and blew the first mouthful
-of smoke towards him; when he rose above
-the horizon, they howled by turns after the
-high-priests, and contemplated it with their
-arms extended to heaven. They had a temple
-in which they kept up an eternal fire.</p>
-
-<p>So proud were these chiefs, who pretended
-to trace their origin to the sun, that they had a
-law, by which every Natchez, who had married
-a girl of the blood of the suns, must follow
-her in death, as soon as she had breathed her
-last. There was an Indian, whose name was
-Etteacteal; he dearly loved a daughter of one
-of these suns, and married her; but the consequence
-of this honour had nearly proved very
-fatal to him. His wife fell sick: he watched
-over her day and night, and with many tears
-he besought her not to die, and they prayed together<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_84"></a>[84]</span>
-to Wachil, or the sun, that he would
-spare her life; at last he saw her at the point
-of death, and then he fled: for the moment she
-ceased to breathe, he was to be slain. He embarked
-in a piragua on the Mississippi, and
-came to New Orleans. He put himself under
-the protection of M. de Bienville, the then governor,
-who interested himself for him with
-the Natches; they declared that he had nothing
-more to fear.</p>
-
-<p>Etteacteal, being thus assured, resolved to
-return to his nation; and, without settling
-among them, made several voyages thither;
-he happened to be there, when the chief called
-the Stung Serpent, brother to the head of the
-nation, died; he was a relation of the late wife
-of Etteacteal, and the people resolved to make
-the latter pay his debt, and arrested him.
-When he found himself in the hut of the grand
-chief of war, he gave vent to the excess of his
-grief.</p>
-
-<p>The favourite wife of the deceased Stung
-Serpent, who was likewise to be sacrificed,
-and who saw the preparations for her death
-with firmness, hearing the complaints and
-groans of Etteacteal, said to him, “Art thou no
-warrior?” he said, “Yes, I am one.” “However,”
-said she, “thou criest, life is dear to
-thee; and as that is the case, it is not good
-that thou shouldst go along with me—go with
-the women.” Etteacteal replied, “True, life
-is dear to me: it would be well if I walked
-yet on earth; wait, O wait till the death of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_85"></a>[85]</span>
-great sun, and I will die with him.” “Go thy
-way,” she said, “it is not fit that thou die with
-me, and thy heart remain behind on earth;
-the warriors will obey my word, for now, so
-near to the Spirit of life, I am full of power:
-go away, and let me see thee no more.” He
-did not stay to have this order repeated; he
-disappeared like lightning. Three old women,
-two of whom were his relations, offered to pay
-his debt; their age and their infirmities had
-disgusted them with life, none of them had
-been able to walk for a great while; but the
-hair of the two that were related to Etteacteal,
-was no more grey than that of young women;
-the third was a hundred and twenty years old;
-they were sacrificed in the evening, at the going
-down of the sun.</p>
-
-<p>The generosity of these women gave the Indian
-life again, acquired him the degree of
-<i>Considered</i>, and cleared his honour, that had
-been sullied by his fearing death. The hour
-being come for the sacrifice of the favourite
-wife of the deceased chief, she came forth, and
-called her children round her, while the people
-stood a little way off: “Children,” she said,
-“this is the day on which I am to tear myself
-from your arms, and to follow your father’s
-steps, who waits for me in the country of the
-spirits; if I were to yield to your tears, I
-should injure my love, and fail in my duty. I
-have done enough for you by bearing you next
-to my heart, and by suckling you with my
-breasts. You that are descended of his blood,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_86"></a>[86]</span>
-and fed by my milk, ought you to shed tears?
-rejoice, rather, that you are suns and warriors:
-go, my children, I have provided for all your
-wants, by procuring you friends; my friends,
-and those of your father, are yours too. And
-you, Frenchmen,” she added, turning herself
-towards our officers, “I recommend my orphan
-children to you;—you ought to protect
-them; we shall be longer friends in the country
-of the spirits than here, because we do not
-die there again. And now the day is sinking
-behind the hills; yet a few moments, my husband,
-and I come!”</p>
-
-<p>Moved by these words, a noble woman
-came to join herself to the favourite wife, of
-her own accord, being engaged, she said, by
-the friendship she bore the Stung Serpent, to
-follow him into the other world. The Europeans
-called her the Haughty Lady, on account
-of her majestic deportment, and proud and
-beautiful features: on this account the French
-officers regretted very much her resolve, and
-strove to dissuade her from it, but in vain: the
-moving sight filled them all with grief and
-horror.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus11" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus11.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_87"></a>[87]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PONTIAC">PONTIAC.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Great as were many of the western Indian
-warriors, none was greater than Pontiac, a chief
-whose fame was not only spread throughout
-America, but widely diffused in Europe. He
-was the chief of all the Indians on the chain of
-lakes: the Ottawas, to which he belonged, the
-Miamis, Chippewas, Wyandots, Pottawatomies,
-Winnebagoes, Shawanese, Ottagamies, and Mississagas,
-all of which tribes afterwards were led
-by Tecumseh. Pontiac is said to have possessed
-a majestic and princely appearance, so pleasing
-to the Indians, and this in part accounts for his
-popularity among them.</p>
-
-<p>In 1760, after the capture of Quebec, Major
-Rogers was sent into the country of Pontiac to
-drive the French from it. Being informed of
-his approach, Pontiac sent word to him to wait
-until he came to him. The major waited, and
-when Pontiac came, that chief asked him why
-he entered his dominions without permission.
-The major answered that he came not against
-the natives but the French; and at the same
-time gave the chief several belts of wampum;
-whereupon Pontiac replied, “I stand in the path
-you travel until to-morrow morning.” By this
-was meant that he must not proceed until the
-next morning. Upon an offer of the Indian,
-Major Rogers bought a large quantity of parched
-corn, and other provisions. The next day Pontiac
-offered him every facility for the undertaking.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_88"></a>[88]</span>
-Messengers were sent to the different
-tribes to assure them that the English had his
-permission to pass through the country, and he
-even accompanied the major and troops as far
-as Detroit. He was noted for the desire of
-knowledge, and while the English were in his
-country, he was very curious in examining their
-arms, clothes, &amp;c., and expressed a wish to go
-to England. He said that he would allow
-white settlements within his domains; and was
-willing to call the king of England <i>uncle</i> but
-not master. He further told the soldiers that
-they must behave themselves peaceably while
-in his country, or he would stop the way.</p>
-
-<p>Pontiac had distinguished himself at Detroit
-and Michillimackinac. When the French gave
-up Canada (1760), their Indian allies still preserved
-their hatred towards the English, and as
-Pontiac was the most considerable enemy of
-that nation, the adjacent tribes <i>all came</i> to him
-as a support against them. Pontiac had advanced
-farther in civilization than any of the
-neighbouring chiefs: he appointed a commissary
-during the war of 1763, called Pontiac’s war;
-and issued bills of credit, on each of which was
-pictured the thing desired, and the figure of an
-otter, the symbol of his tribe. In 1763 Major
-Rogers sent a bottle of brandy to him, which
-Pontiac was counselled not to drink, as it probably
-contained poison. But with the greatest
-magnanimity he exclaimed, “It is not in his
-power to <i>kill him</i> who has so lately saved his
-life.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_89"></a>[89]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_IDOL_OF_THE_PEORIAS">THE IDOL OF THE PEORIAS.<br>
-<span class="smaller">(FROM AN OLD TRAVELLER.)</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“We arrived at the village of the Peorias,
-allies of the Illinois, through a fine large meadow,
-which is many leagues long. This village
-is situated on the banks of a little river, and
-surrounded with great pales and posts: there
-are many trees on the banks, and the huts are
-built beneath them. When we arrived there,
-I inquired for the hut of the grand chief: I was
-well received by him and his first warriors.
-They had just been beaten by the Foxes, their
-mortal enemies, and were now holding a consultation
-about it. A young Indian lighted the
-calumet of peace; then they brought me a dish
-of maize flour, called sagamité, sweetened with
-the syrup of the maple-tree; and afterwards a
-dessert of dry fruits, as good as Corinth raisins.
-The next day I saw a great crowd in the plain:
-they were for making a dance in favour of
-their new Manitou; the high priest had a bonnet
-of feathers, like a crown, on his head. I
-was at the door of the temple of their false
-deity; he begged me to go in. Judge of my
-astonishment, for this is the picture of their
-Manitou: his head hung upon his breast, and
-looked like a goat’s; his ears and his cruel eye
-were like those of a lynx, with the same kind
-of hair; his feet, hands, and thighs were in
-form something like those of a man.</p>
-
-<p>“The Indians found him in the woods, at the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_90"></a>[90]</span>
-foot of a ridge of mountains, and the priests
-had persuaded them to adopt him for a divinity.
-This general assembly was called, to invoke his
-protection against their enemies. I let the Indians
-know that their Manitou was an evil
-genius; as a proof of it, I said that he had just
-permitted the nation of Foxes, their most cruel
-enemies, to gain a victory over them, and they
-ought to get rid of him as soon as possible, and
-be revenged on him. After a short time, they
-answered, ‘Houé nigeié, tinai labé,’—‘we believe
-thee, thou art in the right.’ They then
-voted that he should be burnt; and the great
-priest, after some opposition, pronounced his
-sentence, which, according to the interpreter’s
-explanation, was in these terms: ‘O thou, fatal
-to our nation, who has wrongfully taken thee
-for her Manitou! thou hast paid no regard to
-the offerings which we have made thee, and
-hast allowed our enemies, whom thou dost
-plainly protect, to overcome us; therefore our
-old men, assembled in council, have decreed,
-with the advice of the chief of the white warriors,
-that to expiate thy ingratitude towards
-us, thou shalt be burnt alive.’ At the end of
-this sentence, all the assembly said, ‘Hau, hau,’
-which signified ‘yes.’</p>
-
-<p>“As I wished to get this monster, I went to
-the priest, made him a small present, and bid
-my interpreter tell him that he should persuade
-his countrymen, that if they burnt this evil genius,
-there might arise one from his ashes that
-could be fatal to them; that I would go on purpose<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_91"></a>[91]</span>
-across the great lake, to deliver them from
-it. He found my reasons good, and got the
-sentence changed, so that it was strangled. I
-got it instantly dissected, in order to bring it to
-France, where its skeleton is now in the cabinet
-of natural history of M. de Fayolles. The
-assembly dispersed, and returned to their village
-by the river side. In the evening you might
-see them sitting in groups at their doors, and on
-the shore, with many fires made of the branches
-of the trees, whose light was on the water and
-the grove; while some of them danced the
-dance of war, with loud shrieks, that were
-enough to strike an awe into the heart.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp75" id="illus12" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus12.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_92"></a>[92]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="DEATH_OF_A_MOHAWK_CHIEF">DEATH OF A MOHAWK CHIEF.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Count Frontignac, whose sprightly manners
-and energetic character supported the spirits of
-his countrymen amidst every reverse, was so
-provoked with what he deemed the ingratitude
-of the Five Nations for his kindness to them at
-Schenectady, that, besides encouraging his own
-Indian allies to burn their prisoners alive, he at
-length condemned to a death still more dreadful,
-two Mohawk warriors who had fallen into his
-hands. In vain the French priests remonstrated
-against this sentence, and urged him not to bring
-so foul a stain on the Christian name: the count
-declared that every consideration must yield to
-the safety and defence of his people, and that
-the Indians must not be encouraged to believe
-that they might practise the extreme of cruelty
-on the French without the hazard of having it
-retorted on themselves. If he had been merely
-actuated by politic considerations, without being
-stimulated by revenge, he might have plainly
-perceived, from the conduct of all the Indian
-tribes in their wars with each other, that the
-fear of retort had no efficacy whatever to restrain
-them from their barbarous practices,
-which he now undertook to sanction as far as
-his example was capable of doing. The priests,
-finding that their humane intercession was ineffectual,
-repaired to the prisoners, and laboured
-to persuade them to embrace the Christian name,
-as a preparation for the dreadful fate which<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_93"></a>[93]</span>
-they were about to receive from Christian
-hands; but their instructions were rejected with
-scorn and derision, and they found the prisoners
-determined to dignify, by Indian sentiments and
-demeanour, the Indian death which they had
-been condemned to undergo. Shortly before
-the execution, some Frenchman, less inhuman
-than his governor, threw a knife into the prison,
-and one of the Mohawks immediately dispatched
-himself with it: the other, expressing
-contempt at his companion’s mean evasion from
-glory, walked to the stake, singing in his death-chant,
-that he was a Mohawk warrior, that all
-the power of man could not extort the least expression
-of suffering from his lips, and that it
-was ample consolation to him to reflect that he
-had made many Frenchmen suffer the same
-pangs that he must now himself undergo.
-When attached to the stake, he looked round on
-his executioners, their instruments of torture,
-and the assembled multitude of spectators, with
-all the complacency of heroic fortitude; and,
-after enduring for some hours, with composed
-mien and triumphant language, a series of barbarities
-too atrocious and disgusting to be recited,
-his sufferings were terminated by the
-interposition of a French lady, who prevailed
-with the governor to order that mortal blow, to
-which human cruelty has given the name of
-<i>coup de grace</i> or stroke of <i>favour</i>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_94"></a>[94]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="MURDER_OF_MISS_MACREA">MURDER OF MISS MACREA.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Jones, an officer of the British army, had
-gained the affections of Miss Macrea, a lovely
-young lady of amiable character and spotless
-reputation, daughter of a gentleman attached
-to the royal cause, residing near Fort Edward;
-and they had agreed to be married. In the
-course of service, the officer was removed to
-some distance from his bride, and became
-anxious for her safety and desirous of her
-company. He engaged some Indians, of two
-different tribes, to bring her to camp, and promised
-a keg of rum to the person who should
-deliver her safe to him. She dressed to meet
-her bridegroom, and accompanied her Indian
-conductors; but by the way, the two chiefs,
-each being desirous of receiving the promised
-reward, disputed which of them should deliver
-her to her lover. The dispute rose to a quarrel;
-and, according to their usual method of disposing
-of a disputed prisoner, one of them
-instantly cleft the head of the lady with his
-tomahawk. This simple story, sufficiently tragical
-and affecting in itself, was blazoned in the
-American newspapers with every amplification
-that could excite the imagination or touch the
-heart; and contributed in no slight degree to
-embitter the minds of the people against those
-who could degrade themselves by the aid of
-such allies. The impulse given to the public
-mind by such atrocities more than counterbalanced
-any advantages which the British derived
-from the assistance of the Indians.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_95"></a>[95]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="AN_INDIAN_IN_COLLEGE">AN INDIAN IN COLLEGE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The first serious disappointment which John
-Eliot, the Indian Apostle, experienced, was in
-his efforts for the instruction of the Indian
-youth in the classic languages; many of the
-ablest and most promising among them were
-set apart for this purpose; his ambition was
-to bring them up “with our English youth
-in university learning.” Where was the use
-of this? Eliot’s best purposes were prone
-to be carried to excess. He gave away
-a whole year’s salary, at a wretched cottage,
-while his wife was probably expecting
-it at home for household demands. He had
-learned his Indians to read and write; many
-could read English well; and now he wished
-to give them a polite education, that must have
-sat as gracefully on them as the full-sleeved
-gown and bands of the divine. Considerable
-sums were expended in their board and education:
-a substantial building of brick, which cost
-between three and four hundred pounds, was
-erected; it was large enough to accommodate
-twenty scholars. It must have been Spartan
-discipline to the heads as well as hearts of the
-poor Indians, to labour morn and night through
-the Greek and Roman authors, to try to discover
-and relish the beauties of style and the
-splendour of imagery. No doubt, their thoughts
-sometimes fled away to their deserts, where
-their fathers roved in dignity and freedom, and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_96"></a>[96]</span>
-books never came. The design might be praiseworthy,
-but Providence did not smile upon it,
-most of these young men died when they had
-made great proficiency in their studies, as if the
-languages wore out their hearts; others abandoned
-their books, even when they were prepared
-to enter Harvard College, in the town of
-Cambridge; their patience was probably exhausted,
-and the boon of literary dignity could
-lure them no further. A few of these, passing
-from one extreme to the other, burst their bonds
-at once; and as if mind and body panted together
-to be free, hastened back to the wilderness
-again, into its wigwams and swamps;
-where neither Homer nor Ovid was like to
-follow them.</p>
-
-<p>“These circumstances proved very discouraging
-to the godly in New England,” says a
-contemporary. “Some were so far affected by
-them, as to conceive that they were manifest
-tokens of the Divine disapprobation. Mr. Eliot,
-however, whose faith was more vigorous, considered
-them merely as trials, to which they
-ought to submit without reluctance.” In consequence
-of the death and failure of those who
-entered the aforesaid building, it was soon after
-chiefly occupied by the English. Only one of
-these Indian students appears to have obtained
-his degree at Harvard College; and at the conclusion
-of two Latin and Greek elegies, which
-he composed on the death of an eminent minister,
-subscribed himself “Cheesecaumuk, Senior<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_97"></a>[97]</span>
-Sophista.” What an incongruous blending
-of sounds!</p>
-
-<p>Eliot at last saw his error, and, instead of
-the classics, applied with fresh ardour to his
-more useful translations, of which the circulation
-was so rapid, that he printed a fresh edition
-of the “Practice of Piety.” He also soon
-after established a lecture at Naticke, in which
-he explained the leading doctrines of theology
-and logic: here he was on safe ground, and his
-labours were eminently useful. During the
-summer months they assembled eagerly once
-a fortnight, and many of them gained much
-knowledge; yet he was far from being satisfied
-with his oral instructions, and he printed a
-thousand copies of a logic primer, and made
-little systems of all the liberal arts, for the use
-of the Indians. The same minds that had pined
-and sunk beneath the study of the classic
-tongues, embraced these things with ardour.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus13" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus13.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_98"></a>[98]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="AN_INDIAN_WARRANT">AN INDIAN WARRANT.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Judge Davis, in his Appendix to the Memorial,
-observes, that the employment of the more
-intelligent and energetic Indians as rulers, was
-particularly grateful to them. He had often
-heard of amusing anecdotes of the Indian
-rulers. The following warrant is recollected,
-which was issued by one of these magistrates,
-directed to an Indian constable, and will not
-suffer in comparison with our more verbose
-forms.</p>
-
-<p>‘I, Hihoudi, you Peter Waterman, Jeremy
-Wicket, quick you take him, fast you hold him
-straight you bring him before me, Hihoudi.’</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus14" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus14.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp61" id="illus15" style="max-width: 35.9375em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus15.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Pocahontas Saving the Life of Captain Smith.</p>
- <p class="caption-r"><a href="#Page_99">Page 99.</a></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_99"></a>[99]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CAPTAIN_JOHN_SMITH">CAPTAIN JOHN SMITH.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This gentleman figures, in the early history
-of our country, as the most strenuous promoter
-of colonization, the most wise founder, and the
-most active governor, of colonies. In New
-England he acted as discoverer and settler; in
-Virginia he sustained both these characters, as
-well as that of the most efficient and able governor
-of the first permanent colony. When
-he landed upon the soil, he was a private
-citizen; but the misgovernment of others soon
-made it necessary to call him to the office of
-governor.</p>
-
-<p>Under his directions James-Town was fortified
-by such defences as were sufficient to repel
-the attacks of the savages; and, by dint of
-great labour, which he was always the foremost
-to share, the colonists were provided with
-dwellings that afforded shelter from the weather,
-and contributed to restore and preserve their
-health. Finding the supplies of the savages
-discontinued, he put himself at the head of a
-detachment of his people, and penetrated into
-the country; and by courtesy and liberality to
-the tribes whom he found well disposed, and
-vigorously repelling the hostilities of such as
-were otherwise minded, he obtained for the
-colony the most abundant supplies.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_100"></a>[100]</span></p>
-
-<p>In the midst of his successes he was surprised
-on an expedition, by a hostile body of savages,
-who, having succeeded in making him prisoner,
-after a gallant and nearly successful defence,
-prepared to inflict on him the usual fate of their
-captives. His eminent faculties did not desert
-him on this trying occasion. He desired to
-speak with the sachem or chief, and, presenting
-him with a mariner’s compass, expatiated on
-the wonderful discoveries to which it had led,
-described the shape of the earth, the vastness of
-its lands and oceans, the course of the sun, the
-varieties of nations, and the singularity of their
-relative positions, which made some of them
-antipodes to the others.</p>
-
-<p>With equal prudence and magnanimity he refrained
-from all solicitations for his life, which
-would only have weakened the impressions
-which he hoped to produce. The savages
-listened with amazement and admiration. They
-had handled the compass, and viewing with
-surprise the play of the needle, which they
-plainly saw, but found it impossible to touch,
-from the intervention of the glass, this marvellous
-object prepared their minds for the reception
-of those vast impressions by which
-their captive endeavoured to gain ascendency
-over them.</p>
-
-<p>For an hour after he had finished his harangue,
-they seem to have remained undecided; till
-their habitual sentiments reviving, they resumed
-their suspended purpose, and, having bound
-him to a tree, prepared to dispatch him with<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_101"></a>[101]</span>
-their arrows. But a stronger impression had
-been made on their chief; and his soul, enlarged
-for a season by the admission of knowledge, or
-subdued by the influence of wonder, revolted
-from the dominion of habitual ferocity. This
-chief was named Opechancanough, and destined
-at a future period to invest his barbarous
-name with terror and celebrity. Holding
-up the compass in his hand, he gave the signal
-of reprieve, and Smith, though still guarded as
-a prisoner, was conducted to a dwelling where
-he was kindly treated, and plentifully entertained.
-But the strongest impressions pass
-away, while the influence of habit remains.</p>
-
-<p>After vainly endeavouring to prevail on their
-captive to betray the English colony into their
-hands, they referred his fate to Powhatan, the
-king or principal sachem of the country, to
-whose presence they conducted him in triumphal
-procession. The king received him with
-much ceremony, ordered a plentiful repast to be
-set before him, and then adjudged him to suffer
-death by having his head laid on a stone and
-beat to pieces with clubs. At the place appointed
-for this barbarous execution, he was
-again rescued from impending fate by the interposition
-of Pocahontas, the favourite daughter
-of the king, who, finding her first entreaties disregarded,
-threw her arms around the prisoner,
-and declared her determination to save him or
-die with him. Her generous affection prevailed
-over the cruelty of her tribe, and the king not
-only gave Smith his life, but soon after sent<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_102"></a>[102]</span>
-him back to James-Town, where the beneficence
-of Pocahontas continued to follow him
-with supplies of provisions that delivered the
-colony from famine.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="ANECDOTES_OF_KING_PHILIPS_WAR">ANECDOTES OF KING PHILIP’S WAR.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<h3>COMMENCEMENT OF THE WAR.</h3>
-
-<p>In the year 1674, the number of Eliot’s towns
-and settlements, in which industry, comfort,
-good order, and the best instruction, were established,
-amounted to more than twelve, when
-an unforeseen event happened, that threw a
-cloud over all his prospects. This was the war
-in which the colonists of New England were
-involved with Philip, son of Massasoit, the celebrated
-chief, and, for the last years of his life,
-the firm friend of the English. “O, thou sword
-of the wilderness, when wilt thou be quiet?”
-says Mather, forgetful that it was bared by the
-aggressions of the settlers, as well as by the
-fierce and restless spirit of the Indian prince.
-Ever since the foundation of the colonies, the
-former had conducted themselves, says more
-than one divine of the period, with great kindness
-to their heathen brethren. The truth of
-this assertion is very doubtful. The missionary
-took no part in the disputes, save to urge his
-countrymen to forbearance and peace. “We,
-the poor church of Naticke,” he writes to them,
-“hearing that the honoured rulers of Plymouth<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_103"></a>[103]</span>
-are pressing and arming of soldiers to go to
-war with the Indians, do mourn greatly on account
-of it, and desire that they may not be
-destroyed, because we have not heard that they
-have done any thing worthy of death. It is
-your duty to offer, accept, and desire peace, and
-we pray you, for God’s sake, and for your
-souls’ sake, obey this word; we long to hear
-of a happy peace, that may open a clear passage
-for the gospel among that people.” Simple
-as these words are, they unfold an affection
-on the part of the missionary and his converts,
-for those who had few claims on their regard;
-for Philip, and most of his chiefs, had sternly
-rejected all persuasions to Christianity. But
-Eliot was not of the sentiment of another divine,
-who rejoiced in the rejection of the proposals
-by the Indians, that “this thing was of
-the Lord.” He saw only on one side an exquisite
-jealousy, roused by many wrongs, a
-heart burning with vindictive feelings; on the
-other, a sordid ambition, an unhallowed love
-of glory. It was a source of sorrow, that the
-torch of discord was first kindled by one of his
-own people. In the end of the year 1674, John
-Seusoman, a converted Indian, after having
-apostatized from the faith, devoted himself to
-the service of Philip, as secretary. He informed
-the English that his countrymen had resolved
-to adopt measures for their destruction. “He
-could write,” says the historian, “though the
-king, his master, could not read.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_104"></a>[104]</span></p>
-
-<p>This renegade, fearing the consequences of
-what he had done, returned to the protection
-of the settlers, and was soon after slain by two
-of the Indian captains. The English arrested
-the perpetrators of the deed, and, on a trial by
-jury, finding them guilty, they were executed.
-Philip was alarmed at the condemnation of his
-counsellors, and, conscious that he had given
-cause for suspicion, resolved to be the first in
-the field. He had probably long waited for an
-opportunity. Rash, headstrong, and vindictive,
-with the courage but not the talents of his
-father, Massasoit, the slow and artful aggressions
-of the settlers stung him to the quick.
-He began to gather his warriors around his
-dwelling-place, at the strong forts near the Naraganset
-river; he received the accession of
-several other tribes. In the mean time, it was
-said, strange sights and sounds foreboded, in
-many parts of the colonies, the woes that were
-near; the singing of bullets, and the awful
-passing away of drums in the air; invisible
-troops of horses were heard riding to and fro;
-and in a clear, still, sunshiny morning, the phantoms
-of men, fearfully flitting by! Philip, heedless
-of omens and dreams, sent away the women
-and children, and took his stand on Mount
-Hope, a low and beautiful eminence, on which
-was his strongest fort. Ere matters came to a
-fatal extremity, and all the evils of war were
-let loose on his settlements, Eliot did his utmost
-to turn them aside; he saw that many of his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_105"></a>[105]</span>
-people would inevitably be involved with one
-party or the other. His town of Pakeunit was
-very near Mount Hope; he had visited the latter
-during the life of Massasoit, and though he
-felt not the same regard or esteem for his son,
-a friendly intercourse had subsisted between
-them. His applications to the colonists for
-peace being fruitless, he resolved to try them
-also on the former.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp95" id="illus16" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus16.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_106"></a>[106]</span></p>
-
-<h3>INTERVIEW BETWEEN ELIOT AND PHILIP.</h3>
-
-<p>A few miles only distant, the encampment
-of the Indians around their Mount was distinctly
-visible from Pakeunit; and Eliot, with
-two or three of his people, went to have an interview
-with the chieftain. Philip respected
-his character, though he disliked his proceedings,
-for he had always treated his mission with
-contempt and slight; among the warriors, however,
-both of his own and other tribes, were
-many who had heard Eliot preach, and had received
-him beneath their roof. The interview
-was without any success; the spirit of the Indian
-was made up to the desperate struggle,
-and all that could be done was to beseech him
-to spare the settlements of the converts.</p>
-
-<p>The contrast between the two men must
-have been sufficiently striking. Philip was in
-the prime of life, with a frame nerved by early
-hardship, and the usages of savage warfare, in
-which he was very expert; he was dressed like
-his chiefs, save that he wore a silver-laced tunic,
-or coat, and that his arms were more rich;
-his chief ensign of dignity was his princely, yet
-cruel and gloomy features, where the thirst of
-revenge was stamped. The frame of the missionary
-was not bowed even by seventy years,
-though they had turned his hair white; the
-leathern girdle was about his loins, that he
-always wore, and the simple apparel that he<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_107"></a>[107]</span>
-loved; he stood among these fierce and exasperated
-men as calm and fearless as in his own
-assembly at Naticke: he could not but foresee
-the devastation about to be let loose on the
-land; that the fire and the sword would waste
-all his pleasant places, and scatter his converts;
-and he returned with a heavy heart to his
-home. Several of the latter afterwards sided
-with the forces of Philip: whether from this
-circumstance, or from the nearness of the settlement
-of Pakeunit to the camp of the prince,
-the colonists contracted the strongest dislike
-and mistrust of the Christian Indians. Eliot,
-when he saw there was no longer a chance of
-peace, exhorted his people in the above town,
-and at Naticke, as well as the other congregations,
-not to be moved by the example or seductions
-of either party.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus17" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus17.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_108"></a>[108]</span></p>
-
-<h3>CHRISTIAN INDIANS ENGAGE IN THE WAR.</h3>
-
-<p>The contagion was, however, too strong; and
-Eliot at last saw many of them also take up
-arms against their infidel countrymen. The order
-and harmony of their dwelling-places were for
-a time utterly blasted; on the hills around Naticke
-and Pakeunit the watch-fires were blazing;
-the war-whoops were often heard in the
-night; at intervals, a solitary musket, and then
-a signal cry, came from the neighbouring
-woods; and yet nearer, the poor Indians at
-last saw their plantations without the town,
-burning; for Philip began hostilities by a sudden
-attack on them, so that their taking up
-arms was partly in self-defence. After several
-actions, he retired from Mount Hope to the
-woods, swamps, and fastnesses of the interior,
-in the dominion of the great tribe of the Naraganset
-Indians, who, for his sake, had now
-broken treaty with the English. It was the
-depth of winter, yet the latter resolved to follow
-him to his retreats, and an army of fifteen
-hundred men, under the command of the Hon.
-J. Winslow, marched to the abode of the Indians.
-This was on an island of about five or
-six acres, the only entrance to which was upon
-a long tree over the water, so that but one
-man could pass at a time: but the water was
-frozen; the trees and thickets were white with
-their burden of snow, as was the surface of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_109"></a>[109]</span>
-earth, so that the smallest movement of the
-Indians could be seen.</p>
-
-<p>Within the isle were gathered the powers of
-the Pequot and Naraganset tribes, with their
-wives, families, and valuable things; the want
-of leaves and thick foliage allowed no ambush,
-and the savage must fight openly beside his
-own hearth and store. It was the close of day
-when the colonists came up to the place; a
-fort, a blockhouse, and a wall that passed round
-the isle, proved the skill, as well as resolution,
-of the assailed; the frozen shores and water
-were quickly covered with the slain, and then
-the Indians fought at their doors and around
-their children, till all was lost, and a thousand
-of them fell. Philip fled with his surviving
-forces to a distant position, where it was impossible
-to follow him. Concord, one of the
-first settlements of Eliot, and one or two other
-towns, were this winter destroyed, and its poor
-people turned from their dwellings into all the
-rigours of the winter; many perished in the
-woods or amidst the snows, or by the secret
-and sudden ambushes of the enemy.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus18" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus18.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_110"></a>[110]</span></p>
-
-<h3>MISFORTUNES OF PHILIP.</h3>
-
-<p>The last defeat, in which his best fighting
-men were slain, had broken the power, but not
-the spirit, of Philip. Unable to meet the colonists
-in the open field, he harassed them in a
-thousand ways, so that, as the spring advanced,
-the more industrious and timid were thrown
-into the extremity of despair, and said, “How
-shall we wade through another summer like
-the last?” But the chief was now a wandering
-exile; his paternal dominion was taken; the
-singular friendship of Quanonchet, “the mighty
-sachem of the Naragansets,” was his last support.
-The fidelity of this man was tried to the
-uttermost: he had received the fugitive with
-open arms; rallied all his forces around him;
-they fought, side by side, with the heroism of
-men on the last strand of their country; were
-defeated, and fled together, without a reproach
-or complaint on either side; they retreated yet
-farther into the interior, and, by their persuasions,
-engaged other tribes in the cause; but, at
-this moment, the Maquas, a powerful nation in
-the west, made a descent on them, and wasted
-their band. In spite of these disasters, they
-again advanced.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_111"></a>[111]</span></p>
-
-<h3>CLOSE OF THE WAR.</h3>
-
-<p>Eliot, during these troubles, was subjected to
-much contempt and reproach. His efforts to
-protect his people, and watch over their interests,
-were incessant; but so strong was the
-suspicion against them, that the colonists, not
-content with confining a great number of them
-in Long Island, inflicted on them many sufferings,
-and a few of the more cruel said that they
-were worthy of death.</p>
-
-<p>But the war began to draw to a close: Quanonchet,
-venturing out with a few followers
-near the enemy, was pursued and taken. His
-behaviour under his misfortunes was very noble
-and affecting; for when repeated offers were
-made him of life, if he would deliver up Philip,
-and submit his own people to the English, he
-proudly rejected them. They condemned him
-to die, and, by a refinement of cruelty, by the
-hands of three young Indian chiefs. The heroic
-man said, “that he liked it well, for he
-should die before his heart was soft, or he had
-spoken any thing unworthy of himself.”</p>
-
-<p>Philip was deeply moved by the death of the
-chieftain, for their friendship was like that of
-David and Jonathan, strongest in misery and
-exile. He was not yet left desolate: his beloved
-wife and only child were with him.
-They had shared all his sufferings; in his
-flights, his inroads, his dwellings in the swamps,
-they seem never to have left his side. The unfortunate<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_112"></a>[112]</span>
-prince now returned to Mount Hope,
-the scene of his former power and happiness;
-it was for no purpose of defence that he came,
-for it was too near the English settlements, but
-merely to visit it once more. “He finds it,”
-says Mather, “to be Mount Misery, Mount
-Confusion!”</p>
-
-<p>No doubt it was so to his bleeding spirit;
-for, with all his savage propensities, this prince
-was susceptible of some of the finest feelings
-of our nature. He sat down mournfully on the
-beautiful Mount, on which were now the ruins
-of his fortress and camp; but he could not remain
-long here, for the feet of his pursuers
-were nigh, and he was compelled to seek his
-distant retreats again:—there was a greater
-agony in store for him than the sight of his
-ruined home.</p>
-
-<p>Early one morning, his quarters were surprised
-by the English, most of his followers
-slain, and his wife and son made captive. The
-chief fled, broken-hearted, but unsubdued, leaving
-all he loved on earth in the hands of those
-who had no mercy. “This was no small torment
-to him,” quaintly says the historian. “Wo
-to him that spoileth! His peag, or silver belt,
-the ensign of his princedom, also remained in
-our hands, so hardly did he escape.” The measure
-of his woes was not yet full. The Indian
-princess of Pocasset was warmly attached to
-his cause, and had more than once aided him
-in his extremity; she had received him beneath
-her roof, soothed his sorrows, and, what was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_113"></a>[113]</span>
-more, summoned her people to fight for him;
-and saved him and his people in her canoes the
-year before. Now, she followed him in his
-flight, and, as the more devout said, as if by a
-judgment, could not find a canoe to transport
-her, and, venturing over the river upon a raft,
-it broke under her, and she was drowned. Her
-body was soon after washed on shore, and the
-English, forgetful of all decency and delicacy
-to a woman of her rank, though a savage, cut
-off her head, and placed it on high, which,
-when the Indians who were her people saw,
-they gathered round, and gave way to the most
-sad and touching lamentations.</p>
-
-<p>Philip now began, like Saul of old, when
-earth was leaving him, to look to the powers
-beyond it, and to apply to his magicians and
-sorcerers, who, on consulting their oracles,
-assured him that no Englishman should ever
-kill him. This was a vague consolation, yet it
-seems to have given him, for a while, a confidence
-in his destiny, and he took his last stand
-in the middle of a distant and almost inaccessible
-swamp. It was a fit retreat for a despairing
-man, being one of those waste and dismal
-places to which few ever wandered, covered
-with rank and dense vegetation. The moist
-soil was almost hidden by the cypress and other
-trees, that spread their gloomy shades over the
-treacherous shallows and pools beneath.</p>
-
-<p>In the few drier parts, oaks and pines grew,
-and, between them, a brushwood so thick, that
-the savage could hardly penetrate: on the long<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_114"></a>[114]</span>
-rich grass of these parts, wild cattle fed, unassailed
-by the hand of man, save when they
-ventured beyond the confines of the swamp.
-There were wolves, deer, and other animals;
-and wilder men, it was said, were seen here; it
-was supposed that the children of some of the
-Indians had either been lost or left here, and
-had thus grown up like denizens of this wild.
-Here the baffled chieftain gathered his little
-band around him, like a lion baited by the
-hunters, sullenly seeking his gloomy thickets,
-only to spring forth more fatally; despair was
-his only friend; for what other was now left:
-his love was turned to agony; his wife was in
-the hand of his enemies; and would they spare
-her beauty? His only son, the heir of his long
-line, must bow his head to their yoke; his chief
-warriors had all fallen, and he could not trust
-the few who were still with him.</p>
-
-<p>Quanonchet, whose fidelity and attachment
-were stronger than death, was in the land of
-spirits, chasing the shadowy deer, and solaced
-with many wives; for Philip, to the last, believed
-in the religion of his country. In this
-extremity, an Indian proposed to seek peace
-with the English;—the prince instantly laid him
-dead at his feet. This man had a friend, who,
-disgusted with the deed, soon after fled from the
-place to Rhode Island, where the English were
-recruiting their weary forces, and betrayed the
-place of his retreat. On this intelligence, a
-body of forces instantly set out.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus19" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus19.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Death of King Philip.</p>
- <p class="caption-r"><a href="#Page_115">Page 115.</a></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_115"></a>[115]</span></p>
-
-<h3>DEATH OF PHILIP.</h3>
-
-<p>The night before his death, Philip, “like him
-in the army of Midian,” says the historian,
-“had been dreaming that he was fallen into the
-hands of the English; he awoke in great alarm,
-and told it to his friends, and advised them to
-fly for their lives, for that he believed it would
-come to pass.” The place was well suited to
-awake all the terrors of the imagination; to
-any eye but that of the savage, it was like the
-“valley of the shadow of death;” the cypress
-and oak trees hung heavy and still, over the
-accursed soil; the faint gleam of the pools and
-sluggish lakes on every side, in the starlight,
-and the howl of the wolf, fitfully, as if it
-warned that the hour was nigh. “Now, just
-as he was telling his dream, Captain Church,
-with his company, fell in upon them.” They
-had been guided by the deserter to the swamp,
-and, with great difficulty, across some felled
-trees, into its labyrinths. The battle was fierce
-and short: Philip fought till he saw almost
-every follower fall in his defence, then turned,
-and fled; he was pursued by an Englishman
-and an Indian; and, as if the oracle was
-doomed to be fulfilled, the musket of the former
-would not go off; and the latter fired, and shot
-him through the heart.</p>
-
-<p>With his death, all resistance ceased; his
-dominions fell into the hands of the colonists,
-and peace was restored to the settlements, but<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_116"></a>[116]</span>
-prosperity came not with it. It was a cruel
-blow to Eliot, nearly all whose life had been
-given to his beloved cause, to look around on
-the plantations ravaged, the dwellings empty,
-the defences broken, and, more than all, the
-spirit of his people in despair. Of twelve
-towns, at the beginning of the war, four only
-were now undestroyed.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CANONICUS2">CANONICUS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The <i>Narragansets</i>, possessed the country
-about Narraganset Bay, including Rhode Island,
-and other Islands in that vicinity, and a part of
-Connecticut. <i>Canonicus</i> was their great warrior
-Sachem. This tribe is described by our
-early historians ‘as a great people,’ capable of
-raising 4000 warriors. Canonicus lived to an
-advanced age, and died according to Gov.
-Winthrop, June 4th, 1647. He discovered a
-generous mind in receiving Rev. Roger Williams
-when in great distress, and affording him a
-friendly protection. Mr. Williams mentioned
-his name with respect and acknowledged his
-obligation to him thus in a manuscript letter to
-the Governor of Massachusetts. After observing
-that many hundreds of the English were
-witnesses to the friendly disposition of the Narragansets,
-he says: ‘Their late long lived Canonicus
-so lived and died, in the same most
-honorable manner and solemnity (in their way)
-as you laid to sleep your prudent peace-maker<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_117"></a>[117]</span>
-Mr. Winthrop, did they honor this their prudent
-and peaceable prince; yea, through all their
-towns and countries how frequently do many
-and oft times of Englishmen travel alone with
-safety and loving kindness?’ On one occasion
-Canonicus thus addressed Roger Williams: ‘I
-have never suffered any wrong to be done to
-the English since they landed, nor never will.
-If the English speak true, if he mean truly,
-then shall I go to my grave in peace, and I
-hope that the English and my posterity shall
-live in love and peace together.’ ‘His heart,’
-says Mr. Williams, ‘was stirred up to love me
-as his son to the last gasp.’ However partial
-Canonicus may have been to Rev. Mr. Williams,
-he was not uniformly friendly to the settlers in
-general. It appears in Gov. Winslow’s Good
-News from New England, that in February,
-1622, this chief sent into Plymouth, a bundle
-of arrows bound together with a rattle-snake’s
-skin. This was received as it was intended, a
-challenge for war. Gov. Bradford filled the
-rattle-snake skin with powder and shot and returned
-it to <i>Canonicus</i>, with a message of defiance
-which produced the desired effect. Canonicus
-was so frightened that he dared not
-touch the article and soon returned it to Plymouth
-and became silent and peaceable.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus20" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus20.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Acceptance of Canonicus’ Challenge.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_118"></a>[118]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHICKATAUBUT">CHICKATAUBUT.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><i>Chickataubut</i>, was a sachem of considerable
-note among the <i>Massachusetts</i> tribe, and one
-of those who, in 1621, acknowledged themselves
-the subjects of King James. He was
-Sachem of Passonagesit (Weymouth,) where
-his mother was buried. In Drake’s Indian Biography
-the following is related from Thomas
-Morton’s New Canaan. In the first settling of
-Plymouth, some of the company in wandering
-about upon discovery, came upon an Indian
-grave, which was of the mother of Chickataubut.
-Over the body a stake was set in the
-ground, and two huge bear skins sewed together
-spread over it; these the English took
-away. When this came to the knowledge of
-Chickataubut, he complained to his people and
-demanded immediate vengeance. When they
-were assembled, he thus harangued them:
-‘When last the glorious light of all the sky was
-underneath the globe and birds grew silent, I
-began to settle as my custom is to take repose;
-before mine eyes were fast closed, me thought I
-saw a vision, at which my spirit was much
-troubled, and trembling at that doleful sight
-cried aloud; Behold! my son, whom I have
-cherished, see the paps that gave thee suck, the
-hands that clasped thee warm, and fed thee oft,
-canst thou forget to take revenge on those wild
-people that hath my monument defaced in a
-despiteful manner; disdaining our ancient antiquities,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_119"></a>[119]</span>
-and honorable customs. See now the
-Sachem’s grave lies, like unto the common
-people of ignoble race, defaced. Thy mother
-doth complain, implores thy aid against this
-thievish people newly come hither; if this be
-suffered I shall not rest in quiet within my
-everlasting habitation.’ Battle was the unanimous
-resolve, and the English were watched
-and followed from place to place, until at length
-as some were going ashore in a boat, they fell
-upon them, but gained little advantage. After
-maintaining the fight for some time, and being
-driven from tree to tree, the chief captain was
-wounded in the arm and the whole took to
-flight. This action caused the natives about
-Plymouth to look upon the English as invincible,
-and was the reason that peace was maintained
-so long after.</p>
-
-<p>When Boston was settled <i>Chickataubut</i>
-visited Governor <i>Winthrop</i>, and presented him
-with a hogshead of corn. Many of his ‘sanops
-and squaws’ came with him, but were most of
-them sent away after they had all dined, Chickataubut
-probably fearing they would be burdensome,
-although it thundered and rained and the
-Governor urged their stay. At this time he
-wore English clothes, and sat at the Governor’s
-table, where he behaved himself soberly, &amp;c.
-as an Englishman. “Not long after he called
-on Governor Winthrop and desired to buy of
-him a suit of clothes for himself, the governor
-informed him that ‘English Sagamores did not
-use to truck;’ but he called his tailor and gave<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_120"></a>[120]</span>
-him orders to make him a suit of clothes,
-whereupon he gave the governor two large
-skins of coat beaver. The clothes being ready,
-the governor put him into a very good new suit
-from head to foot, and after, he set meat before
-them; but he would not eat till the governor
-had given thanks, and after meat he desired
-him to do the like, and so departed.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CONDITION_OF_THE_INDIAN_WOMEN">CONDITION OF THE INDIAN WOMEN.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Polygamy is not uncommon among them;
-and the husband occasionally finds it necessary
-to administer a little wholesome castigation to
-his more quarrelsome or refractory squaws.
-But many are satisfied with one wife. The
-care of the tent and the whole drudgery of the
-family devolve on the women. They gather
-fuel, cook the provisions, and repair every
-article of dress; cultivate the ground, where
-any is cultivated; carry the baggage on a
-journey; and pitch the tent when they halt.
-In these and similar employments, their lordly
-fathers, husbands, and brothers, think it degrading
-to assist them, and unworthy of warriors
-to engage in such employments.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Catlin, whose long residence among the
-Indians, and careful observation of their habits,
-entitle his opinion to great respect, regards the
-assignment of drudgery to the women as no
-more than an equitable distribution of the
-labour necessary to the support of the household.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_121"></a>[121]</span>
-He considers the toils of war and the
-chase, which are almost incessant, and are solely
-performed by the men, as a complete offset to
-the domestic and agricultural cares of the
-women. On the whole he thinks that the condition
-of the Indian women is as comfortable
-as it is possible to render it by any arrangement
-which would not completely change their mode
-of life. To withdraw the men from the chase
-and confine them to the culture of the ground,
-would render the Indians an agricultural and
-not a hunting people. Still the condition of the
-Indian woman is a miserable and degraded
-one,—a condition of incessant labour and care.</p>
-
-<p>In none of the tribes do the women experience
-much tenderness; but among the Sioux
-they are so harshly treated, that they occasionally
-destroy their female infants, alleging
-that it is better for them to be put to death than
-to live as miserably as they themselves have
-done. Even suicide is not uncommon among
-them, although they believe it offensive to the
-Father of Life.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_EDUCATION">INDIAN EDUCATION.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The Indians never chastise their children,
-especially the boys; thinking that it would damp
-their spirits, check their love of independence,
-and cool their martial ardour, which they wish
-above all things to encourage. “Reason,” say
-they, “will guide our children, when they come<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_122"></a>[122]</span>
-to the use of it; and before that, their faults
-cannot be very great.” They avoid compulsory
-measures, and allow the boys to act with uncontrolled
-freedom; but endeavour, by example,
-instruction, and advice, to train them to diligence
-and skill in hunting; to animate them with
-patience, courage, and fortitude in war; and to
-inspire them with contempt of danger, pain,
-and death,—qualities of the highest order in
-the estimation of an Indian.</p>
-
-<p>By gentleness and persuasion they endeavour
-to imbue the minds of their children with virtuous
-sentiments, according to their notions of
-virtue. The aged chiefs are zealous in this
-patriotic labour, and the squaws give their cordial
-co-operation.</p>
-
-<p>Ishuchenau, an old Kanza warrior, often
-admonished the group of young auditors who
-gathered around him, of their faults, and exhorted
-them never to tell a lie, and never to
-steal, except from an enemy, whom it is just to
-injure in every possible way. “When you
-become men,” said he, “be brave and cunning
-in war, and defend your hunting grounds
-against all encroachments: never suffer your
-squaws and little ones to want; protect them
-and strangers from insult. On no occasion
-betray a friend; be revenged on your enemies;
-drink not the poisonous strong water of the
-white people, for it is sent by the bad spirit to
-destroy the Indians. Fear not death; none but
-cowards fear to die. Obey and venerate old
-people, particularly your parents. Fear and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_123"></a>[123]</span>
-propitiate the bad spirit, that he may do you no
-harm: love and adore the Good Spirit, who
-made us all, who supplies our hunting grounds,
-and keeps all alive.” After recounting his
-achievements, he was wont to add, “Like a decayed
-prairie tree, I stand alone:—the friends
-of my youth, the companions of my sports, my
-toils, and my dangers, rest their heads on the
-bosom of our mother. My sun is fast descending
-behind the western hills, and I feel it
-will soon be night with me.” Then with hands
-and eyes lifted towards heaven, he thanked the
-Great Spirit for having spared him so long, to
-show the young men the true path to glory
-and fame.</p>
-
-<p>Their opinions, in many instances, are false,
-and lead to corresponding errors in conduct. In
-some tribes, the young person is taught to pray,
-with various superstitious observances, that he
-may be a great hunter, horse-stealer, and warrior;
-so that thus the fountain of virtue is
-polluted.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians are entirely unacquainted with
-letters; but they have a kind of picture writing,
-which they practise on the inside of the bark of
-trees, or on skins prepared for the purpose, and
-by which they can communicate the knowledge
-of many facts to each other.</p>
-
-<p>The Indian names are descriptive of the real
-or supposed qualities of the person to whom
-they belong: they often change them in the
-course of their lives. The young warrior is
-ambitious of acquiring a new name; and stealing<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_124"></a>[124]</span>
-a horse, scalping an enemy, or killing a bear, is
-an achievement which entitles him to choose
-one for himself, and the nation confirms it.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="SPEECH_OF_AN_INDIAN_TO_JOHN_ELIOT">SPEECH OF AN INDIAN TO JOHN ELIOT.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The following instance is very expressive of
-the fine use the Indians make of simple and
-natural images:—the speaker was dressed in a
-robe of several marten-skins sewed together;
-it was fastened to his right shoulder, and passed
-under his left arm: he wrapped himself up in
-this robe, and said—</p>
-
-<p>“My heart laughs for joy on seeing myself
-before thee: we have all of us heard the word
-which thou hast sent us. How beautiful is the
-sun to-day! but lately it was red and angry, for
-our hands were stained with blood; our tomahawks
-thirsted for it; our women howled for
-the loss of their relations; at the least shriek of
-the birds of night, all our warriors were on foot;
-the serpents angrily hissed at us, as we passed.
-Those we left behind sang the songs of death.</p>
-
-<p>“But now our whole nation laughs for joy to
-see us walk on the same road with thyself, to
-join the Father of spirits: our hearts shall make
-but one: come with us to the forests; come to
-our homes by the great river; we shall plant
-the tree of life, of which thou speakest, there,
-and our warriors shall rest beneath its leaves;
-and thou shalt tell us more of that land where
-there is no storm or death, and the sun is always<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_125"></a>[125]</span>
-bright. Will not that be good? What dost
-thou say to it, my father?”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="RELIGION_OF_THE_INDIANS1">RELIGION OF THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Of the religion of the Indians we have no
-full and clear account. Indeed, of the opinions
-of a people who have nothing more than a
-few vague and indefinite notions, no distinct
-explanation can be given. On this subject the
-Indians are not communicative; and to obtain
-a thorough knowledge of it would require
-familiar, attentive, unsuspected, and unprejudiced
-observation. But such observation is not
-easily made; and a few general, and on some
-points uncertain, notices only can be given.</p>
-
-<p>On looking at the most renowned nations of
-the ancient heathen world, we see the people
-prostrating themselves before innumerable divinities;
-and we are ready to conclude that
-polytheism is the natural belief of man, unenlightened
-by revelation. But a survey of the
-vast wilds of America will correct this opinion.
-For there we find a multitude of nations, widely
-separated from each other, all believing in One
-Supreme God, a great and good spirit, the father
-and master of life, the maker of heaven and
-earth, and of all other creatures. They believe
-themselves entirely dependent on him, thank
-him for present enjoyments, and pray to him for
-the good things they desire to obtain. They
-consider him the author of all good; and believe<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_126"></a>[126]</span>
-he will reward or punish them according to
-their deeds.</p>
-
-<p>They believe in inferior spirits also, both
-good and bad; to whom, particularly to the
-good, they give the name of <i>Manitou</i>, and
-consider them tutelary spirits. The Indians are
-careful observers of dreams, and think themselves
-deserted by the Master of life, till they
-receive a manitou in a dream; that is, till they
-dream of some object, as a buffalo or beaver, or
-something else, which they think is an intimation
-that the Great Spirit had given them that
-object as a manitou, or medicine. Then they
-are full of courage, and proud of their powerful
-ally. To propitiate the manitou, or medicine,
-every exertion is made, and every personal
-consideration sacrificed. “I was lately the
-proprietor of seventeen horses,” said a Mandan;
-“but I have offered them all to my medicine,
-and am now poor.” He had turned all these
-horses, which constituted the whole of his
-wealth, loose into the plain, committed them to
-his medicine, and abandoned them for ever.
-But, although they offer oblations to the manitous,
-they positively deny that they pay them
-any adoration, and affirm that they only worship
-the Great Spirit through them.</p>
-
-<p>They have no regular periodical time either
-of private or public religious worship. They
-have neither temples, altars, stated ministers of
-religion, nor regular sacrifices; for the jugglers
-are connected rather with the medical art than
-with religious services. The Indians in general,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_127"></a>[127]</span>
-like other ignorant people, are believers in
-witchcraft, and think many of their diseases
-proceed from the arts of sorcerers. These arts
-the jugglers pretend to counteract, as well as to
-cure natural diseases. They also pretend to
-predict the weather and to make rain; and
-much confidence is placed in their prognostications
-and their power.</p>
-
-<p>The devotional exercises of the Indians consist
-in singing, dancing, and performing various
-mystical ceremonies, which they believe efficacious
-in healing the sick, frustrating the designs
-of their enemies, and securing their own success.
-They often offer up to the Great Spirit a
-part of the game first taken in a hunting expedition,
-a part of the first produce of their fields,
-and a part of their food. At a feast, they first
-throw some of the broth, and then of the meat,
-into the fire. In smoking, they generally testify
-their reverence for the Master of life, by
-directing the first puff upwards, and the second
-downwards, or the first to the rising, and the
-second to the setting sun: at other times they
-turn the pipe to every point of the compass.</p>
-
-<p>They firmly believe in the immortality of the
-soul, and in a state of future retribution: but
-their conceptions on these subjects are modified
-and tinged by their occupations in life, and by
-their notions of good and evil. They suppose
-the spirit retains the same inclinations as when
-in the body, and rejoices in its old pursuits. At
-times, an Indian warrior, when about to kill<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_128"></a>[128]</span>
-and scalp a prostrate enemy, addresses him in
-such terms as the following:—</p>
-
-<p>“My name is Cashegra: I am a famous
-warrior, and am going to kill you. When you
-reach the land of spirits, you will see the ghost
-of my father: tell him it was Cashegra sent
-you there.” The uplifted tomahawk then descends
-upon his victim.</p>
-
-<p>The Mandans<a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> expected, when they died, to
-return to the original subterraneous abode of
-their fathers: the good reaching the ancient village
-by means of the lake, which the weight
-of the sins of the bad will render them unable
-to pass. They who have behaved themselves
-well in this life, and been brave warriors and
-good hunters, will be received into the town of
-brave and generous spirits; but the useless and
-selfish will be doomed to reside in the town of
-poor and useless spirits.</p>
-
-<p>The belief of those untutored children of nature
-has an influence on their conduct. Among
-them the grand defect is, an erroneous estimate
-of good and evil, right and wrong.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus21" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus21.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Destruction of the Pequots.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_129"></a>[129]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="DESTRUCTION_OF_THE_PEQUOTS_IN_1637">DESTRUCTION OF THE PEQUOTS IN 1637.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“An army of a hundred and sixty men,
-under the command of Captain Underhill, were
-despatched, and with them was Uncas, an
-Indian chief: when they landed from the river,
-they were joined by five hundred Narraganset
-Indians. We were now informed that the
-Indians had retired into two impregnable forts,
-one of which was the hold of Sassacus, the
-chief tyrant; that fierce tiger, at the very
-mention of whose name the Narragansets trembled,
-saying, “He was all one a God, nobody
-could kill him.” The council of war determined
-to fall first upon the fort which they could first
-find; and on their silent march in the moon-shiny
-night, an Indian spy brought them word
-that the Pequots were in a profound sleep. Our
-guide was one Wequash, an Indian revolted
-from them; and now the Narragansets retired
-into the wood, and behind the trees—they were
-overcome with fear. The English advanced
-against the nearest fort, when a dog, that stood
-sentinel like another Cerberus, barking, awoke
-them all; their cry, when they sprung from
-their sleep, was dreadful to hear in the silent
-night; and thereupon followed a bloody encounter;
-many were killed; but we set fire to
-their huts, and a high wind caused them to be
-quickly consumed; many of the Indians climbed
-to the tops of the palisadoes, and were a mark
-for the bullets; some of the trees also burning<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_130"></a>[130]</span>
-threw such a fiery light, that with the howlings,
-and cries also, the place was like the pit of
-torment. Samson was not in greater distress
-by thirst after his exploit upon the Philistines,
-than was the mighty Sassacus when his strong
-holds were thus burned, and his barbarians dismissed
-from a world that was burdened with
-them. The next day, as we were returning,
-three hundred of the enemy again came up,
-like bears bereaved of their young; they fought,
-and made a fort of every swamp in the way,
-covering their bodies with the green boughs
-and the long grass, so that we were sometimes
-in the very midst of them, and knew it not,
-save by the sudden yell and the volley.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus22" style="max-width: 31.25em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus22.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_131"></a>[131]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_COOLNESS">INDIAN COOLNESS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Sam Barrow was a famous warrior in Philip’s
-war, and for a long time dreaded as a ferocious
-enemy by the inhabitants. He was at length
-captured by Captain Church at Cape Cod.
-Church, in his history, says, that ‘he was as
-noted a rogue as any among the enemy.’
-Church told him that the government would
-not permit him to grant him quarter, because of
-his inhuman murders and barbarities, and
-therefore ordered him to prepare for execution.
-Barrow replied, that the sentence of death
-against him was just, and that indeed he was
-ashamed to live any longer, and desired no
-more favor than to smoke a whiff of tobacco
-before his execution. When he had taken a
-few whiffs, he said, ‘I am ready,’ when one of
-Church’s Indians, being prepared, sunk his
-hatchet into his brains.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus23" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus23.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_132"></a>[132]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_GREAT_MASSACRE_OF_VIRGINIA">THE GREAT MASSACRE OF VIRGINIA.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The peace which had subsisted since the
-marriage of Pocahontas had lulled the English
-into security, and disposed them to extend their
-plantations along the banks of the rivers, as far
-as the Potomac, in situations too remote from
-each other. Their houses were open and free
-to the natives, who became acquainted with
-their manner of living, their hours of eating, of
-labor and repose, the use of their arms and tools,
-and frequently borrowed their boats, for the
-convenience of fishing and fowling, and to pass
-the rivers. This familiarity was pleasing to the
-English, as it indicated a spirit of moderation,
-which had been always recommended, by the
-Company in England, to the planters; and, as
-it afforded a favourable symptom of the civilization
-and conversion of the natives; but by
-them, or their leaders, it was designed to conceal
-the most sanguinary intentions.</p>
-
-<p>In the spring of the next year, (1622) an
-opportunity offered, to throw off the mask of
-friendship, and kindle their secret enmity into a
-blaze. Among the natives who frequently
-visited the English, was a tall, handsome, young
-chief, renowned for courage and success in war,
-and excessively fond of finery in dress. His
-Indian name was Nematanow; but by the
-English he was called Jack of the Feather.
-Coming to the store of one Morgan, he there
-viewed several toys and ornaments, which were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_133"></a>[133]</span>
-very agreeable to the Indian taste; and persuaded
-Morgan to carry them to Pamunky,
-where he assured him of an advantageous
-traffic. Morgan consented to go with him; but
-was murdered by the way.</p>
-
-<p>In a few days, Nematanow came again to the
-store, with Morgan’s cap on his head; and
-being interrogated by two stout lads, who
-attended there, what was become of their
-master, he answered that he was dead. The
-boys seized him, and endeavoured to carry him
-before a magistrate; but his violent resistance,
-and the insolence of his language, so provoked
-them, that they shot him. The wound proved
-mortal; and when dying, he earnestly requested
-of the boys, that the manner of his death might
-be concealed from his countrymen, and that he
-might be privately buried among the English.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as this transaction was known, Opechancanough
-demanded satisfaction; but being
-answered that the retaliation was just, he formed
-a plan for a general massacre of the English,
-and appointed Friday, the twenty-second day
-of March, for its execution; but he dissembled
-his resentment to the last moment. Parties of
-Indians were distributed through the Colony, to
-attack every plantation, at the same hour of the
-day, when the men should be abroad and at
-work. On the evening before, and on the
-morning of that fatal day, the Indians came as
-usual to the houses of the English, bringing
-game and fish to sell, and sat down with them
-to breakfast. So general was the combination,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_134"></a>[134]</span>
-and so deep the plot, that about one hour before
-noon, they fell on the people in the fields and
-houses; and, with their own tools and weapons,
-killed, indiscriminately, persons of all ages,
-sexes and characters; inhumanly mangling their
-dead bodies, and triumphing over them, with all
-the expressions of frantic joy.</p>
-
-<p>Where any resistance was made, it was
-generally successful. Several houses were defended,
-and some few of the assailants slain.
-One of Captain Smith’s old soldiers, Nathaniel
-Causie, though wounded, split the skull of an
-Indian, and put his whole party to flight.
-Several other parties were dispersed by the
-firing of a single gun, or by the presenting of a
-gun, even in the hands of a woman.</p>
-
-<p>James-Town was preserved by the fidelity
-of Chanco, a young Indian convert, who lived
-with Richard Pace, and was treated by him as
-a son. The brother of this Indian came to lie
-with him, the night before the massacre, and revealed
-to him the plot, urging him to kill his
-master, as he intended to do by his own. As
-soon as he was gone in the morning, Chanco
-gave notice of what was intended, to his master;
-who, having secured his own house, gave the
-alarm to his neighbours, and sent an express to
-James-Town. Three hundred and forty-nine
-people fell in this general massacre; of which
-number, six were members of the Council.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_135"></a>[135]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="EXPLOIT_OF_CAPTAIN_STANDISH">EXPLOIT OF CAPTAIN STANDISH.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“The 23d of March (1623) being a yearly
-court day, we came to this conclusion; that
-Captain Standish should take as many men as
-he thought sufficient to make his party good,
-against all the Indians in the Massachusetts
-Bay; and because it is impossible to deal with
-them upon open defiance, but to take them in
-such traps as they lay for others; therefore that
-he should pretend trade, as at other times; but
-first go to the English, and acquaint them with
-the plot and the end of his own coming, that by
-comparing it with their carriage toward them,
-he might better judge of the certainty of it, and
-more fitly take opportunity to revenge the same;
-but should forbear, if it were possible, till such
-time as he could make sure of Wittuwamat, a
-bloody and bold villain, whose head he had
-orders to bring with him. Upon this, Captain
-Standish made choice of eight men, and would
-not take more, because he would prevent
-jealousy. On the next day, before he could go,
-came one of Weston’s company to us with a
-pack on his back, who made a pitiful narration
-of their lamentable and weak estate, and of the
-Indians’ carriage; whose boldness increased
-abundantly, insomuch as they would take the
-victuals out of their pots, and eat before their
-faces; yea, if in any thing they gainsayed them,
-they were ready to hold a knife at their breasts.
-He said that, to give them content, they had<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_136"></a>[136]</span>
-hanged one of the company, who had stolen
-their corn, and yet they regarded it not; that
-another of them had turned savage; that their
-people had mostly forsaken the town, and made
-their rendezvous where they got their victuals,
-because they would not take pains to bring it
-home; that they had sold their clothes for corn,
-and were ready to perish with hunger and cold,
-and that they were dispersed into three companies,
-having scarcely any powder and shot.
-As this relation was grievous to us, so it gave
-us good encouragement to proceed; and the
-wind coming fair the next day, March 25th,
-Captain Standish being now fitted, set forth for
-Massachusetts.</p>
-
-<p>“The Captain being come to Massachusetts,
-went first to the ship, but found neither man nor
-dog therein. On the discharge of a musket, the
-Master and some others shewed themselves,
-who were on shore gathering ground-nuts and
-other food. After salutation, Captain Standish
-asked them how they durst so leave the ship,
-and live in such security? they answered, like
-men senseless of their own misery, that they
-feared not the Indians, but lived and suffered
-them to lodge with them, not having sword nor
-gun, nor needing the same. To which the
-Captain replied, that if there were no cause, he
-was glad. But upon further inquiry, understanding
-that those in whom John Sanders had
-reposed most confidence were at the plantation,
-thither he went, and made known the Indians’
-purpose, and the end of his own coming; and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_137"></a>[137]</span>
-told them that if they durst not stay there, it
-was the intention of the Governor and people
-of Plymouth, to receive them, till they could be
-better provided for. These men answered that
-they could expect no better, and it was of God’s
-mercy that they were not killed before his
-coming, desiring that he would neglect no
-opportunity to proceed; hereupon he advised
-them to secrecy and to order one third of their
-company that were farthest off to come home,
-and on pain of death to keep there, himself
-allowing them a pint of Indian corn, to a man,
-for a day, though that was spared out of our
-feed. The weather proving very wet and
-stormy, it was the longer before he could do
-any thing.</p>
-
-<p>“In the mean time an Indian came to him
-and brought some furs, but rather to get what
-he could from the Captain than to trade; and
-though the Captain carried things as smoothly
-as he could, yet, at his return, the Indian reported
-that he saw by his eyes that he was
-angry in his heart, and therefore began to suspect
-themselves discovered. This caused one
-Pecksuot, who was a Pinese (chief) being a man
-of a notable spirit to come to Hobamock
-(Standish’s Indian guide and interpreter) and
-tell him that he understood the Captain was
-come to kill himself and the rest of the savages
-there: ‘Tell him, said he, we know it, but fear
-him not, neither will we shun him; but let him
-begin when he dare, he shall not take us at
-unawares.’ Many times after, divers of them,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_138"></a>[138]</span>
-severally or a few together, came to the plantation,
-where they would whet and sharpen the
-point of their knives before his face, and use
-many other insulting gestures and speeches.
-Among the rest, Wittuwamat bragged of the
-excellency of his knife, on the handle of which
-was pictured a woman’s face. ‘But, said he,
-I have another at home, wherewith I have
-killed both French and English, and that hath a
-man’s face on it, and by and by, these two must
-be married.’ Further he said of that knife
-which he there had, <i>Hinnaim namen, binnaim
-michen, matta cuts</i>, that is to say, <i>by and by
-it should see, by and by it should eat, but not
-speak</i>. Also Pecksuot being a man of greater
-stature than the Captain, told him ‘though you
-are a great Captain, yet you are but a little
-man; though I be no Sachem, yet I am a man
-of great strength and courage.’ These things
-the Captain observed, but, for the present, bore
-them with patience.</p>
-
-<p>“On the next day, seeing he could not get
-many of them together at once, but Pecksuot
-and Wittuwamat being together, with another
-man and the brother of Wittuwamat a youth
-of eighteen, putting many tricks on the weaker
-sort of men, and having about as many of his
-own men in the same room, the Captain gave
-the word to his men; and the door being fast
-shut, he begun himself with Pecksuot and
-snatching the knife from his neck, after much
-struggling killed him therewith; the rest killed
-Wittuwamat and the other man; the youth<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_139"></a>[139]</span>
-they took and hanged. It is incredible, how
-many wounds these men received, before they
-died, not making any fearful noise, but catching
-at their weapons, and striving to the last. Hobamock
-stood by as a spectator, observing how
-our men demeaned themselves in the action;
-which being ended, he, smiling, brake forth and
-said, ‘Yesterday Pecksuot bragged of his own
-strength and stature, and told you that though
-you were a great Captain, yet you were but a
-little man; but, to-day, I see you are big enough
-to lay him on the ground.’</p>
-
-<p>“There being some women, at the same time
-there, Captain Standish left them, in the custody
-of Weston’s people, at the town; and sent word
-to another company, to kill those Indian men
-that were among them. These killed two more;
-himself with some of his own men, went to
-another place and killed another; but through
-the negligence of one man, an Indian escaped,
-who discovered and crossed their proceedings.</p>
-
-<p>“Captain Standish took one half of his men
-with one or two of Weston’s and Hobamock,
-still seeking them. At length they espied a file
-of Indians, making toward them; and, there
-being a small advantage in the ground, by
-reason of a hill, both companies strove for it.
-Captain Standish got it; whereupon the Indians
-retreated, and took each man his tree, letting
-fly their arrows amain, especially at himself and
-Hobamock. Whereupon Hobamock cast off
-his coat, and chased them so fast, that our
-people were not able to hold way with him.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_140"></a>[140]</span>
-They could have but one certain mark, the arm
-and half the face of a notable villain, as he
-drew his bow at Captain Standish, who with
-another, both discharged at him, and brake his
-arm. Whereupon, they fled into a swamp;
-when they were in the thicket, they parlied but
-got nothing but foul language. So our Captain
-dared the Sachem to come out and fight like a
-man, showing how base and woman-like he
-was, in tonguing it as he did; but he refused
-and fled. So the Captain returned to the plantation;
-where he released the women and took
-not their beaver coats from them, nor suffered
-the least discourtesy to be offered them.</p>
-
-<p>“Now were Weston’s people resolved to
-leave the plantation, and go to Monhegan,
-hoping to get passage and return to England
-with the fishing ships. The Captain told them,
-that for his own part, he durst live there with
-fewer men than they were; yet since they were
-otherwise minded, according to his orders from
-the Governor and people of Plymouth, he would
-help them with corn, which he did, scarce
-leaving himself more than brought them home.
-Some of them disliked to go to Monhegan;
-and desiring to go with him to Plymouth, he
-took them into the shallop; and seeing the
-others set sail, and clear of Massachusetts Bay,
-he took leave and returned to Plymouth, bringing
-the head of Wittuwamat, which was set
-up on the fort.</p>
-
-<p>“This sudden and unexpected execution,
-hath so terrified and amazed the other people<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_141"></a>[141]</span>
-who intended to join with the Massachusencks
-against us, that they forsook their houses,
-running to and fro like men distracted; living
-in swamps, and other desert places, and so
-brought diseases upon themselves, whereof
-many are dead; as Canacum, Sachem of Manomet;
-Aspinet, of Nauset; and Ianough, of
-Matachiest. This Sachem, (Ianough) in the
-midst of these distractions, said, ‘the God of
-the English was offended with them, and would
-destroy them in his anger.’ From one of
-these places, a boat was sent with presents to
-the Governor, hoping thereby to work their
-peace; but the boat was lost, and three of the
-people drowned; only one escaped, who returned;
-so that none of them durst come
-among us.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus24" style="max-width: 31.25em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus24.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_142"></a>[142]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="SINGULAR_EXPEDIENT_OF_COLUMBUS">SINGULAR EXPEDIENT OF COLUMBUS</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In one of his later voyages at sea he met
-with tempestuous weather of long continuance,
-in which his ships were so shattered, that with
-the utmost difficulty he kept them above water,
-till he ran them ashore on the island of Jamaica.
-By his extraordinary address, he procured
-from the natives two of their largest canoes;
-in which two of his most faithful friends,
-Mendez and Fiesco, accompanied by some of
-his sailors and a few Indians, embarked for
-Hispaniola. After encountering the greatest
-difficulties in their passage, they carried tidings
-of his misfortune to Ovando, and solicited his
-aid. The merciless wretch detained them eight
-months, without an answer; during which
-time, Columbus suffered the severest hardships,
-from the discontent of his company, and the
-want of provisions. By the hospitality of the
-natives, he at first received such supplies, as
-they were able to spare; but the long continuance
-of these guests had diminished their store,
-and the insolence of the mutineers gave a check
-to their friendship. In this extremity, the fertile
-invention of Columbus suggested an expedient
-which proved successful. He knew that
-a total eclipse of the moon was at hand, which
-would be visible in the evening. On the preceding
-day, he sent for the principal Indians, to
-speak with them, on a matter of the utmost importance.
-Being assembled, he directed his interpreter<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_143"></a>[143]</span>
-to tell them, that the God of heaven,
-whom he worshipped, was angry with them,
-for withholding provision from him, and would
-punish them with famine and pestilence; as a
-token of which, the moon would, in the evening,
-appear of an angry and bloody colour.
-Some of them received his speech with terror,
-and others with indifference; but when the
-moon rose, and the eclipse increased as she advanced
-from the horizon, they came in crowds,
-loaded with provision, and begged the Admiral
-to intercede with his God, for the removal of
-his anger. Columbus retired to his cabin; and
-when the eclipse began to go off, he came out
-and told them, that he had prayed to his God,
-and had received this answer; that if they
-would be good for the future, and bring him
-provision as he should want, God would forgive
-them; and as a token of it, the moon
-would put on her usual brightness. They gave
-him thanks, and promised compliance; and
-whilst he remained on the island there was no
-more want of provision.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus25" style="max-width: 31.25em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus25.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_144"></a>[144]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="ADVENTURES_OF_JAMES_CARTIER_IN_CANADA">ADVENTURES OF JAMES CARTIER IN CANADA.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>After spending some time in exploring the
-northern coast, to find an opening to the northward;
-in the beginning of September, 1535, he
-sailed up the river St. Lawrence and discovered
-several islands; one of which, from the multitude
-of filberts, he called Coudres; and another,
-from the vast quantity of grapes, he
-named Bacchus, (now Orleans.) This island
-was full of inhabitants who subsisted by fishing.</p>
-
-<p>When the ships had come to anchor between
-the N. W. side of the island and the main, Cartier
-went on shore with his two young Savages.
-The people of the country were at first afraid
-of them; but hearing the youths speak to them
-in their own language, they became sociable,
-and brought eels and other fish, with a quantity
-of Indian corn in ears, for the refreshment
-of their new guests; in return for which, they
-were presented with such European baubles as
-were pleasing to them.</p>
-
-<p>The next day, Donacona, the prince of the
-place, came to visit them, attended by twelve
-boats; but, keeping ten of them at a distance,
-he approached with two only, containing sixteen
-men. In the true spirit of hospitality, he
-made a speech, accompanied with significant
-gestures, welcoming the French to his country
-and offering his service to them. The young
-savages, Taignoagni and Domagaia answered
-him, reporting all which they had seen in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_145"></a>[145]</span>
-France, at which he appeared to be pleased.
-Then approaching the Captain, who held out
-his hand, he kissed it, and laid it round his own
-neck, in token of friendship. Cartier, on his
-part, entertained Donacona with bread and
-wine, and they parted mutually pleased.</p>
-
-<p>The next day Cartier went up in his boat to
-find a harbour for his ships; the season being
-so far advanced that it became necessary to secure
-them. At the west end of the isle of
-Bacchus, he found “a goodly and pleasant
-sound, where is a little river and haven; about
-three fathom deep at high water.” To this he
-gave the name of St. Croix, and determined
-there to lay up his ships.</p>
-
-<p>Near this place was a village called Stadacona,
-of which Donacona was the Lord. It
-was environed with forest trees, some of which
-bore fruit; and under the trees, was a growth
-of wild hemp. As Cartier was returning to his
-ships, he had another specimen of the hospitable
-manners of the natives. A company of
-people, of both sexes, met him on the shore of
-the little river, singing and dancing up to their
-knees in water. In return for their courtesy,
-he gave them knives and beads; and they continued
-their music till he was beyond hearing it.</p>
-
-<p>When Cartier had brought his ships to the
-harbour and secured them, he intimated his intention
-to pass in his boats up the river to Hochelaga.
-Donacona was loath to part with
-him; and invented several artifices to prevent
-his going thither. Among others, he contrived<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_146"></a>[146]</span>
-to dress three of his men in black and white
-skins, with horns on their heads, and their faces
-besmeared with coal, to make them resemble
-infernal spirits. They were put into a canoe
-and passed by the ships; brandishing their
-horns and making an unintelligible harangue.
-Donacona, with his people, pursued and took
-them, on which they fell down as if dead.
-They were carried ashore into the woods, and
-all the savages followed them. A long discourse
-ensued, and the conclusion of the farce
-was, that these demons had brought news from
-the God of Hochelaga, that his country was so
-full of snow and ice, that whoever should adventure
-thither would perish with the cold.
-The artifice afforded diversion to the French,
-but was too thin to deceive them. Cartier determined
-to proceed; and on the 19th of September,
-with his pinnace and two boats, began
-his voyage up the river to Hochelaga.</p>
-
-<p>Among the woods on the margin of the river
-were many vines loaded with ripe grapes, than
-which nothing could be a more welcome sight
-to Frenchmen, though the fruit was not so delicious
-as they had been used to taste in their
-own country. Along the banks were many
-huts of the natives; who made signs of joy as
-they passed; presented them with fish; piloted
-them through narrow channels; carried them
-ashore on their backs, and helped them to get
-off their boats when aground. Some presented
-their children to them, and such as were of
-proper age were accepted.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_147"></a>[147]</span></p>
-
-<p>The water at that time of the year being
-low, their passage was rendered difficult; but
-by the friendly assistance of the natives they
-surmounted the obstructions. On the 28th of
-September they passed the rapids between the
-islands in the upper part of the lake Angoleme,
-(now called St. Peter’s) and on the second
-of October they arrived at the island of Hochelaga;
-where they had been expected, and
-preparations were made to give them a welcome
-reception. About a thousand persons
-came to meet them, singing and dancing, the
-men on one side, the women on the other, and
-the children in a distinct body. Presents of
-fish and other victuals were brought, and in return
-were given knives, beads and other trinkets.
-The Frenchmen lodged the first night in
-their boats, and the natives watched on the
-shore, dancing round their fires during the
-whole night.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning Cartier, with twenty-five
-of his company, went to visit the town, and
-were met on the way by a person of distinction,
-who bade them welcome. To him they gave
-two hatchets and two knives, and hung over
-his neck a cross which they taught him to kiss.
-As they proceeded, they passed through groves
-of oak, from which the acorns were fallen and
-lay thick on the ground. After this they came
-to fields of ripe corn, some of which was gathered.
-In the midst of these fields was situate
-the town of Hochelaga.</p>
-
-<p>It was of a round form, encompassed with<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_148"></a>[148]</span>
-three lines of palisades, through which was
-one entrance, well secured with stakes and bars.
-On the inside was a rampart of timber, to
-which were ascents by ladders, and heaps of
-stones were laid in proper places for defence.
-In the town were about fifty long huts built
-with stakes and covered with bark. In the
-middle of each hut was a fire, round which
-were lodging places, floored with bark and
-covered with skins. In the upper part was a
-scaffold, on which they dried and preserved
-their corn. To prepare it for eating, they
-pounded it in wooden mortars, and having
-mixed it with water, baked it on hot stones.
-Besides corn they had beans, squashes and
-pumpkins. They dried their fish and preserved
-them in troughs. These people lived chiefly
-by tillage and fishing, and seldom went far
-from home. Those on the lower parts of the
-river were more given to hunting, and considered
-the Lord of Hochelaga as their sovereign,
-to whom they paid tribute.</p>
-
-<p>When the new guests were conducted to an
-open square in the centre of the town, the females
-came to them, rubbing their hands and
-faces, weeping with joy at their arrival, and
-bringing their children to be touched by the
-strangers. They spread mats for them on the
-ground, whilst the men seated themselves in a
-large circle on the outside. The King was then
-brought in a litter, on the shoulders of ten men,
-and placed on a mat next to the French Captain.
-He was about fifty years old, and had no<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_149"></a>[149]</span>
-mark of distinction but a coronet made of porcupine’s
-quills dyed red; which he took off
-and gave to the Captain, requesting him to rub
-his arms and legs which were trembling with a
-palsy. Several persons, blind, lame, and withered
-with age, were also brought to be touched;
-as if they supposed that their new guests were
-messengers from heaven invested with a power
-of healing diseases. Cartier gratified them as
-well as he could, by laying his hands on them
-and repeating some devotional passages from a
-service book, which he had in his pocket; accompanying
-his ejaculations with significant
-gestures, and lifting up his eyes to heaven. The
-natives attentively observed and imitated all his
-motions.</p>
-
-<p>Having performed this ceremony, he desired
-men, women and children to arrange themselves
-in separate bodies. To the men he gave
-hatchets, to the women beads, and to the children
-rings. He then ordered his drums and
-trumpets to sound, which highly pleased the
-company and set them to dancing.</p>
-
-<p>Being desirous of ascending the hill, under
-which the town was built, the natives conducted
-them to the summit; where they were
-entertained with a most extensive and beautiful
-prospect of mountains, woods, islands and waters.
-They observed the course of the river
-above, and some falls of water in it; and the
-natives informed them that they might sail on
-it for three months; that it ran through two or
-three great lakes, beyond which was a sea of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_150"></a>[150]</span>
-fresh water, to which they knew of no bounds;
-and that on the other side of the mountains
-there was another river which ran in a contrary
-direction to the south-west, through a country
-full of delicious fruits and free from snow and
-ice; that there was found such metal as the
-Captain’s <i>silver</i> whistle and the haft of a dagger
-belonging to one of the company which
-was gilt with <i>gold</i>. Being shown some copper,
-they pointed to the northward, and said it
-came from Saguenay. To this hill Cartier gave
-the name of <i>Montreal</i>, which it has ever since
-retained.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus26" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus26.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_151"></a>[151]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="MILLY_FRANCIS">MILLY FRANCIS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Duncan M’Krimmon, (a resident of Milledgeville,
-a Georgia militia man, stationed at Fort
-Gadsden,) being out one morning on a fishing
-excursion, in attempting to return, missed his
-way, and was several days lost in the surrounding
-wilderness. After wandering about in
-various directions he was espied and captured
-by a party of hostile Indians, headed by the
-well known prophet Francis. The Indians
-having obtained the satisfaction they wanted
-respecting the determination of government, the
-position of the American army, &amp;c. they began
-to prepare for the intended sacrifice. M’Krimmon
-was bound to a stake, and the ruthless
-savages having shaved his head and reduced
-his body to a state of nudity, formed themselves
-into a circle and danced round him some hours,
-yelling most horribly. The youngest daughter
-of the prophet, about fifteen years of age, remained
-sad and silent the whole time. She
-participated not in the general joy, but was
-evidently, even to the affrighted prisoner, much
-pained at the savage scene she was compelled
-to witness. When the burning torches were
-about to be applied to the fagots which encompassed
-the prisoner, and the fatal tomahawk
-was raised to terminate forever his mortal
-existence, Milly Francis, (for that was her
-name,) like an angel of mercy, placed herself
-between it and death, resolutely bidding the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_152"></a>[152]</span>
-astonished executioner, if he thirsted for human
-blood, to shed hers; being determined, she said,
-not to survive the prisoner’s death. A momentary
-pause was produced by this unexpected
-occurrence, and she took advantage of the
-circumstance to implore upon her knees the pity
-of the ferocious father, who finally yielded to
-her wishes; with the intention, however, it is
-suspected, of murdering them both, if he could
-not sell M’Krimmon to the Spaniards; which
-was luckily effected a few days after at St.
-Marks, for seven gallons and a half of rum.
-As long as M’Krimmon remained a prisoner
-his benefactress continued to show him acts of
-kindness. The fortune of war since placed her
-in the power of the white people, being compelled,
-with a number of others of her tribe
-who were in a starving condition, to surrender
-themselves prisoners. As soon as this fact was
-known to M’Krimmon, in manifestation of a
-due sense of the obligation which he owed to
-the woman who saved his life, at the hazard of
-her own, he sought her to alleviate her misfortune,
-and to offer her marriage; but Milly would
-not consent to become his wife as a consideration
-of having saved his life, declaring that she did
-no more than her duty, and that her intercessions
-were the same as they would ever have been
-on similar occasions.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_153"></a>[153]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="ADVENTURES_OF_SIMON_BUTLER_AMONG_THE_INDIANS">ADVENTURES OF SIMON BUTLER AMONG THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Simon Kenton, <i>alias</i> Butler, from humble
-beginnings, made himself conspicuous by distinguished
-services and achievements, in the
-first settlement of this country, and ought to be
-recorded as one of the patriarchs of Kentucky.
-He was born in Virginia, in 1753. He grew to
-maturity without being able to read or write;
-but from his early exploits, he seems to have
-been endowed with feelings, which the educated,
-and those born in the upper walks of
-life appear to suppose a monopoly reserved for
-themselves. It is recorded of him, that at the
-age of nineteen he had a violent contest with
-another competitor for the favour of the lady
-of his love. She refused to make an election
-between them; and the subject of this notice
-indignantly exiled himself from his native
-place. After various peregrinations on the long
-rivers of the west, he fixed himself in Kentucky,
-and soon became a distinguished partizan
-against the savages. In 1774, he joined
-himself to Lord Dunmore, and was appointed
-one of his spies. He made various excursions,
-and performed important services in this employ.
-He finally selected a place for improvement
-on the site where Washington now is.
-Returning one day from hunting, he found one
-of his companions slain by the Indians, and his
-body thrown into the fire. He left Washington<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_154"></a>[154]</span>
-in consequence, and joined himself to Colonel
-Clark in his fortunate and gallant expedition
-against Vincennes and Kaskaskia. He was
-sent by that commander with despatches for
-Kentucky. He passed through the streets of
-Vincennes, then in possession of the British
-and Indians, without discovery. Arriving at
-White river, he and his party made a raft, on
-which to cross with their guns and baggage,
-driving their horses into the river, and compelling
-them to swim it. A party of Indians
-was concealed on the opposite bank, who took
-possession of the horses as they mounted the
-bank, after crossing the river. Butler and his
-company seeing this, continued to float down
-the river on their raft, without coming to land.
-They concealed themselves in the bushes until
-night, when they crossed the river, pursued
-their journey, and delivered their despatches.</p>
-
-<p>After this, Butler made a journey of discovery
-to the northern regions of the Ohio
-country, and was made prisoner by the Indians.
-They painted him black, as is their custom,
-when a victim is devoted to torture; and
-informed him that he was destined to be burned
-at Chillicothe. Meanwhile, for their own amusement,
-and as a prelude to his torture, they manacled
-him hand and foot, placed him on an
-unbridled and unbroken horse, and turned the
-animal loose, driving it off at its utmost speed,
-with shouts, delighted with witnessing its mode
-of managing under its living burden. The
-horse, unable to shake off this new and strange<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_155"></a>[155]</span>
-incumbrance, made for the thickest covert of
-woods and brambles, with the speed of the
-winds. It is easy to conjecture the position and
-sufferings of the victim. The terrified animal
-exhausted itself in fruitless efforts to shake off
-its load, and worn down and subdued, brought
-Butler back to the camp amidst the exulting
-yells of the savages.</p>
-
-<p>Having arrived within a mile of Chillicothe,
-they halted, took Butler from his horse, and
-tied him to a stake, where he remained twenty-four
-hours in one position. He was taken from
-the stake to ‘run the gauntlet.’ The Indian
-mode of managing this kind of torture was as
-follows: The inhabitants of the tribe, old and
-young, were placed in parallel lines, armed
-with clubs and switches. The victim was to
-make his way to the council house, through
-these files, every member of which struggled to
-beat him, as he passed, as severely as possible.
-If he reached the council house alive, he was
-to be spared. In the lines were nearly six
-hundred Indians, and Butler had to make his
-way almost a mile in the endurance of this infernal
-sport. He was started by a blow; but
-soon broke through the files, and had almost
-reached the council house, when a stout warrior
-knocked him down with a club. He was
-severely beaten in this position, and taken back
-again into custody.</p>
-
-<p>It seems incredible, that they sometimes rescued
-their prisoners from these tortures, adopted
-them, and treated them with the utmost lenity<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_156"></a>[156]</span>
-and even kindness. At other times, ingenuity
-was exhausted to invent tortures, and every renewed
-endurance of the victim seemed to stimulate
-their vengeance to new discoveries of
-cruelty. Butler was one of these ill-fated subjects.
-No way satisfied with what they had
-done, they marched him from village to village,
-to give all a spectacle of his sufferings. He ran
-the gauntlet thirteen times. He made various
-attempts to escape; and in one instance would
-have effected it, had he not been arrested by
-some savages who were accidentally returning
-to the village from which he was escaping. It
-was finally determined to burn him at the lower
-Sandusky, but an apparent accident changed
-his destiny.</p>
-
-<p>In passing to the stake, the procession went
-by the cabin of Simon Girty, who had just returned
-from an unsuccessful expedition to the
-frontiers of Pennsylvania. The wretch burned
-with disappointment and revenge; and hearing
-that there was a white man going to the torture,
-determined to wreak his vengeance on
-him. He found the unfortunate Butler, threw
-him to the ground, and began to beat him.
-Butler, who instantly recognized in Girty a former
-companion of his youth, made himself
-known to him. His savage heart relented. He
-raised him up, and promised to use his influence
-to save him. Girty had a council called,
-and he moved the savages to give Butler up to
-him. He took the unfortunate man home, fed,
-and clothed him, and Butler began to recruit<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_157"></a>[157]</span>
-from his wounds and torture. But the relenting
-of the savages in his favour was only momentary.
-After five days, they repented of
-their relaxation in his favour, reclaimed him,
-and marched him to Lower Sandusky to be
-burned, according to their original purpose. By
-a surprising coincidence, he there met the Indian
-agent from Detroit, who from motives of
-humanity, exerted his influence with the savages
-for his release, and took him with him to
-Detroit. Here he was paroled by the governor.
-He escaped, and by a march of thirty days
-through the wilderness, reached Kentucky.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus27" style="max-width: 31.25em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus27.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_158"></a>[158]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INGENUITY_IN_TORTURE">INGENUITY IN TORTURE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>An instance of the keenness of Indian ingenuity,
-in the invention of original modes of
-torture, is given in Flint’s Indian Wars. The
-Indians captured a young man of the name of
-Moses Hewitt, who lived on the Little Hock
-hocking, and was a member of the Marietta
-settlement. He was remarkable for the suppleness
-of his limbs, and the swiftness of his
-running. The Indians tested him with their
-champion racers, and, although he could not
-have run with much spirit, under his depressing
-circumstances, he easily vanquished them all in
-swiftness. They affected to be pleased, but
-their envy was piqued. They were destitute
-of provisions, and wished to secure their swift-footed
-prisoner, while they were occupied in
-their hunt. With this view, and probably to
-torture him at the same time, they fastened his
-wrists by crossing them, and binding them
-firmly with a cord. They then tied his arms to
-a stake, so as partly to raise the upper part of
-his body. They fastened his legs in the same
-way, and partly cut off a young sapling, bending
-it down, so that the weight of the lower
-part of his body would be a counterpoise to the
-elastic force of the curved tree. Thus was he
-partially raised by his hands and feet, in a way
-most horribly painful; and yet in a position
-where death would be slow in arriving to his
-release. It was like the torture of killing by<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_159"></a>[159]</span>
-dropping water on the head. Fortunately the
-young man had remarkably slender wrist bones.
-When left alone to meditate upon his terrible
-situation, he contrived, not without disengaging
-the skin and flesh from his wrists, to disentangle
-his arms from their manacles, and finally his
-legs. He picked up a little of the scraps of
-jerked meat, which the Indians had left. To
-baffle their pursuit and that of their dogs, he
-ran on the bodies of fallen trees, and meandered
-his course in every direction. Such was the
-adroitness of his management, that he put them
-completely at fault, escaped them, and came in
-to the settlement of Marietta, wounded, his
-flesh torn and mangled, and emaciated to a
-skeleton—a living proof how much man can
-survive before he suffers the mortal pang. He
-had been absent fourteen days.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus28" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus28.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_160"></a>[160]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="OSCEOLA">OSCEOLA.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>On one occasion, Osceola acted as guide to a
-party of horsemen, and finding that, at starting,
-they proceeded slowly, he enquired the cause.
-On being told that it was on his account, with
-one of those smiles he alone can give, he bade
-them proceed more rapidly. They put spurs to
-their steeds, and he, a-foot, kept up with them
-during the entire route, nor did he exhibit the
-slightest symptoms of fatigue, at the close of
-day, but arrived at the point proposed, as early
-as the mounted body. To Col. Gadsden, sole
-Commissioner at the Treaty of Payne’s Landing,
-Osceola rendered good service, at the head of
-thirty or forty warriors, posting himself nearer
-to the Colonel’s position than the other Indians,
-and saying, he was more like the white man
-than they. He did not sign the treaty then and
-there made, nor did he refuse so to do. The
-fact is, he was never asked to subscribe his
-name thereto, being at that time, but a Tustenugge
-and of little note. This treaty must not
-be confounded with the subsequent agreement
-that Osceola finally signed, and into which he
-is said to have plunged his knife, when called
-on for his signature. The negotiations at
-Payne’s landing were in the time of Tuckasee
-Emathla, or the Ground Mole Warrior, Chief
-of the Micasuky tribe. At that date it was not
-known of Powell, as Cotton Mather says of
-Roger Williams, that “the whole country was
-soon like to be set on fire by the rapid motion
-of a wind mill in the head of this one man.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_161"></a>[161]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="GRATITUDE_OF_OSCEOLA">GRATITUDE OF OSCEOLA.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Osceola’s agency, and that of his Lieutenant
-Tom, in Omathla’s death, and his killing Gen.
-Thompson, with the rifle presented him by the
-General, militate against the favourable estimate
-of his character. But that all his goodly
-feelings were not utterly eradicated, is proven
-by an incident, in the interview with Gen.
-Gaines’ command. On that occasion, Osceola
-anxiously inquired after Lieut. John Grahame,
-and on being informed that he was wounded,
-stoutly denied it. On being asked why he was
-so positive that Lieut. G. was unhurt, he replied
-that he had imperatively ordered his people
-never to molest that young man, and he knew
-no one who would dare disobey him; none
-should, and live! It was then admitted, that
-though the brothers, Grahame, had been wounded,
-yet Lt. G. had escaped injury; at which
-admission Osceola greatly joyed. It seems that
-Powell has a little daughter, to whom Lt. G.
-was kind, and had presented with frocks, in
-which the young girl, who grew very fond of
-him, always insisted on being dressed, whenever
-she perceived Lieut. G. (for whom she often
-looked out) coming to visit her. Osceola’s
-motive in sparing Lieut. G. was gratitude for
-attention to his child, which he also endeavored
-to repay by teaching the Lieut. the Indian
-language, for he spoke a little English, and was
-very intelligent.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_162"></a>[162]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_CROWNING_OF_POWHATAN">THE CROWNING OF POWHATAN.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The Virginia company in London, deceived
-by false reports, and misled by their own sanguine
-imaginations, had conceived an expectation
-not only of finding precious metals in the
-country, but of discovering the South Sea, from
-the mountains at the head of James-river; and
-it was thought, that the journey thither, might
-be performed in eight or ten days. For the
-purpose of making this capital discovery, they
-put on board Newport’s ship, a barge capable
-of being taken to pieces, and put together again
-at pleasure. This barge was to make a voyage
-to the head of the river, then to be carried in
-pieces across the mountains, and to descend the
-rivers which were supposed to run westward
-to the South Sea. To facilitate this plan, it was
-necessary to gain the favour of Powhatan,
-through whose country the passage must be
-made; and as means of winning him, a royal
-present was brought over, consisting of a bason
-and ewer, a bed and furniture, a chair of state,
-a suit of scarlet clothes, with a cloak and a
-crown, all which were to be presented to him
-in due form; and the crown placed on his head,
-with as much solemnity as possible. To a
-person who knew the country and its inhabitants
-so well as Smith, this project appeared chimerical,
-and the means whereby it was to be carried
-on, dangerous. With a small quantity of
-copper and a few beads, he could have kept<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_163"></a>[163]</span>
-Powhatan in good humour, and made an advantage
-of it for the colony, whereas a profusion
-of presents he knew would but increase his
-pride and insolence. The project of travelling
-over unknown mountains with men already
-weakened by sickness, and worn out with
-fatigue, in a hot climate, and in the midst of
-enemies, who might easily cut off their retreat,
-was too romantic even for his sanguine and adventurous
-spirit. His opinion upon the matter
-cannot be expressed in more pointed language,
-than he used in a letter to the company. “If
-the quartered boat was burned to ashes, <i>one</i>
-might carry her in a bag, but as she is, five
-hundred cannot, to a navigable place above the
-falls.” His dissent however was ineffectual,
-and when he found that the voice of the council
-was for executing it, he lent his assistance to
-effect as much of it as was practicable.</p>
-
-<p>Previously to their setting out, he undertook,
-with four men only, to carry notice to Powhatan
-of the intended present, and invite him to come
-to James-Town, that he might receive it there.
-Having travelled by land twelve miles to Werocomoco,
-on Pamunky (York) river, where he
-expected to meet Powhatan, and not finding
-him there, whilst a messenger was dispatched
-thirty miles for him; his daughter Pocahontas,
-entertained Smith and his company with a
-dance, which for its singularity, merits a particular
-description.</p>
-
-<p>In an open plain, a fire being made, the
-gentlemen were seated by it. Suddenly a noise<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_164"></a>[164]</span>
-was heard in the adjacent wood, which made
-them fly to their arms, and seize on two or
-three old men, as hostages for their own security,
-imagining that they were betrayed. Upon this
-the young princess came running to Smith, and
-passionately embracing him, offered herself to
-be killed, if any harm should happen to him
-or his company. Her assurances, seconded by
-all the Indians present, removed their fears.
-The noise which had alarmed them, was made
-by thirty girls, who were preparing for the intended
-ceremony. Immediately they made
-their appearance, with no other covering than a
-girdle of green leaves and their skins painted,
-each one of a different colour. Their leader
-had a pair of buck’s horns on her head, an
-otter’s skin as her girdle, and another on one
-arm; a bow and arrow in the other hand, and
-a quiver at her back. The rest of them had
-horns on their heads, and a wooden sword or
-staff in their hands. With shouting and singing,
-they formed a ring round the fire, and performed
-a circular dance for about an hour, after which
-they retired in the same order as they had advanced.
-The dance was followed by a feast,
-at which the savage nymphs were as eager with
-their caresses as with their attendance; and this
-being ended, they conducted the gentlemen to
-their lodging by the light of fire brands.</p>
-
-<p>The next day Powhatan arrived, and Smith
-delivered the message from his father, Newport
-(as he always called him) to this effect. “That
-he had brought him from the King of England,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_165"></a>[165]</span>
-a royal present, and wished to see him at James-Town,
-that he might deliver it to him; promising
-to assist him in prosecuting his revenge
-against the Monacans, whose country they
-would penetrate even to the sea beyond the
-mountains.” To which the savage prince with
-equal subtility and haughtiness, answered, “If
-your King has sent me a present, I also am a
-King, and am on my own land. I will stay
-here eight days. Your father must come to me,
-I will not go to him, nor to your fort. As for
-the Monacans, I am able to revenge myself.
-If you have heard of salt water beyond the
-mountains, from any of my people, they have
-deceived you.” Then with a stick he drew a
-plan of that region on the ground; and after
-many compliments the conference ended.</p>
-
-<p>The present being put on board the boats,
-was carried down James-river and up the Pamunky,
-whilst Newport, with fifty men, went
-across by land and met the boats, in which he
-passed the river, and held the proposed interview.
-All things being prepared for the ceremony
-of coronation, the present was brought
-from the boats; the bason and ewer were deposited,
-the bed and chair were set up, the
-scarlet suit and cloak were put on, though not
-till Namontac (an Indian youth whom Newport
-had carried to England and brought back again)
-had assured him that these habiliments would
-do him no harm; but they had great difficulty
-in persuading him to receive the crown, nor
-would he bend his knee, or incline his head in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_166"></a>[166]</span>
-the least degree. After many attempts, and
-with actual pressing on his shoulders, they at
-last made him stoop a little and put it on.
-Instantly, a signal being given, the men in the
-boats fired a volley, at which the monarch
-started with horror, imagining that a design
-was forming to destroy him in the summit of
-his glory; but being assured that it was meant
-as a compliment, his fear subsided, and in
-return for the baubles of royalty received from
-King James, he desired Newport to present him
-his old fur mantle and deer skin shoes, which in
-his estimation were doubtless a full equivalent;
-since all this finery could not prevail on the wary
-chief to allow them guides for the discovery of
-the inland country, or to approve their design
-of visiting it. Thus disappointed they returned
-to James-Town, determined to proceed without
-his assistance.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp95" id="illus29" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus29.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus30" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus30.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">Florida Indians.</p>
- <p class="caption-r"><a href="#Page_167">Page 167.</a></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_167"></a>[167]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_FLORIDA_INDIANS">THE FLORIDA INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The Palarches, Eamuses and Kaloosas, were
-the ancient possessors of Florida, and are all
-extinct. The present Florida Indians are the
-remains of that ancient and warlike tribe on
-the Mississippi, which being almost extirpated
-by the French, retreated along the Northern
-coast of the Gulf of Mexico, and united with
-broken bands of Biloxies, Red Sticks, and runaway
-Creeks, called Seminoles. The largest
-portion of these Indians are Lower Creeks, and
-are of the most dissolute, daring, and abandoned
-of that tribe.</p>
-
-<p>The word Seminole signifies a wanderer or
-runaway, or it means a wild people or outsettlers,
-the ancestors of the tribe having detached
-themselves from the main body of the Creeks,
-and dwelt remotely, wherever the inducements
-of more game, or greater scope for freedom of
-action, might casually lead them. They settled
-in Florida about 115 years ago.</p>
-
-<p>That this is the period of their becoming a
-separate community, is confirmed by the connection
-of their history with that of the Yemasees,
-of whom there occur frequent notices in
-the account of the early settlement of Georgia
-and South Carolina.</p>
-
-<p>In a talk, which the Seminoles about the
-year 1820, transmitted to the American government,
-they say, alluding to their ancient independence:
-“An hundred summers have seen<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_168"></a>[168]</span>
-the Seminole warrior reposing undisturbed under
-the shade of his live oak, and the suns of
-an hundred winters have risen on his ardent
-pursuit of the buck and the bear, with none to
-question his bounds, or dispute his range.”</p>
-
-<p>The greater part of East Florida appears to
-have been originally in possession of the Yemasees—a
-powerful people, who not only occupied
-this province, but spread themselves
-over Georgia, and into the limits of South
-Carolina, which on its first demarcation was
-bounded on the South by the Altamaha. Some
-of the tribes resided within the present limits
-of that State, in and about Beaufort and Savannah
-River, and also the Sea Islands. Bartram
-relates that these people, after a hardy
-contest, and many bloody defeats, were nearly
-exterminated by their ancient enemies the
-Creeks, who had a tradition, that a beautiful
-race of Indians, whose women they called
-Daughters of the Sun, resided amidst the recesses
-of the great Oakefanokee wilderness,
-where they enjoyed perpetual felicity, in ever
-blooming islands, inaccessible to human approach.</p>
-
-<p>Bartram with probability supposes, that this
-fable took its rise from a fugitive remnant of
-the Yemasees, who found a refuge in this
-swamp, and were perhaps, after a lapse of
-years, accidentally seen by some of the hunters
-of the Creek nation.</p>
-
-<p>There is frequent mention, in the early colonial
-history of South Carolina of wars between<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_169"></a>[169]</span>
-the first settlers and the Yemasees, the latter
-having been excited to attack the Colony by
-the Spanish authorities in St. Augustine.</p>
-
-<p>A formidable war was kindled by these people,
-which would have proved destructive to
-the infant settlement of Carolina, had not timely
-intimation of the danger been obtained by
-means of one of the outsettlers to whom Sanute,
-a chief of the hostile Indians, from a feeling
-of friendship, gave notice of the impending
-attack. On this occasion the Indians were defeated
-by Gov. Grant, and driven out of the
-province. Dr. Ramsay mentions that the Yemasees
-retired into Florida, to which country
-they seem to have been subsequently restricted
-by the increasing power of the whites, and by
-the Creeks. No further mention of them occurs,
-until the Seminoles came into notice, by
-whom they were conquered, and nearly exterminated,
-in 1721, in the manner mentioned by
-Bartram. When in the year 1715, the Yemasees
-were driven within the limits of Florida,
-they became slaves to the Seminoles. Another
-account states, that the Yemasees left St. Augustine
-in a body, in 1722; or rather were expelled
-by the Spaniards, who essayed in vain
-to compel them to labours which were regarded
-as degrading drudgeries by the warriors of
-Yemasee.</p>
-
-<p>The Yemasees were remarkably black people,
-and the Ocklewahaw tribe, who are of a
-deeper shade than the Seminoles, are descendants
-of the conquered race. The chief of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_170"></a>[170]</span>
-Ocklewahaws, Yaha Hadgo, who was killed by
-General Shelton in the campaign of ’36, was
-very dark; but generally, the Seminole’s complexion
-is like that of the Creeks.</p>
-
-<p>Under King Payne, grandfather of Micconope,
-(the present Chief) the Seminoles invaded
-and achieved the conquest of the territories
-they lately occupied. He lived to near 100
-years of age, and married a Yemasee woman,
-his slave, by whom he had the late chief Payne,
-who bore, in the darkness of his complexion, a
-proof of his Yemasee descent.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians were formerly very numerous
-in Florida, perhaps as much so as in Mexico.
-They are now reduced to comparatively small
-bands, in few villages.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus31" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus31.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_171"></a>[171]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="GENERAL_JACKSONS_CONQUEST_OF_THE_INDIANS">GENERAL JACKSON’S CONQUEST OF THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>An artful impostor, Tecumseh of the Shawnees,
-a man of most extraordinary abilities and
-consummate address, conceived the bold design
-of an union of the red against the white population
-of America, under a hope that by a general
-and continued assault along the whole line
-of our frontiers, the future extension of settlements
-might be checked, if the present inhabitants
-could not be driven into the ocean. Assuming
-the attributes of a prophet, and, among
-other things, assisted by the fortuitous occurrence
-of an earthquake, of which he had hazarded
-a prediction, a confidence began to be
-reposed in the sacredness of his character and
-mission. A majority of the Creek nation were
-enlisted in his cause, and the storm of an exterminating
-savage war hung over the West.
-Its first explosion was on Fort Mims, a rude
-stockade defence, into which the Southern inhabitants
-of Alabama had lately retreated for
-security. More than 300 persons, including
-women and children, fell victims to savage barbarity.
-“The slaughter was indiscriminate;
-mercy was extended to none, and the tomahawk
-often transfixed mother and child at the
-same stroke. But seventeen of the whole number
-in the fort, escaped to give intelligence of
-the dreadful catastrophe.” In the midst of an
-alarm which such an inhuman outrage was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_172"></a>[172]</span>
-calculated to excite, the eyes of Tennessee were
-turned on Jackson. Though confined at this
-period to his house by a fractured arm, his
-characteristic firmness did not desert him, and
-he cheerfully yielded to a second call for his
-services in the cause of his country. Two
-thousand militia were ordered to assemble at
-Fayetteville in Tennessee, in addition to five
-hundred cavalry previously raised under the
-command of Gen. Coffee.</p>
-
-<p>The alarming accounts of the concentration
-of the forces of the enemy, with a view of deluging
-the frontier in blood, compelled General
-Jackson (though individually in a most disabled
-state of body) to take the field before the ranks
-of his army had been filled, or his troops organized.</p>
-
-<p>With this undisciplined force, he prepared for
-active operations; but the wisest dispositions
-were counteracted, and all his movements embarrassed,
-by the failure of unfeeling and speculating
-contractors.</p>
-
-<p>The enemy were gathering strength, and on
-the advance; they had already threatened a
-fort of Indian allies. In this situation, to retreat
-was to abandon our frontier citizens to the
-mercy of savages; to advance, was with the
-certainty of exposure to every privation.</p>
-
-<p>Jackson hesitated not on the alternative, and
-with but six days’ rations of meat, and less than
-two of meal, he moved with his army upon the
-Coosa; and, with Coffee’s command, gave a
-most decisive blow to the enemy at Tallushatchee,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_173"></a>[173]</span>
-in less than twenty-five days after he
-had marched from the rendezvous at Fayetteville.
-The loss of the Creeks in this engagement,
-was 186 killed, and 84 prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>Though compelled by the want of supplies
-to return to his depots on the frontier, we find
-him in less than six weeks in the field, at the
-well fought battle of Talledega, and in the subsequent
-conflicts at Emuckfau, Enotichopco,
-and Tohopka, annihilating the hopes and expectations
-of the Creeks, and crushing the hydra
-of savage hostility in the South.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus32" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus32.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_174"></a>[174]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="MASSACRE_OF_MR_COOLYS_FAMILY">MASSACRE OF MR. COOLY’S FAMILY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>On the 6th of January, 1836, whilst Mr.
-Cooly was from home, a party of about thirty
-Indians made an attack upon his family, settled
-at New River, about 12 miles from Cape Florida.
-They murdered his wife, three children,
-and a Mr. Flinton, who was employed as their
-teacher. The children were sitting in the hall,
-getting their lessons, when the Indians came up
-by stealth, and shot them down. Flinton was
-killed on the threshold of the door; the little
-girl about eleven years old was found dead,
-with her book in her hand. As soon as the
-firing commenced, Mrs. Cooly snatched up her
-infant child, and endeavoured to effect their escape
-by a back way. She was shot at a distance
-of about one hundred and fifty yards
-from the house: the ball entered between her
-shoulders, and after passing through her breast,
-broke the arm of the child which was cradled
-on her bosom. The little boy, about eight or
-nine years of age, was found in the yard with
-his skull and arm fractured, probably done with
-a billet of wood. Having destroyed all of the
-white inhabitants, they shot the cattle, plundered
-the house of property worth from one
-thousand to twelve hundred dollars, took away
-two negroes and all the horses, and finally set
-fire to the house.</p>
-
-<p>The circumstances attending the murder of
-Mr. Cooly’s family, are well calculated to illustrate<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_175"></a>[175]</span>
-the treachery of the Indian character. He
-had resided among them for many years, spoke
-their language well, and treated them with uniform
-kindness and hospitality. Indeed, such
-was his friendship for them, that he named two
-of his sons after their chiefs Alnomock and
-Montezuma. His wife had once been a captive
-among them, and was esteemed a great
-favourite. Standing in this relation, and confiding
-in their professions of friendship, which
-lulled him into a fatal security, he left his home
-for a few days, and returned to find it desolate.
-It is a remarkable fact, that the villains who
-perpetrated the deed of death, had not the
-hardihood to scalp the poor mother and her
-three innocent children. Was it the recollection
-of former friendship, that induced them thus to
-spare? Or were they conscious that their own
-savage colleagues would have blushed for the
-chivalry of those warriors, who could find no
-work more befitting their tomahawks and scalping
-knives, than the cruel butchery of women
-and children? Did they fear that some chief,
-more feeling than the rest, would ask,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“Oh wherefore strike the beautiful, the young,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">So innocent, unharming? Lift the knife,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">If need be, ’gainst the warrior; but forbear</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The trembling woman.”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The unfortunate schoolmaster shared a different
-fate. To him they owed no obligations
-of friendship; he was a man, and as such, capable
-of resistance; his scalp was therefore
-torn from him, and borne off as a testimony of
-their savage triumph.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_176"></a>[176]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PHYSICAL_CHARACTER_OF_THE_INDIANS">PHYSICAL CHARACTER OF THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In their physical character, the American
-Indians are considered by Blumenbach as
-forming a particular variety of the human
-species, differing, though not very widely, from
-the Mongolian. Believing, as we do, that the
-New World was peopled from the Old, and
-considering that the Mongol race was situated
-nearest to the point where Asia and America
-come almost into contact, we incline to ascribe
-these variations merely to a change of outward
-circumstances. The face is broad and flat, with
-high cheek-bones; more rounded and arched,
-however, than in the allied type, without having
-the visage expanded to the same breadth. The
-forehead is generally low; the eyes deep, small,
-and black; the nose rather diminutive, but
-prominent, with wide nostrils; and the mouth
-large, with somewhat thick lips. The stature,
-which varies remarkably throughout the Continent,
-is, in the quarter of which we treat,
-generally above the middle size. This property,
-however, is confined to the men, the females
-being usually below that standard, a fact which
-may be confidently ascribed to the oppressive
-drudgery they are compelled to undergo. The
-limbs, in both sexes, are well proportioned;
-and few instances of deformity ever occur.</p>
-
-<p>The colour of the skin in the Indian is
-generally described as red or copper-coloured;
-or, according to Mr. Lawrence’s more precise<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_177"></a>[177]</span>
-definition, it is “an obscure orange or rusty iron
-colour, not unlike the bark of the cinnamon-tree.”
-Although we believe that climate is the
-chief cause of the diversities in human colour,
-yet it is certain that all savages are dark-tinted.
-This peculiarity may be accounted for by their
-constant exposure to the inclemency of the
-seasons, to sun, air, and tempests; and the same
-cause in civilized countries produces a similar
-effect on sailors, as well as on those who work
-constantly in the fields. In the Old World, the
-intermediate tints between white and black are
-generally varieties of brown and yellow. The
-red tint is considered characteristic of the New
-World. We must, however, observe, that the
-traveller Adair, who lived upward of thirty
-years among the Indians, positively asserts that
-it is artificially produced; that in the oil, grease,
-and other unctuous substances with which they
-keep their skin constantly smeared, there is
-dissolved the juice of a root which gradually
-tinges it of this colour. He states, that a white
-man, who spent some years with the natives,
-and adorned himself in their manner, completely
-acquired it. Charlevoix seems also to lean to
-the same opinion. Weld, though rather inclined
-to dissent from it, admits that such a notion was
-adopted by missionaries and others who had resided
-long in the country. It is certain that the
-inhabitants glory in this colour, and regard
-Europeans who have it not as nondescript
-beings, not fully entitled to the name of men.
-It may be noticed also, that this tint is by no<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_178"></a>[178]</span>
-means so universal as is commonly supposed.
-Humboldt declares that the idea of its general
-prevalence could never have arisen in equinoctial
-America, or been suggested by the view of
-the natives in that region; yet these provinces
-include by far the larger part of the aboriginal
-population. The people of Nootka sound and
-other districts of the north-western coast are
-nearly as white as Europeans; which may be
-ascribed, we think, to their ample clothing and
-spacious habitations. Thus the red nations
-appear limited to the eastern tribes of North
-America, among whom generally prevails the
-custom of painting or smearing the skin with
-that favourite colour. We are not prepared to
-express a decided opinion on this subject; but
-it obviously requires a closer investigation than
-it has yet received.</p>
-
-<p>The hair is another particular in which the
-races of mankind remarkably differ. The ruder
-classes are generally defective, either in the
-abundance or quality of that graceful appendage;
-and the hair of the American Indians,
-like that of their allied type the Mongols, is
-coarse, black, thin, but strong, and growing to a
-great length. Like the latter, also, by a curious
-coincidence, most of them remove it from every
-part of the head, with the exception of a tuft
-on the crown, which they cherish with much
-care. The circumstance, however, which has
-excited the greatest attention, is the absence of
-beard, apparently entire, among all the people
-of the New World. The early travellers viewed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_179"></a>[179]</span>
-it as a natural deficiency; whence Robertson
-and other eminent writers have even inferred
-the existence of something peculiarly feeble in
-their whole frame. But the assertion, with all
-the inferences founded upon it, so far as relates
-to the North American tribes, has been completely
-refuted by recent observation. The
-original growth has been found nearly, if not
-wholly, as ample as that of Europeans; but the
-moment it appears, every trace is studiously
-obliterated. This is effected by the aged females,
-originally with a species of clam-shell,
-but now by means of spiral pieces of brass-wire
-supplied by the traders. With these an old
-squaw will in a few minutes reduce the chin to
-a state of complete smoothness; and slight
-applications during the year clear away such
-straggling hairs as may happen to sprout. It is
-only among old men, who become careless of
-their appearance, that the beard begins to be
-perceptible. A late English traveller strongly
-recommends to his countrymen a practice which,
-though scarcely accordant with our ideas of
-manly dignity, would, at the expense of a few
-minutes’ pain, save them much daily trouble.
-The Indians have probably adopted this usage,
-as it removes an obstacle to the fantastic
-painting of the face, which they value so highly.
-A full beard, at all events, when it was first seen
-on their French visiters, is said to have been
-viewed with peculiar antipathy, and to have
-greatly enhanced the pleasure with which they
-killed these foreigners.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_180"></a>[180]</span></p>
-
-<p>The comparative physical strength of savage
-and civilized nations has been a subject of
-controversy. A general impression has obtained
-that the former, inured to simple and
-active habits, acquire a decided superiority;
-but experience appears to have proved that this
-conclusion is ill founded. On the field of battle,
-when a struggle takes place between man and
-man, the Indian is usually worsted. In sportive
-exercises, such as wrestling, he is most frequently
-thrown, and in leaping comes short of his
-antagonist. Even in walking or running, if for
-a short distance, he is left behind; but in these
-last movements he possesses a power of perseverance
-and continued exertion to which
-there is scarcely any parallel. An individual
-has been known to travel nearly eighty miles in
-a day, and arrive at his destination without any
-symptoms of fatigue. These long journeys,
-also, are frequently performed without any refreshment,
-and even having the shoulders loaded
-with heavy burdens, their capacity of supporting
-which is truly wonderful. For about twelve
-miles, indeed, a strong European will keep
-ahead of the Indian; but then he begins to flag,
-while the other, proceeding with unaltered pace,
-outstrips him considerably. Even powerful
-animals cannot equal them in this respect.
-Many of their civilized adversaries, when
-overcome in war, and fleeing before them on
-swift horses, have, after a long chase, been
-overtaken and scalped.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_181"></a>[181]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="DRESS_OF_THE_INDIANS">DRESS OF THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Having thus given a view of the persons of
-the Indians, we may proceed to consider the
-manner in which they are clothed and ornamented.
-This last object might have been expected
-to be a very secondary one, among tribes
-whose means of subsistence are so scanty and
-precarious; but, so far is this from being the
-case, that there is scarcely any pursuit which
-occupies so much of their time and regard.
-They have availed themselves of European intercourse
-to procure each a small mirror, in
-which, from time to time, they view their personal
-decorations, taking care that everything
-shall be in the most perfect order. Embellishment,
-however, is not much expended on actual
-clothing, which is simple, and chiefly arranged
-with a view to convenience. Instead
-of shoes, they wear what are termed moccasins,
-consisting of one strip of soft leather
-wrapped round the foot, and fastened in front
-and behind. Europeans, walking over hard
-roads, soon knock these to pieces; but the Indian,
-tripping over snow or grass, finds them a
-light and agreeable <i>chaussure</i>. Upward to the
-middle of the thigh, a piece of leather or cloth,
-tightly fitted to the limb, serves instead of pantaloons,
-stockings, and boots; it is sometimes
-sewed on so close as never to be taken off. To
-a string or girdle round the waist are fastened
-two aprons, one before and the other at the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_182"></a>[182]</span>
-back, each somewhat more than a foot square
-and these are connected by a piece of cloth like
-a truss, often used also as a capacious pocket.
-The use of breeches they have always repelled
-with contempt, as cumbrous and effeminate.
-As an article of female dress, they would consider
-them less objectionable; but that the limbs
-of a warrior should be thus manacled, appears
-to them utterly preposterous. They were particularly
-scandalized at seeing an officer have
-them fastened over the shoulder by braces, and
-never after gave him any name but Tied-Breech.</p>
-
-<p>The garments now enumerated form the
-whole of their permanent dress. On occasions
-of ceremony, indeed, or when exposed to cold,
-they put over it a short shirt fastened at the
-neck and wrists, and above it a long loose robe,
-closed or held together in front. For this purpose
-they now generally prefer an English
-blanket. All these articles were originally fabricated
-from the skins of wild animals; but at
-present, unless for the moccasins, and sometimes
-the leggins, European stuffs are preferred.
-The dress of the female scarcely differs from
-that of the male, except that the apron reaches
-down to the knees; and even this is said to
-have been adopted since their acquaintance
-with civilized nations. The early French writers
-relate an amusing anecdote to prove how
-little dress was considered as making a distinction
-between the sexes. The Ursuline nuns,
-having educated a Huron girl, presented her,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_183"></a>[183]</span>
-on her marriage to one of her countrymen,
-with a complete and handsome suit of clothes
-in the Parisian style. They were much surprised,
-some days after, to see the husband,
-who had ungenerously seized the whole of his
-bride’s attire and arrayed himself in it, parading
-back and forward in front of the convent,
-and betraying every symptom of the most extravagant
-exultation. This was farther heightened
-when he observed the ladies crowding to
-the window to see him, and a universal smile
-spread over their countenances.</p>
-
-<p>These vestments, as already observed, are
-simple, and adapted only for use. To gratify
-his passionate love of ornament, the Indian
-seeks chiefly to load his person with certain
-glittering appendages. Before the arrival of
-Europeans, shells and feathers took the lead;
-but, since that period, these commodities have
-been nearly supplanted by beads, rings, bracelets,
-and similar toys, which are inserted profusely
-into various parts of his apparel, particularly
-the little apron in front. The chiefs
-usually wear a breastplate ornamented with
-them; and among all classes it is an object of
-the greatest ambition to have the largest possible
-number suspended from the ear. That
-organ, therefore, is not bored, but slit to such
-an extent that a stick of wax may be passed
-through the aperture, which is then loaded with
-all the baubles that can be mustered; and if
-the weight of these gradually draw down the
-yielding flap till it rest on the shoulder, and the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_184"></a>[184]</span>
-ornaments themselves cover the breast, the Indian
-has reached his utmost height of finery.
-This, however, is a precarious splendour; the
-ear becomes more and more unfit to support
-the burden, when at length some accident, the
-branch of a tree, or even a twitch by a waggish
-comrade, lays at his feet all his decorations,
-with the portion of flesh to which they
-were attached. Weld saw very few who had
-preserved this organ entire through life. The
-adjustment of the hair, again, is an object of
-especial study. As already observed, the greater
-part is generally eradicated, leaving only a tuft,
-varying in shape and place, according to taste
-and national custom, but usually encircling the
-crown. This lock is stuck full of feathers,
-wings of birds, shells, and every kind of fantastic
-ornament. The women wear theirs long
-and flowing, and contrive to collect a considerable
-number of ornaments for it, as well as for
-their ears and dress.</p>
-
-<p>But it is upon his skin that the American
-warrior chiefly lavishes his powers of embellishment.
-His taste in doing so is very different
-from ours. “While the European,” says Creuxius,
-“studies to keep his skin clean, and free
-from every extraneous substance, the Indian’s
-aim is, that his, by the accumulation of oil,
-grease, and paint, may shine like that of a
-roasted pig.” Soot scraped from the bottoms
-of kettles, the juices of herbs, having a green,
-yellow, and, above all, a vermilion tint, rendered
-adhesive by combination with oil and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_185"></a>[185]</span>
-grease, are lavishly employed to adorn his person,
-or, according to our idea, to render it
-hideous. Black and red, alternating with each
-other in varied stripes, are the favourite tints.
-Some blacken the face, leaving in the middle a
-red circle, including the upper lip and tip of the
-nose; others have a red spot on each ear, or
-one eye black and the other of a red colour. In
-war the black tint is profusely laid on, the
-others being only employed to heighten its
-effect, and give to the countenance a terrific expression.
-M. de Tracy, when governor of Canada,
-was told by his Indian allies, that, with
-his good-humoured face, he would never inspire
-the enemy with any degree of awe. They
-besought him to place himself under their
-brush, when they would soon make him such
-that his very aspect would strike terror. The
-breast, arms, and legs are the seat of more permanent
-impressions, analogous to the tattooing
-of the South Sea Islanders. The colours are
-either elaborately rubbed in, or fixed by slight
-incisions with needles and sharp-pointed bones.
-His guardian spirit, and the animal that forms
-the symbol of his tribe, are the first objects delineated.
-After this, every memorable exploit,
-and particularly the enemies whom he has
-slain and scalped, are diligently graven on some
-part of his figure; so that the body of an aged
-warrior contains the history of his life.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_186"></a>[186]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_HUNTING">INDIAN HUNTING.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It is a mistake to suppose that hunting is pursued
-by the Indian merely as a means of subsistence.
-It is also his favourite sport; and no
-English gentleman who spends his thousands of
-pounds per annum on his horses and hounds,
-follows the sports of the field with a keener zest,
-than the wild Indian who has never beheld the
-face of a white man. The accounts of Catlin,
-who spent much time among the wildest tribes,
-show, that amusement, in its most liberal sense,
-is pursued by the Indians in this way. Hunting
-is not drudgery to them.</p>
-
-<p>The means of procuring subsistence must
-always form an important branch of national
-economy. Writers take a superficial view of
-savage life, and, seeing how scanty the articles
-of food are, while the demand is necessarily
-urgent, have assumed that the efforts to attain
-them must absorb his whole mind, and scarcely
-leave room for any other thought. But, on the
-contrary, these are to him very subordinate objects.
-To perform a round of daily labour,
-even though ensuring the most ample provision
-for his wants, would be equally contrary to his
-inclination and supposed dignity. He will not
-deign to follow any pursuit which does not, at
-the same time, include enterprise, adventure,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_187"></a>[187]</span>
-and excitement. Hunting, which the higher
-classes in the civilized parts of the world pursue
-for mere recreation, is almost the only occupation
-considered of sufficient importance to
-engage his attention. It is peculiarly endeared
-by its resemblance to war, being carried on
-with the same weapons, and nearly in the same
-manner. In his native state, the arrow was the
-favourite and almost exclusive instrument for
-assailing distant objects; but now the gun has
-nearly superseded it. The great hunts are rendered
-more animating, as well as more effectual,
-from being carried on in large parties, and even
-by whole tribes. The men are prepared for
-these by fasting, dreaming, and other superstitious
-observances, similar to those which we
-shall find employed in anticipation of war. In
-such expeditions, too, contrivance and skill, as
-well as boldness and enterprise, are largely employed.
-Sometimes a circle is formed, when all
-the animals surrounded by it are pressed closer
-and closer, till they are collected in the centre,
-and fall under the accumulated weight of weapons.
-On other occasions they are driven to
-the margin of a lake or river, in which, if they
-attempt to seek refuge, canoes are ready to intercept
-them. Elsewhere a space is enclosed
-by stakes, only a narrow opening being left,
-which, by clamour and shouts, the game are
-compelled to enter, and thereby secured. In
-autumn and spring, when the ice is newly
-formed and slight, they are pushed upon it, and
-their legs breaking through, they are easily<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_188"></a>[188]</span>
-caught. In winter, when the snow begins to
-fall, traps are set, in which planks are so arranged,
-that the animal, in snatching at the
-bait, is crushed to death. Originally the deer,
-both for food and clothing, was the most valuable
-object of chase; but, since the trade with
-Europeans has given such a prominent importance
-to furs, the beaver has in some degree
-supplanted it. In attacking this animal, great
-care is taken to prevent his escape into the water,
-on which his habitation always borders;
-and with this view various kinds of nets and
-springes are employed. On some occasions the
-Indians place themselves upon the dike which
-encloses his amphibious village. They then
-make an opening in it, when the inmates,
-alarmed by seeing the water flowing out, hasten
-to this barrier, where they encounter their enemies,
-armed with all the instruments of destruction.
-At other times, when ice covers the
-surface of the pond, a hole is made, at which
-the animal comes to respire; he is then drawn
-out and secured. The bear is a formidable
-enemy, which must be assailed by the combined
-force of the hunters, who are ranged in
-two rows, armed with bows or muskets. One
-of them advances and wounds him, and, on
-being furiously pursued, he retreats between
-the files, followed in the same line by the animal,
-which is then overwhelmed by their united
-onset. In killing these quadrupeds, the natives
-seem to feel a sort of kindness and sympathy
-for their victim. On vanquishing a beaver or<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_189"></a>[189]</span>
-a bear, they celebrate its praises in a song,
-recounting those good qualities which it will
-never more be able to display, yet consoling
-themselves with the useful purposes to which
-its flesh and its skin will be applied.</p>
-
-<p>Of the animals usually tamed and rendered
-subservient to useful purposes, the Indians have
-only the dog, that faithful friend of man.
-Though his services in hunting are valuable,
-he is treated with but little tenderness, and is
-left to roam about the dwelling, very sparingly
-supplied with food and shelter. A missionary,
-who resided in a Huron village, represents his
-life as having been rendered miserable by these
-animals. At night they laid themselves on his
-person for the benefit of the warmth; and,
-whenever his scanty meal was set down, their
-snouts were always first in the dish. Dog’s
-flesh is eaten, and has even a peculiar sanctity
-attached to it. On all solemn festivals it is the
-principal meat, the use of which, on such occasions,
-seems to import some high and mysterious
-meaning.</p>
-
-<p>But, besides the cheering avocations of the
-chase, other means must be used to ensure the
-comfort and subsistence of the Indian’s family;
-all of which, however, are most ungenerously
-devolved upon the weaker sex. Women, according
-to Creuxius, serve them as domestics,
-as tailors, as peasants, and as oxen; and Long
-does not conceive that any other purposes of
-their existence are recognized, except those of
-bearing children and performing hard work.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_190"></a>[190]</span>
-They till the ground, carry wood and water,
-build huts, make canoes, and fish; in which
-latter processes, however, and in reaping the
-harvest, their lords deign to give occasional aid.
-So habituated are they to such occupations, that
-when one of them saw a party of English soldiers
-collecting wood, she exclaimed that it was
-a shame to see men doing women’s work, and
-began herself to carry a load.</p>
-
-<p>Through the services of this enslaved portion
-of the tribe, those savages are enabled to combine
-in a certain degree the agricultural with
-the hunting state, without any mixture of the
-pastoral, usually considered as intermediate.
-Cultivation, however, is limited to small spots
-in the immediate vicinity of the villages, and
-these being usually at the distance of sixteen
-or seventeen miles from each other, it scarcely
-makes any impression on the immense expanse
-of forest. The women, in the beginning of
-summer, after having burned the stubble of the
-preceding crop, rudely stir the ground with a
-long, crooked piece of wood; they then throw
-in the grain, which is chiefly the coarse but productive
-species of maize peculiar to the Continent.
-The nations in the south have a considerable
-variety of fruits; whereas those of Canada
-appear to have raised only turnsols, watermelons,
-and pompions. Tobacco used to be
-grown largely; but that produced by the European
-settlers is now universally preferred,
-and has become a regular object of trade. The
-grain, after harvest (which is celebrated by a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_191"></a>[191]</span>
-festival), is lodged in large subterraneous stores
-lined with bark, where it keeps extremely well.
-Previous to being placed in these, it is sometimes
-thrashed; on other occasions merely the
-ears are cut off, and thrown in. When first discovered
-by settlers from Europe, the degrees of
-culture were found to vary in different tribes.
-The Algonquins, who were the ruling people
-previous to the arrival of the French, wholly
-despised it, and branded as plebeian their neighbours,
-by whom it was practised. In general,
-the northern clans, and those near the mouth of
-the St. Lawrence, depended almost solely on
-hunting and fishing; and when these failed
-they were reduced to dreadful extremities, being
-often obliged to depend on the miserable
-resource of that species of lichen called <i>tripe
-de roche</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The maize, when thrashed, is occasionally
-toasted on the coals, and sometimes made into
-a coarse kind of unleavened cake. But the
-most favourite preparation is that called <i>sagamity</i>,
-a species of pap formed after it has been
-roasted, bruised, and separated from the husk.
-It is insipid by itself; yet when thrown into the
-pot, along with the produce of the chase, it enriches
-the soup or stew, one of the principal
-dishes at their feasts. They never eat victuals
-raw, but rather overboiled; nor have they yet
-been brought to endure French ragouts, salt,
-pepper, or, indeed, any species of condiment.
-A chief, admitted to the governor’s table, seeing
-the general use of mustard, was led by curiosity<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_192"></a>[192]</span>
-to take a spoonful and put it into his
-mouth. On feeling its violent effects, he made
-incredible efforts to conceal them, and escape
-the ridicule of the company; but severe sneezings,
-and the tears starting from his eyes, soon
-betrayed him, and raised a general laugh. He
-was then shown the manner in which it should
-be used; but nothing could ever induce him to
-allow the “boiling yellow,” as he termed it, to
-enter his lips.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians are capable of extraordinary
-abstinence from food, in which they can persevere
-for successive days without complaint or
-apparent suffering. They even take a pride in
-long fasts, by which they usually prepare themselves
-for any great undertaking. Yet, when
-once set down to a feast, their gluttony is described
-as enormous, and the capacity of their
-stomachs almost incredible. They will go from
-feast to feast, doing honour to each in succession.
-The chief giving the entertainment does not
-partake, but with his own hands distributes
-portions among the guests. On solemn occasions,
-it is a rule that everything shall be eaten;
-nor does this obligation seem to be felt as either
-burdensome or unpleasant. In their native
-state, they were not acquainted with any species
-of intoxicating liquors; their love of ardent
-spirits, attended with so many ruinous effects,
-having been entirely consequent on their intercourse
-with Europeans.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_193"></a>[193]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="HABITATIONS_OF_THE_INDIANS">HABITATIONS OF THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>There is great diversity among the various
-tribes of North American Indians in respect to
-manners and customs, dress, and modes of
-living. The inhabitants of the sultry regions
-of Florida and Texas, of course pay less attention
-to the texture of their garments, and the
-comfort of their dwellings, than those who reside
-in the more northern regions; and other
-diversities of habit are produced by differences
-of climate and situation. Still there is a certain
-degree of simplicity inherent in savage life
-which pervades all the tribes:—it is the simplicity
-which is the necessary consequence of
-poverty and ignorance.</p>
-
-<p>The habitations of the Indians receive much
-less of their attention than the attire, or, at
-least, embellishment of their persons. Our
-countrymen, by common consent, give to them
-no better appellation than cabins. The bark
-of trees is their chief material both for houses
-and boats: they peel it off with considerable
-skill, sometimes stripping a whole tree in one
-piece. This coating, spread not unskilfully
-over a framework of poles, and fastened to
-them by strips of tough rind, forms their dwellings.
-The shape, according to the owner’s
-fancy, resembles a tub, a cone, or a cart-shed,
-the mixture of which gives to the village a
-confused and chaotic appearance. Light and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_194"></a>[194]</span>
-heat are admitted only by an aperture at the
-top, through which also the smoke escapes,
-after filling all the upper part of the mansion.
-Little inconvenience is felt from this by the
-natives, who, within doors, never think of any
-position except sitting or lying; but to Europeans,
-who must occasionally stand or walk, the
-abode is thereby rendered almost intolerable;
-and matters become much worse when rain or
-snow makes it necessary to close the roof.
-These structures are sometimes upward of a
-hundred feet long; but they are then the residence
-of two or three separate families. Four
-of them occasionally compose a quadrangle,
-each open on the inside, and having a common
-fire in the centre. Formerly the Iroquois had
-houses somewhat superior, adorned even with
-some rude carving; but these were burned
-down by the French in successive expeditions,
-and were never after rebuilt in the same style.
-The Canadians in this respect seem to be
-surpassed by the Choctaws, Chickasaws, and
-other tribes in the south, and even by the
-Saukies in the west, whose mansions Carver
-describes as constructed of well-hewn planks,
-neatly jointed, and each capable of containing
-several families.</p>
-
-<p>In their expeditions, whether for war or
-hunting, which often lead them through desolate
-forests, several hundred miles from home, the
-Indians have the art of rearing, with great expedition,
-temporary abodes. On arriving at
-their evening station, a few poles, meeting at<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_195"></a>[195]</span>
-the top in the form of a cone, are in half an
-hour covered with bark; and having spread a
-few pine-branches within by way of mattress,
-they sleep as soundly as on beds of down.
-Like the Esquimaux, they also understand how
-to convert snow into a material for building;
-and find it in the depth of winter the warmest
-and most comfortable. A few twigs platted
-together secure the roof. Our own countrymen,
-in their several campaigns, have, in cases of
-necessity, used with advantage this species of
-bivouac.</p>
-
-<p>The furniture in these native huts is exceedingly
-simple. The chief articles are two or
-three pots or kettles for boiling their food, with
-a few wooden plates and spoons. The former,
-in the absence of metal, with which the inhabitants
-were unacquainted, were made of
-coarse earthenware that resisted the fire; and
-sometimes of a species of soft stone, which
-could be excavated with their rude hatchets.
-Nay, in some cases, their kitchen utensils were
-of wood, and the water made to boil by throwing
-in heated stones. Since their acquaintance
-with Europeans, the superiority of iron vessels
-has been found so decided, that they are now
-universally preferred. The great kettle or
-caldron, employed only on high festivals associated
-with religion, hunting, or war, attracts
-even a kind of veneration; and potent chiefs
-have assumed its name as their title of honour.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_196"></a>[196]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INTELLECTUAL_CHARACTER_OF_THE_INDIANS">INTELLECTUAL CHARACTER OF THE INDIANS</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The intellectual character of the American
-savage presents some very striking peculiarities.
-Considering his unfavourable condition, he of
-all other human beings might seem doomed to
-make the nearest approach to the brute; while,
-in point of fact, without any aid from letters or
-study, many of the higher faculties of his mind
-are developed in a very remarkable degree. He
-displays a decided superiority over the uninstructed
-labourer in a civilized community,
-whose mental energies are benumbed amid the
-daily round of mechanical occupation. The
-former spends a great part of his life in arduous
-enterprises, where much contrivance is requisite,
-and whence he must often extricate himself by
-presence of mind and ingenuity. His senses,
-particularly those of seeing and smelling, have
-acquired by practice an almost preternatural
-acuteness. He can trace an animal or a foe by
-indications which to a European eye would be
-wholly imperceptible; and in his wanderings
-he gathers a minute acquaintance with the
-geography of the countries which he traverses.
-He can even draw a rude outline of them by
-applying a mixture of charcoal and grease to
-prepared skins, and on seeing a regular map he
-soon understands its construction, and readily
-finds out places. His facility in discovering the
-most direct way to spots situated at the distance
-of hundreds of miles, and known perhaps only by<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_197"></a>[197]</span>
-the report of his countrymen, is truly astonishing.
-It has been ascribed by some to a mysterious
-and supernatural instinct, but it appears to be
-achieved by merely observing the different
-aspect of the trees or shrubs when exposed to
-the north or the south, as also the position of
-the sun, which he can point out, although hidden
-by clouds. Even where there is a beaten track,
-if at all circuitous, he strikes directly through
-the woods, and reaches his destination by the
-straightest possible line.</p>
-
-<p>Other faculties of a higher order are developed
-by the scenes amid which the life of savages is
-spent. They are divided into a number of little
-communities, between which are actively carried
-on all the relations of war, negotiation, treaty,
-and alliance. As mighty revolutions, observes
-an eloquent writer, take place in these kingdoms
-of wood and cities of bark, as in the most
-powerful civilized states. To increase the influence
-and extend the possessions of their own
-tribe, to humble and, if possible, to destroy those
-hostile to them, are the constant aims of every
-member of those little commonwealths. For
-these ends, not only deeds of daring valour are
-achieved, but schemes are deeply laid, and pursued
-with the most accurate calculation. There
-is scarcely a refinement in European diplomacy
-to which they are strangers. The French once
-made an attempt to crush the confederacy of
-the Five Nations by attacking each in succession;
-but as they were on their march against
-the first tribe, they were met by the deputies of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_198"></a>[198]</span>
-the others, who offered their mediation, intimating
-that, if it were rejected, they would make
-common cause with the one threatened. That
-association also showed that they completely
-understood how to employ the hostility which
-prevailed between their enemy and the English
-for promoting their own aggrandizement. Embassies,
-announced by the calumet of peace, are
-constantly passing from one tribe to another.</p>
-
-<p>The same political circumstances develop in
-an extraordinary degree the powers of oratory;
-for nothing of any importance is transacted
-without a speech. On every emergency a
-council of the tribe is called, when the aged and
-wise hold long deliberations for the public weal.
-The best speakers are despatched to conduct
-their negotiations, the object of which is unfolded
-in studied harangues. The functions of
-orator, among the Five Nations, had even become
-a separate profession, held in equal or
-higher honour than that of the warrior; and
-each clan appointed the most eloquent of their
-number to speak for them in the public council.
-Nay, there was a general orator for the whole
-confederacy, who could say to the French
-governor, “Ononthio, lend thine ear; I am the
-mouth of all the country; you hear all the
-Iroquois in hearing my word.” Decanesora,
-their speaker at a later period, was greatly admired
-by the English, and his bust was thought
-to resemble that of Cicero. In their diplomatic
-discourses, each proposition is prefaced by the
-delivery of a belt of wampum, of which what<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_199"></a>[199]</span>
-follows is understood to be the explanation, and
-which is to be preserved as a record of the
-conference. The orator does not express his
-proposals in words only, but gives to every
-sentence its appropriate action. If he threatens
-war, he wildly brandishes the tomahawk; if
-he solicits alliance, he twines his arms closely
-with those of the chief whom he addresses;
-and if he invites friendly intercourse, he assumes
-all the attitudes of one who is forming a road
-in the Indian manner, by cutting down the trees,
-clearing them away, and carefully removing
-the leaves and branches. To a French writer,
-who witnessed the delivery of a solemn embassy,
-it suggested the idea of a company of
-actors performing on a stage. So expressive
-are their gestures, that negotiations have been
-conducted and alliances concluded between
-petty states and communities who understood
-nothing of one another’s language.</p>
-
-<p>The composition of the Indian orators is
-studied and elaborate. The language of the
-Iroquois is even held to be susceptible of an
-Attic elegance, which few can attain so fully as
-to escape all criticism. It is figurative in the
-highest degree, every notion being expressed
-by images addressed to the senses. Thus, to
-throw up the hatchet or to put on the great
-caldron is to begin a war; to throw the hatchet
-to the sky is to wage open and terrible war; to
-take off the caldron or to bury the hatchet is to
-make peace; to plant the tree of peace on the
-highest mountain of the earth is to make a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_200"></a>[200]</span>
-general pacification. To throw a prisoner into
-the caldron is to devote him to torture and
-death; to take him out, is to pardon and receive
-him as a member of the community. Ambassadors
-coming to propose a full and general
-treaty say, “We rend the clouds asunder, and
-drive away all darkness from the heavens, that
-the sun of peace may shine with brightness
-over us all.” On another occasion, referring
-to their own violent conduct, they said, “We
-are glad that Assarigoa will bury in the pit
-what is past; let the earth be trodden hard over
-it, or, rather, let a strong stream run under the
-pit to wash away the evil.” They afterward
-added, “We now plant a tree, whose top will
-reach the sun, and its branches spread far abroad,
-and we shall shelter ourselves under it, and live
-in peace.” To send the collar under ground is
-to carry on a secret negotiation; but when expressing
-a desire that there might be no duplicity
-or concealment between them and the
-French, they said that “They wished to fix the
-sun in the top of the heaven, immediately
-above that pole, that it might beat directly
-down and leave nothing in obscurity.” In
-pledging themselves to a firm and steady peace,
-they declared that they would not only throw
-down the great war-caldron, and cause all the
-water to flow out, but would break it in pieces.
-This disposition to represent every thing by a
-sensible object extends to matters the most important.
-One powerful people assumed the
-appellation of Foxes, while another gloried in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_201"></a>[201]</span>
-that of Cats. Even when the entire nation
-bore a different appellation, separate fraternities
-distinguished themselves as the tribe of the
-Bear, the Tortoise, and the Wolf. They did
-not disdain a reference even to inanimate things.
-The Black Caldron was at one time the chief
-warrior of the Five Nations; and Red Shoes
-was a person of distinction well known to Long
-the traveller. When the chiefs concluded treaties
-with Europeans, their signature consisted in a
-picture, often tolerably well executed, of the
-beast or object after which they chose to be
-named.</p>
-
-<p>The absence among these tribes of any written
-or even pictorial mode of recording events,
-was supplied by the memories of their old men,
-which were so retentive, that a certain writer
-calls them living books. Their only remembrancer
-consisted in the wampum belts; of
-which one was appropriated to each division of
-a speech or treaty, and had seemingly a powerful
-effect in calling it to recollection. On the
-close of the transaction, these were deposited as
-public documents, to be drawn forth on great
-occasions, when the orators, and even the old
-women, could repeat verbatim the passage to
-which each referred. Europeans were thus enabled
-to collect information concerning the
-revolutions of different tribes, for several ages
-preceding their own arrival.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_202"></a>[202]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="SINGULAR_EXECUTION_OF_AN_INDIAN">SINGULAR EXECUTION OF AN INDIAN.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In March, 1823, a Choctaw savage, calling
-himself Doctor Sibley, belonging to a wandering
-tribe of his nation, in the Arkansas Territory,—while
-in a state of intoxication, stabbed
-to the heart another Indian; who instantly expired.
-This act called for revenge, founded on
-the <i>lex taliones</i>—that invariable custom of the
-aborigines. A brother of the deceased called
-upon Sibley, and told him, that he was come to
-take his life, in atonement for the death of his
-brother. With the composure of a philosopher,
-and the courage of a Roman, Sibley—readily,
-and without a murmur—yielded assent; only
-desiring the execution might be postponed until
-the following morning. This was granted;—the
-execution was postponed—and Sibley <i>left
-at large, under no restraint whatever</i>!</p>
-
-<p>When the morning came, Sibley went out
-with the rest of the party, and, with perfect
-apathy, aided in digging a grave for the murdered
-Indian. The work being finished, he
-calmly observed to the by-standers, that, he
-thought it large enough to contain two bodies;—signifying,
-at the same time, a wish to be
-buried in the same grave. This, too, was
-granted: and the murderer deliberately took a
-standing position over the grave, with outstretched
-arms; and, giving a signal to fire, the
-brother drove a rifle ball through his heart—and
-he dropt into the hole he had assisted to
-make!</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_203"></a>[203]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_VERACITY">INDIAN VERACITY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“<i>He once told a lie</i>”—was the emphatical
-expression of an Indian to me, in 1794, when I
-was attending to the surveying of a large body
-of lands in, what was then called, ‘The French-Creek
-Country,’ and West of the Alleghany
-River: and, as some of my people were killed
-by the Western Indians, I found it necessary,
-while the surveying was going on, to visit the
-Indian Towns on the Alleghany River frequently:—they
-were inhabited by the Senecas.
-General Wayne was then on his way, with his
-army, to the Indian settlements on the Miami
-River.</p>
-
-<p>One day, when I was at the Cornplanter’s
-town, the ‘<i>News-Spout</i>,’ as it is called, was
-heard. All the Indians in the village immediately
-retired to their houses (and even their dogs
-went with them;) when an old man went out
-to meet the person who brought the news, and
-to take him to the Long, or Council-House,
-where a fire was made and refreshments were
-carried to him, and time given for him to dress
-and paint himself, so as to appear decent.</p>
-
-<p>When sufficient time had elapsed for the
-preparatives to be performed, the chiefs went
-first to the house; and, as the young men were
-following, I asked an Indian—who spoke
-English, and to whom (as he professed to be a
-priest, physician, and conjurer) I gave the name
-of Doctor—whether there was any impropriety<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_204"></a>[204]</span>
-in my going to hear the news. He said, “No”—and
-that, as I was received as a friend and
-visiter, all their houses were open to me: and
-if I did not go without any ceremony, it would
-appear as if <i>I doubted their words and hospitality</i>;
-which was considered as the greatest
-affront that could be put on an Indian. For
-that, if there was any secret business going on
-they would inform me of it, in a friendly way
-and then I might retire.</p>
-
-<p>I accordingly went into the house with him;
-when the Chiefs immediately rose, and gave me
-a seat among them.</p>
-
-<p>All the Indians in the house were smoking
-their pipes when I came in; and the stranger
-was sitting opposite the Chiefs, in a seat, or
-rather a platform, by himself. The time appeared
-to me very long, as I was anxious to
-hear the news; being much interested in the
-event, as the Indians had been deliberating,
-whether or not they would permit me to continue
-surveying, or send me out of the country:
-and, what surprised me, was, that no one—contrary
-to their usual custom—asked him for the
-news; and I was at a loss to account for their
-conduct. Eventually, the Indian himself—after
-prefacing the business, with telling them, he
-had no doubt,—as they knew he had been to
-the West—they would be gratified in hearing
-his news. But no one appeared to signify his
-assent or negative. The Indian then gave an
-account of an affair between a convoy of
-Americans—who were carrying reinforcements<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_205"></a>[205]</span>
-and provisions to one of our frontier posts—and
-the Indians; and they had killed the commanding
-officer and a number of our men:
-and, after he had related all he had to say, no
-one asked for any particulars of the action, or
-for any corroborating circumstance; as I had
-formerly observed, they were particularly polite
-to strangers and visiters, and were very cautious
-to say or do any thing to hurt their feelings,
-and, soon after, the chiefs and other Indians
-began to leave the house.</p>
-
-<p>I left the house with the Doctor; and, as
-soon as we had passed the door, I expressed my
-surprise to him, at the manner they treated the
-man who brought the news, as it was so
-different from any treatment I had before seen,
-when visited by strangers; and that I would
-thank him to inform me of the cause of it:—when
-he, without any hesitation, and with
-considerable emphasis, answered, “<span class="smcap">He once
-told a lie</span>”—and continued: “What that man
-said, may be so true; may be so not. We
-always listen to what a newsman has to say,—even
-when we know him to be a liar. But,
-whether we believe him or not, it is not our
-custom to let him know; or to say any thing
-on the subject: for, if we had asked him any
-questions about the fight, it would have been
-a great gratification to him; as he would have
-concluded some of the company did believe
-him: which is a thing we do not indulge any
-person in, who has been guilty of telling a lie.”
-He concluded, by saying, “<i>He all one as dead.</i>”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_206"></a>[206]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PETER_OTSAQUETTE_THE_ONEIDAN">PETER OTSAQUETTE, THE ONEIDAN</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Peter Otsaquette was the son of a man of
-consideration among the Oneida Indians of
-New York. At the close of the Revolutionary
-war, he was noticed by the Marquis de La
-Fayette, who, to a noble zeal for liberty, united
-the most philanthropic feelings. Viewing, therefore,
-this young savage with peculiar interest,
-and anticipating the happy results to be derived
-from his moral regeneration, he took him, though
-scarcely twelve years old, to France. Peter arrived
-at that period when Louis XVI. and Maria
-Antoinette were in the zenith of their glory.
-There he was taught the accomplishments of a
-gentleman;—music, drawing, and fencing, were
-made familiar to him, and he danced with a
-grace that a Vestris could not but admire. At
-about eighteen, his separation from a country
-in which he had spent his time so agreeably
-and so profitably, became necessary. Laden
-with favours from the Marquis, and the miniatures
-of those friends he had left behind.
-Peter departed for America—inflated, perhaps,
-with the idea, that the deep ignorance of his
-nation, with that of the Indians of the whole
-continent, might be dispelled by his efforts, and
-he become the proud instrument of the civilization
-of thousands.</p>
-
-<p>Prosecuting his route to the land of his parents,
-he came to the city of Albany; not the
-uncivilized savage, not with any of those marks<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_207"></a>[207]</span>
-which bespoke a birth in the forest, or years
-spent in toiling the wilds of a desert, but possessing
-a fine commanding figure, an expressive
-countenance, an intelligent eye, with a face
-scarcely indicative of the race from which he
-was descended. He presented, at this period,
-an interesting spectacle: a child of the wilderness
-was beheld about to proceed to the home
-of his forefathers, having received the brilliant
-advantages of a cultivated mind, and on his way
-to impart to the nation that owned him, the
-benefits which civilization had given him. It
-was an opportunity for the philosopher to contemplate,
-and to reflect on the future good this
-young Indian might be the means of producing.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after his arrival in Albany—where
-he visited the first families—he took advantage
-of Governor Clinton’s journey to Fort Stanwix
-(where a treaty was to be held with the Indians,)
-to return to his tribe. On the route, Otsaquette
-amused the company (among whom were the
-French Minister, Count De Moustiers, and
-several gentlemen of respectability) by his
-powers on various instruments of music. At
-Fort Stanwix, he found himself again with the
-companions of his early days, who saw and recognised
-him. His friends and relations had
-not forgotten him, and he was welcomed to his
-home and to his blanket.</p>
-
-<p>But that which occurred soon after his reception,
-led him to a too fearful anticipation of
-an unsuccessful project; for the Oneidas, as if
-they could not acknowledge Otsaquette, attired<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_208"></a>[208]</span>
-in the dress with which he appeared before
-them,—a mark which did not disclose his
-nation,—and, thinking that he had assumed it,
-as if ashamed of his own native costume, the
-garb of his ancestors, they tore it from him with
-a savage avidity, and a fiend-like ferociousness,
-daubed on the paint to which he had been so
-long unused, and clothed him with the uncouth
-habiliments held sacred by his tribe. Their
-fiery ferocity, in the performance of the act,
-showed but too well the bold stand they were
-about to take against the innovations they supposed
-Otsaquette was to be the agent for
-affecting against their immemorial manners and
-customs, and which, from the venerable antiquity
-of their structure, it would be nothing
-short of sacrilege to destroy.</p>
-
-<p>Thus the reformed savage was taken back
-again to his native barbarity, and—as if to cap
-the climax of degradation to a mind just susceptible
-of its own powers—was <i>married to a
-squaw</i>!</p>
-
-<p>From that day, Otsaquette was no longer the
-accomplished Indian, from whom every wish
-of philanthropy was expected to be realized.
-He was no longer the instrument by whose
-power the emancipation of his countrymen
-from the thraldom of ignorance and superstition,
-was to be effected. From that day, he was
-again an inmate with the forest; was once
-more buried in his original obscurity, and his
-nation only viewed him as <i>an equal</i>. Even a
-liberal grant from the State, failed of securing<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_209"></a>[209]</span>
-to him that superior consideration among them
-which his civilization had procured for him with
-the rest of mankind. The commanding preeminence
-acquired from instruction, from which
-it was expected ambition would have sprung
-up, and acted as a double stimulant, from either
-the natural inferiority of the savage mind, or
-the predetermination of his countrymen—became
-of no effect, and, in a little time, was
-wholly annihilated. Otsaquette was lost! His
-moral perdition began from the hour he left
-Fort Stanwix. Three short months had hardly
-transpired, when Intemperance had marked
-him as her own, and soon hurried him to the
-grave. And, as if the very transition had
-deadened all the finer feelings of his nature, the
-picture given him by the Marquis—the very
-portrait of his affectionate friend and benefactor
-himself—he parted with!</p>
-
-<p>Extraordinary and unnatural as the conduct
-of this educated savage may appear, the anecdote
-is not of a kind altogether unique; which
-proves, that little or nothing is to be expected
-from conferring a literary education upon those
-children of the forest:—An Indian, named
-George White-Eyes, was taken, while a boy, to
-the college at Princeton, where he received a
-classical education. On returning to his nation,
-he made some little stay in Philadelphia. He
-was amiable in his manners, and of modest demeanour,
-without exhibiting any trait of the
-savage whatever; but, no sooner had he rejoined
-his friends and former companions, in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_210"></a>[210]</span>
-the land of his nativity, than he dropped the
-garb and manners of civilization, and resumed
-those of the savage, and, drinking deep of
-their intoxicating cup, soon put a period to his
-existence.</p>
-
-<p>Many other instances might be adduced, to
-show how ineffectual have been the attempts
-to plant civilization on savage habits, by means
-of <i>literary</i> education—“Can the leopard change
-his spots?”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus33" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus33.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_211"></a>[211]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_CATASTROPHE">THE CATASTROPHE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The son of a Kickapoo Chief, being engaged
-to a Ouiattanon girl, came in quest of her to
-fort Knox, at Vincennes—though an Indian
-war was then waging against the United States;
-and, in this, the Kickapoos were among the
-most formidable. We happened to be there at
-this time. It was summer, and the weather very
-warm. The young Kickapoo was admitted into
-the fort, and, among other presents, threw down
-several joints of venison; observing to the commanding
-officer, that, if he could not eat them
-himself, (for they were tainted,) they might
-answer for his <i>hogs</i> and <i>dogs</i>—muttering at
-the same time, and making the sign of a halter
-round his neck, that perhaps they might hang
-him for appearing among them; alluding, no
-doubt, to the then Indian war.</p>
-
-<p>On the evening of the same day the young
-Kickapoo got into a drunken frolic, with other
-savages, among whom was the before mentioned
-Indian. The latter said to the Kickapoo,
-“May be I shall kill you:” and, without further
-preface, he plunged a knife into him—which
-instantly proved fatal. At this moment the
-Ouiattanons in company took the alarm—fearful
-of the consequences that might befall their
-tribe, from the death of the son of a powerful
-chieftain. It was therefore determined to propitiate
-the Kickapoo’s father, by sending a
-deputation to him with the present of a ten<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_212"></a>[212]</span>
-gallon keg of whisky as a peace offering. This
-was furnished for the purpose, on request, by
-the commanding officer of the fort. They had
-not gone far when the precious liquor proved
-too great a temptation: the keg was broached,
-and soon emptied. What then was to be done?</p>
-
-<p>Next morning, however, they appeared again
-at the fort—deplored the ‘<i>accident</i>,’ (as they
-called it,) and begged for another keg of liquor.
-This too was granted—and off they went again.
-But this keg met with the fate of the former:
-its contents proved an irresistible temptation.
-As no more whisky could now be obtained, the
-mission fell through.</p>
-
-<p>Upon this, the Indians appeared before the
-fort, with the murderer in custody, under the
-window of the writer, and demanded justice to
-be done on the prisoner. He told them it was
-an affair for themselves to settle, as it was confined
-to themselves alone. They now marched
-in Indian file, carrying off the murderer, who,
-every now and then, looked fearfully behind
-him—for the brother of the deceased’s sweetheart
-had taken post next in his rear. They had
-not proceeded far, when this brother plunged a
-knife into the prisoner’s back, which broke, and
-a part was left buried in the wound. The
-whole party now returned before the fort—the
-wounded man singing his death-song. He was
-borne off by his friends into a thicket, in the
-prairie, where all their efforts to extract the
-broken blade proved ineffectual; and the next
-day or two he died.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_213"></a>[213]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Spider, a brother of the murderer, and
-then at Kaskaskia, hearing of the predicament
-which had befallen the latter, hastened to Vincennes—but
-death had closed the scene. He
-came in time, however, to attend the funeral.
-When the body was about to be consigned to
-the earth, he opened the blanket which enveloped
-the corpse, and taking off a silver ornament
-which encompassed his head, he bound it
-around that of the defunct, saying, “There,
-brother! this will bring you respect in the land
-of Spirits.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp80" id="illus34" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus34.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_214"></a>[214]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="BUFFALO_HUNTING">BUFFALO HUNTING.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The buffalo, more properly called the bison,
-is the great object of Indian hunting in the
-west. These animals abound in the prairies; and
-they are often seen coursing over the plains in
-immense herds. Thousands of them appear
-under the direction of one of their number,
-who acts as leader. This propensity to follow
-a leader affords a ready means to the Indians
-of destroying them. The manner in which
-this is accomplished is graphically described in
-the following extract from the account of a
-late writer. It affords a wild picture of the
-scenes which present themselves to the notice
-of the traveller as he passes through the great
-prairies of the west.</p>
-
-<p>We passed a precipice of about one hundred
-and twenty feet high, under which lay scattered
-the fragments of at least one hundred carcases
-of buffaloes, although the water, which had
-washed away the lower part of the hill, must
-have carried off many of the dead. These
-buffaloes had been chased down the precipice,
-in a way very common on the Missouri, and
-by which vast herds are destroyed in a moment.
-The mode of hunting is, to select one of the
-most active and fleet young men, who is disguised,
-by a buffalo skin around his body, the
-skin of the head, with the ears and the horns,
-fastened on his own head, in such a way as to
-deceive the buffalo. Thus dressed, he fixes<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_215"></a>[215]</span>
-himself at a convenient distance, between a
-herd of buffaloes and any of the river precipices,
-which sometimes extend for some miles. His
-companions, in the meantime, get into the rear,
-and on the side of the herd, and, at a given
-signal, show themselves, and advance towards
-the buffalo: they instantly take the alarm; and,
-finding the hunters beside them, they run towards
-the disguised Indian or decoy, who leads
-them on at full speed toward the river, when,
-suddenly securing himself in some crevice of
-the cliff which he had previously fixed on, the
-herd is left on the brink of the precipice. It is
-then in vain for the foremost to retreat, or even
-to stop—they are pressed on by the hindmost
-rank, who, seeing no danger, but from the
-hunters, goad on those before them, till the
-whole are precipitated, and the shore is strewed
-with their dead bodies. Sometimes, in this
-perilous seduction, the Indian is himself either
-trodden under foot, by the rapid movements of
-the buffaloes or missing his footing in the cliff,
-is urged down the precipice along with the falling
-herd.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians now select as much meat as they
-choose, and the rest is abandoned to the wolves,
-and creates a most dreadful stench. The wolves
-who had been feasting on these carcases were
-very fat, and so gentle, that one of them was
-killed with an espontoon.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_216"></a>[216]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="RELIGION_OF_THE_INDIANS2">RELIGION OF THE INDIANS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The earliest visiters of the New World,
-on seeing among the Indians neither priests,
-temples, idols, nor sacrifices, represented them
-as a people wholly destitute of religious opinions.
-Closer inquiry, however, showed that a belief
-in the spiritual world, however imperfect, had
-a commanding influence over almost all their
-actions. Their creed includes even some lofty
-and pure conceptions. Under the title of the
-Great Spirit, the Master of Life, the Maker of
-heaven and earth, they distinctly recognise a
-supreme ruler of the universe and an arbiter of
-their destiny. A party of them, when informed
-by the missionaries of the existence of a being
-of infinite power, who had created the heavens
-and the earth, with one consent exclaimed,
-“<i>Atahocan! Atahocan!</i>” that being the name
-of their principal deity. According to Long, the
-Indians among whom he resided ascribe every
-event, propitious or unfortunate, to the favour
-or anger of the Master of Life. They address
-him for their daily subsistence; they believe him
-to convey to them presence of mind in battle;
-and amid tortures they thank him for inspiring
-them with courage. Yet though this one elevated
-and just conception is deeply graven on their
-minds, it is combined with others which show
-all the imperfection of unassisted reason in attempting
-to think rightly on this great subject.
-It may even be observed, that the term, rendered<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_217"></a>[217]</span>
-into our language “great spirit,” does not really
-convey the idea of an immaterial nature, it
-imports with them merely some being possessed
-of lofty and mysterious powers, and in this
-sense is applied to men, and even to animals.
-The brute creation, which occupies a prominent
-place in all their ideas, is often viewed by them
-as invested, to a great extent, with supernatural
-powers; an extreme absurdity, which, however,
-they share with the civilized creeds of Egypt
-and India.</p>
-
-<p>When the missionaries, on their first arrival,
-attempted to form an idea of the Indian mythology,
-it appeared to them extremely complicated,
-more especially because those who attempted
-to explain it had no fixed opinions.
-Each man differed from his neighbour, and at
-another time from himself; and when the discrepancies
-were pointed out, no attempt was
-made to reconcile them. The southern tribes,
-who had a more settled faith, are described by
-Adair as intoxicated with spiritual pride, and
-denouncing even their European allies as “the
-accursed people.” The native Canadian, on the
-contrary, is said to have been so little tenacious,
-that he would at any time renounce all his theological
-errors for a pipe of tobacco, though, as
-soon as it was smoked, he immediately relapsed.
-An idea was found prevalent respecting a certain
-mystical animal, called Mesou or Messessagen,
-who, when the earth was buried in water, had
-drawn it up and restored it. Others spoke of a
-contest between the hare, the fox, the beaver, and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_218"></a>[218]</span>
-the seal, for the empire of the world. Among
-the principal nations of Canada, the hare is
-thought to have attained a decided preeminence;
-and hence the Great Spirit and the Great Hare
-are sometimes used as synonymous terms.
-What should have raised this creature to such
-distinction seems rather unaccountable; unless
-it were that its extreme swiftness might appear
-something supernatural. Among the Ottowas
-alone the heavenly bodies become an object of
-veneration; the sun appears to rank as their
-supreme deity.</p>
-
-<p>To dive into the abyss of futurity has always
-been a favourite object of superstition. It has
-been attempted by various means; but the
-Indian seeks it chiefly through his dreams, which
-always bear with him a sacred character. Before
-engaging in any high undertaking, especially
-in hunting or war, the dreams of the principal
-chiefs are carefully watched and studiously
-examined; and according to the interpretation
-their conduct is guided. A whole nation has
-been set in motion by the sleeping fancies of a
-single man. Sometimes a person imagines in
-his sleep that he has been presented with an
-article of value by another, who then cannot,
-without impropriety, leave the omen unfulfilled.
-When Sir William Johnson, during the American
-war, was negotiating an alliance with a
-friendly tribe, the chief confidentially disclosed
-that, during his slumbers, he had been favoured
-with a vision of Sir William bestowing upon
-him the rich laced coat which formed his full<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_219"></a>[219]</span>
-dress. The fulfilment of this revelation was
-very inconvenient; yet, on being assured that
-it positively occurred, the English commander
-found it advisable to resign his uniform. Soon
-after, however, he unfolded to the Indian a
-dream with which he had himself been favored,
-and in which the former was seen presenting
-him with a large tract of fertile land most commodiously
-situated. The native ruler admitted
-that, since the vision had been vouchsafed, it
-must be realized, yet earnestly proposed to cease
-this mutual dreaming, which he found had
-turned much to his own disadvantage.</p>
-
-<p>The manitou is an object of peculiar veneration;
-and the fixing upon this guardian power
-is not only the most important event in the
-history of a youth, but even constitutes his
-initiation into active life. As a preliminary, his
-face is painted black, and he undergoes a severe
-fast, which is, if possible, prolonged for eight
-days. This is preparatory to the dream in which
-he is to behold the idol destined ever after to
-afford him aid and protection. In this state of
-excited expectation, and while every nocturnal
-vision is carefully watched, there seldom fails to
-occur to his mind something which, as it makes
-a deep impression, is pronounced his manitou.
-Most commonly it is a trifling and even fantastic
-article; the head, beak, or claw of a bird, the
-hoof of a cow, or even a piece of wood. However,
-having undergone a thorough perspiration
-in one of their vapour-baths, he is laid on his
-back, and a picture of it is drawn upon his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_220"></a>[220]</span>
-breast by needles of fish-bone dipped in vermilion.
-A good specimen of the original being
-procured, it is carefully treasured up; and to it
-he applies in every emergency, hoping that it
-will inspire his dreams, and secure to him every
-kind of good fortune. When, however, notwithstanding
-every means of propitiating its
-favour, misfortunes befall him, the manitou is
-considered as having exposed itself to just and
-serious reproach. He begins with remonstrances,
-representing all that has been done for it, the
-disgrace it incurs by not protecting its votary,
-and, finally, the danger that, in case of repeated
-neglect, it may be discarded for another. Nor
-is this considered merely as an empty threat;
-for if the manitou is judged incorrigible, it is
-thrown away; and by means of a fresh course
-of fasting, dreaming, sweating, and painting,
-another is installed, from whom better success
-may be hoped.</p>
-
-<p>The absence of temples, worship, sacrifices,
-and all the observances to which superstition
-prompts the untutored mind, is a remarkable
-circumstance, and, as we have already remarked,
-led the early visiters to believe that the Indians
-were strangers to all religious ideas. Yet the
-missionaries found room to suspect that some
-of their great feasts, in which every thing presented
-must be eaten, bore an idolatrous character,
-and were held in honour of the Great
-Hare. The Ottawas, whose mythological system
-seems to have been the most complicated, were
-wont to keep a regular festival to celebrate the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_221"></a>[221]</span>
-beneficence of the sun; on which occasion the
-luminary was told that this service was in return
-for the good hunting he had procured for his
-people, and as an encouragement to persevere
-in his friendly cares. They were also observed
-to erect an idol in the middle of their town, and
-sacrifice to it; but such ceremonies were by no
-means general. On first witnessing Christian
-worship, the only idea suggested by it was that
-of their asking some temporal good, which was
-either granted or refused. The missionaries
-mention two Hurons, who arrived from the
-woods soon after the congregation had assembled.
-Standing without, they began to speculate
-what it was the white men were asking, and
-then whether they were getting it. As the service
-continued beyond expectation, it was concluded
-they were <i>not</i> getting it; and as the devotional
-duties still proceeded, they admired the perseverance
-with which this rejected suit was
-urged. At length, when the vesper hymn began,
-one of the savages observed to the other:
-“Listen to them now in despair, crying with all
-their might.”</p>
-
-<p>The grand doctrine of a life beyond the grave
-was, among all the tribes of America, most
-deeply cherished and most sincerely believed.
-They had even formed a distinct idea of the
-region whither they hoped to be transported,
-and of the new and happier mode of existence,
-free from those wars, tortures, and cruelties
-which throw so dark a shade over their lot upon
-earth. Yet their conceptions on this subject<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_222"></a>[222]</span>
-were by no means either exalted or spiritualized.
-They expected simply a prolongation of their
-present life and enjoyments, under more favourable
-circumstances, and with the same
-objects furnished in greater choice and abundance.
-In that brighter land the sun ever shines
-unclouded, the forests abound with deer, the
-lakes and rivers with fish; benefits which are
-farther enhanced in their imagination by a faithful
-wife and dutiful children. They do not reach
-it, however, till after a journey of several months,
-and encountering various obstacles; a broad
-river, a chain of lofty mountains, and the attack
-of a furious dog. This favoured country lies
-far in the west, at the remotest boundary of
-the earth, which is supposed to terminate in a
-steep precipice, with the ocean rolling beneath.
-Sometimes, in the too eager pursuit of game,
-the spirits fall over, and are converted into
-fishes. The local position of their paradise appears
-connected with certain obscure intimations
-received from their wandering neighbours of
-the Mississippi, the Rocky Mountains, and the
-distant shores of the Pacific. This system of
-belief labours under a great defect, inasmuch as
-it scarcely connects felicity in the future world
-with virtuous conduct in the present. The one
-is held to be simply a continuation of the other;
-and under this impression, the arms, ornaments,
-and everything that had contributed to the welfare
-of the deceased, are interred along with
-him. This supposed assurance of a future life
-so conformable to their gross habits and conceptions,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_223"></a>[223]</span>
-was found by the missionaries a serious
-obstacle when they attempted to allure them
-by the hope of a destiny, purer and higher indeed,
-but less accordant with their untutored
-conceptions. Upon being told that in the promised
-world they would neither hunt, eat, drink,
-nor marry, many of them declared that, far
-from endeavouring to reach such an abode, they
-would consider their arrival there as the greatest
-calamity. Mention is made of a Huron girl
-whom one of the Christian ministers was endeavouring
-to instruct, and whose first question
-was what she would find to eat. The answer
-being “Nothing,” she then asked what she
-would see; and being informed that she would
-see the Maker of heaven and earth, she expressed
-herself much at a loss how she should
-address him.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus35" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus35.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_224"></a>[224]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_FUNERALS">INDIAN FUNERALS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Another sentiment, congenial with that now
-described, is most deeply rooted in the mind of
-the Indians. This is reverence for the dead,
-with which Chateaubriand, though somewhat
-hastily, considers them more deeply imbued than
-any other people. During life they are by no
-means lavish in their expressions of tenderness,
-but on the hour of final separation it is displayed
-with extraordinary force. When any
-member of a family becomes seriously ill, all
-the resources of magic and medicine are exhausted
-in order to procure his recovery. When
-the fatal moment arrives, all the kindred burst
-into loud lamentations, which continue till some
-person possessing the requisite authority desires
-them to cease. These expressions of grief,
-however, are renewed for a considerable time
-at sunrise and sunset. After three days the
-funeral takes place, when all the provisions
-which the family can procure are expended in
-a feast, to which the neighbours are generally
-invited; and, although on all solemn occasions
-it is required that every thing should be eaten,
-the relations do not partake. These last cut off
-their hair, cover their heads, paint their faces of
-a black colour, and continue long to deny themselves
-every species of amusement. The deceased
-is then interred with his arms and ornaments,
-his face painted, and his person attired
-in the richest robes which they can furnish. It<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_225"></a>[225]</span>
-was the opinion of one of the early missionaries,
-that the chief object of the Hurons in their
-traffic with the French was to procure materials
-for honouring their dead; and, as a proof of
-this, many of them have been seen shivering
-half naked in the cold, while their hut contained
-rich robes to be wrapped round them after their
-decease. The body is placed in the tomb in an
-upright posture, and skins are carefully spread
-round it, so that no part may touch the earth.
-This, however, is by no means the final ceremony,
-being followed by another still more
-solemn and singular. Every eighth, tenth, or
-twelfth year, according to the custom of the
-different nations, is celebrated the festival of the
-dead; and, till then, the souls are supposed to
-hover round their former tenement, and not to
-depart for their final abode in the west. On
-this occasion the people march in procession to
-the places of interment, open the tombs, and, on
-beholding the mortal remains of their friends,
-continue some time fixed in mournful silence.
-The women then break out into loud cries, and
-the party begin to collect the bones, removing
-every remnant of flesh. The remains are then
-wrapped in fresh and valuable robes, and conveyed
-amid continual lamentation to the family
-cabin. A feast is then given, followed during
-several days by dances, games, and prize-combats,
-to which strangers often repair from a
-great distance. This mode of celebration certainly
-accords very ill with the sad occasion;
-yet the Greek and Roman obsequies were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_226"></a>[226]</span>
-solemnized in a similar manner; nay, in many
-parts of Scotland, till very recently, they were
-accompanied by festival, and often by revelry.
-The relics are then carried to the council-house
-of the nation, where they are hung for exhibition
-along the walls, with fresh presents destined
-to be interred along with them. Sometimes
-they are even displayed from village to village.
-At length, being deposited in a pit previously
-dug in the earth, and lined with the richest furs,
-they are finally entombed. Tears and lamentations
-are again lavished; and during a few
-days food is brought to the place. The bones
-of their fathers are considered by the Indians
-the strongest ties to their native soil; and when
-calamity forces them to quit it, these mouldering
-fragments are, if possible, conveyed along with
-them.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus36" style="max-width: 31.25em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus36.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_227"></a>[227]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_CANNIBALISM">INDIAN CANNIBALISM.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It has been made a question whether the
-Indians can be justly charged with cannibalism.
-It is certain that all the terms by which they
-designate their inhuman mode of putting a
-prisoner to death bear reference to this horrid
-practice. The expressions are to throw him
-into the caldron, to devour him, to eat soup
-made of his flesh. It has hence been plausibly
-inferred that this enormity really prevailed in
-early times, but was changed, we can scarcely
-say mitigated, into the present system of torture.
-Yet, as every action is described by them in
-terms highly figurative, those now quoted may
-have been used as expressing most fully the
-complete gratification of their revenge. Of
-this charge they cannot now be either condemned
-or wholly acquitted. In the excited
-fury of their passions, portions of the flesh are
-often seized, roasted, and eaten, and draughts
-taken of the blood. To eat an enemy’s heart
-is considered a peculiar enjoyment. Long
-mentions a gentleman who came upon a party
-who were busy broiling a human heart, when
-he with difficulty prevailed on them to desist.
-There is little hesitation among them, in periods
-of scarcity, to relieve hunger with the flesh of
-their captives; and during one war, this fate is
-said to have befallen many French soldiers who
-fell into the hands of the Five Nations. Colonel
-Schuyler told Colden, that, having entered the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_228"></a>[228]</span>
-cabin of a chief who had some rich soup before
-him, he was invited to partake. Being hungry
-and tired, he readily agreed, till the ladle, being
-put into the great caldron, brought up a human
-hand, the sight of which put an immediate end
-to his appetite and meal.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_DANCES">INDIAN DANCES.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The dances of the Indians, even those at
-common festivals, are on an extensive scale, requiring
-to a complete performance forty or fifty
-persons, who execute their evolutions by following
-each other round a great fire kindled in
-the centre. Their movements, monotonous but
-violent, consist in stamping furiously on the
-ground, and often brandishing their arms in a
-manner compared by an able writer to a baker
-converting flour into dough. They keep good
-time; but the music is so exceedingly simple
-that this implies little merit. They conclude
-with a loud shout or howl, which echoes
-frightfully through the woods. The dances in
-celebration of particular events are of a more
-varied character, and often form a very expressive
-pantomime. The war-dance is the most
-favourite and frequent. In this extraordinary
-performance, a complete image is given of the
-terrible reality; the war-whoop is sounded with
-the most frightful yells; the tomahawk is wildly
-brandished; and the enemy are surprised, seized,
-and scalped, or carried off for torture. The<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_229"></a>[229]</span>
-calumet-dance, which celebrates peace between
-nations, and the marriage-dance, which represents
-domestic life, are much more pleasing.
-Some mention is made of a mystic dance,
-carried on by the jugglers or doctors, with
-strange superstitious ceremonies, and in which
-a supernatural personage, termed by some the
-devil, rises and performs; but it does not seem
-to have been witnessed by any European, and
-is said to be now in a great measure disused.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDIAN_GAMES">INDIAN GAMES.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>There are games to which the Indians are
-fondly attached, which, though they be only
-ranked under the head of amusement, are yet
-constructed in the same serious manner as their
-other transactions. Their great parties are said
-to be collected by supernatural authority, communicated
-by the jugglers; and they are preceded,
-like their wars and hunts, by a course of
-fasting, dreaming, and other means of propitiating
-fortune. The favourite game is that of the
-bone, in which small pieces of that substance,
-resembling dice, and painted of different colours,
-are thrown in the air, and according to the
-manner in which they fall, the game is decided.
-Only two persons can play; but a numerous
-party, and sometimes whole villages, embrace
-one side or the other, and look on with intense
-interest. At each throw, especially if it be decisive,
-tremendous shouts are raised; the players<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_230"></a>[230]</span>
-and spectators equally resemble persons possessed;
-the air rings with invocations to the
-bones and to the manitous. Their eagerness
-sometimes leads to quarreling and even fighting,
-which on no other occasion ever disturb the
-interior of these societies. To such a pitch are
-they occasionally worked up, that they stake
-successively all they possess, and even their
-personal liberty; but this description must apply
-only to the more southern nations, as slavery
-was unknown among the Canadian Indians.</p>
-
-<p>A temporary interval of wild license, of
-emancipation from all the restraints of dignity
-and decorum, seems to afford an enjoyment
-highly prized in all rude societies. Corresponding
-with the saturnalia and bacchanals of antiquity,
-the Indians have their festivals of dreams, which,
-during fifteen days, enlivens the inaction of the
-coldest season. Laying aside all their usual
-order and gravity, they run about, frightfully
-disguised, and committing every imaginable
-extravagance. He who meets another demands
-an explanation of his visions, and if not satisfied,
-imposes some fantastic penalty. He throws
-upon him cold water, hot ashes, or filth; sometimes,
-rushing into his cabin, he breaks and
-destroys the furniture. Although everything
-appears wild and unpremeditated, it is alleged
-that opportunities are often taken to give vent
-to old and secret resentments. The period
-having elapsed, a feast is given, order is restored,
-and the damages done are carefully repaired.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_231"></a>[231]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="BEAUTIFUL_TRAIT_OF_CHARACTER">BEAUTIFUL TRAIT OF CHARACTER.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One M’Dougal, a native of Argyleshire, having
-emigrated to Upper Canada, from anxiety
-to make the most of his scanty capital, or some
-other motive, he purchased a location, where
-the price of land is merely nominal, in a country
-thinly peopled, and on the extreme verge of
-civilization. His first care was to construct a
-house, and plant in the wild. This task finished,
-he spent his whole time, early and late, in the
-garden and the fields. By vigorous exertions,
-and occasional assistance, he brought a few
-acres of ground under crop; acquired a stock
-of cattle, sheep and hogs; made additional inroads
-on the glade and the forest, and, though
-his toils were hard, gradually and imperceptibly
-became, in a rough way, “well enough to live,”
-as compared with the poverty he had abandoned
-at home.</p>
-
-<p>His greatest discomforts were, distance from
-his neighbours, the church, markets, and even
-the mill; and, along with these, the suspension
-(or rather, the enjoyment) after long intervals
-of time, of those endearing charities and friendly
-offices, which lend such a charm to social life.</p>
-
-<p>On one occasion, M’Dougal had a melder of
-corn to grind, and as the distance was considerable,
-and the roads none of the smoothest, this
-important part of his duty could only be performed
-by starting with the sun, and returning
-with the going down of the same. In his absence,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_232"></a>[232]</span>
-the care of the cattle devolved on his
-spouse, and as they did not return at the usual
-hour, the careful matron went out in quest of
-them. Beyond its mere outskirts, the forest was,
-to her, <i>terra incognita</i>, in the most emphatic
-sense of the term; and with no compass, or
-notched trees to guide, it is not to be wondered
-at that she wandered long and wearily to very
-little purpose. Like alps on alps, tall trees arose
-on every side—a boundless continuity of shade—and,
-fatigued with the search, she deemed it
-prudent to retrace her steps, while it was yet
-time. But this resolution was much easier
-formed than executed; returning was as dangerous
-as “going o’er,” and, after wandering
-for hours, she sunk on the ground, her eyes
-swollen and filled with tears, and her mind
-agitated almost to distraction. But here she had
-not rested many minutes, before she was startled
-by the sound of approaching footsteps, and,
-anon, an Indian hunter stood before her, “a
-stoic of the woods, a man without fear.” Mrs.
-M’Dougal knew that Indians lived at no great
-distance, but as she had never seen a member
-of the tribe, her emotions were those of terror—quickening,
-it may be said, every pulse, and
-yet paralyzing every limb. The Indian’s views
-were more comprehensive; constantly on the
-look out, in search of the quarry, and accustomed
-to make circuits, comprising the superficies of
-many a highland mountain and glen, he had
-observed her, without being observed himself,
-knew her home, recognized her person, comprehended<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_233"></a>[233]</span>
-her mishap, divined her errand, and
-immediately beckoned her to follow him. The
-unfortunate woman understood his signal, and
-obeyed it, as far as terror left her power; and,
-after a lengthened sweep, which added not a
-little to her previous fatigue, they arrived at the
-door of an Indian wigwam.</p>
-
-<p>Her conductor invited her to enter, by signs:
-but this she sternly refused to do, dreading the
-consequence, and preferring death in the open
-air to the tender mercies of cannibals within.
-Perceiving her reluctance, and scanning her
-feelings, the hospitable Indian darted into the
-wigwam, and communed with his wife, who,
-in a few minutes, also appeared: and, by certain
-signs and sympathies, known only to females,
-calmed the stranger’s fears, and induced her to
-enter their lowly abode. Venison was instantly
-prepared for supper, and Mrs. M’Dougal—though
-still alarmed at the novelty of her situation,
-found the viands delicious, and had rarely,
-if ever, partaken of so savoury a meal. Aware
-that she was wearied, the Indians removed from
-their place near the roof, two beautiful deer
-skins, and, by stretching and fixing them across,
-divided the wigwam into two apartments. Mats
-were also spread in both, and next, the stranger
-was given to understand, that the further dormitory
-was expressly designed for her accommodation.
-But here again her courage failed
-her, and to the most pressing intreaties, she
-replied by signs, as well as she could, that she
-would prefer to sit and sleep by the fire. This<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_234"></a>[234]</span>
-determination seemed to puzzle the Indian and
-his squaw sadly. Often they looked at each
-other, and conversed softly in their own language:
-and, at last, the Red took the White
-woman by the hand, led her to her couch, and
-became her bedfellow. In the morning she
-awoke greatly refreshed, and anxious to depart,
-without further delay—but the Indian would
-on no account permit it. Breakfast was prepared—another
-savoury and well-cooked meal—and
-then the Indian accompanied his guest,
-and conducted her to the very spot where the
-cattle were grazing. These he kindly drove
-from the wood, on the verge of which Mrs.
-M’Dougal descried her husband, running about
-every where, hallooing and seeking for her, in
-a state of absolute distraction. Great was his
-joy, and great his gratitude to her Indian benefactor,
-who was invited to the house, and treated
-to the best the larder afforded, and presented,
-on his departure, with a suit of clothes.</p>
-
-<p>In about three days he returned, and endeavoured,
-by every wile, to induce Mr. M’Dougal
-to follow him into the forest. But this invitation
-the other positively declined—and the poor
-Indian went on his way, obviously grieved and
-disappointed. But again he returned; and,
-though words were wanting, renewed his intreaties—but
-still vainly, and without effect:
-and then, as a last desperate effort, he hit upon
-an expedient, which none, save an Indian
-hunter, would have thought of. Mrs. M’Dougal
-had a nursling only a few months old—a fact<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_235"></a>[235]</span>
-the Indian failed not to notice. After his pantomimic
-eloquence had been thrown away, he
-approached the cradle, seized the child, and
-darted out of the house with the speed of an
-antelope. The alarmed parents instantly followed,
-supplicating and imploring, at the top
-of their voices. But the Indian’s resolves were
-as fixed as fate—and away he went, slow
-enough to encourage his pursuers, but still in
-the van by a good many paces, and far enough
-ahead to achieve the secret purpose he had
-formed—like the parent-bird, skimming the
-ground, when she wishes to wile the enemy
-from her nest. Again and again Mr. M’Dougal
-wished to continue the chase alone—but maternal
-anxiety baffled every remonstrance; and
-this anxiety was, if possible, increased, when
-she saw the painted savage enter the wood, and
-steer, as she thought, his course towards his
-own cabin. The Indian, however, was in no
-hurry;—occasionally, he cast a glance behind,
-poised the child almost like a feather, treading
-his way with admirable dexterity, and kept the
-swaddling clothes so closely drawn around it,
-that not even the winds of heaven were permitted
-to visit it roughly. It is, of course, needless
-to go into all the details of this singular
-journey, further than to say, that the Indian, at
-length, called a halt on the margin of a most
-beautiful prairie, teeming with the richest vegetation,
-and comprising many thousands of acres.
-In a moment the child was restored to its parents—who,
-wondering what so strange a procedure<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_236"></a>[236]</span>
-could mean, stood, for some minutes, panting
-for breath, and eyeing one another in silent and
-speechless astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>The Indian, on the other hand, appeared
-overjoyed at the success of his manœuvre—and
-never did a human being frisk about and
-gesticulate with greater animation. We have
-heard, or read, of a professor of signs: and
-supposing such a character were wanted, the
-selection could not—or, at least should not—be
-a matter of difficulty, so long as even a remnant
-remains of the aborigines of North America.
-All travellers agree in describing their gestures
-as highly dignified, eloquent, and intelligent:
-and we have the authority of Mr. M’Dougal
-for saying, that the hero of the present strictly
-authentic tale, proved himself to be a perfect
-master of the art. The restoration of the child—the
-beauty and wide extent of the prairies,
-and various other circumstances combined—flashed
-across our countryman’s mind—operating
-conviction where jealously and distrust had
-lurked before. Mr. M’Dougal, in a trice, examined
-the soil, and immediately saw the propriety
-of the advice given by the <i>untutored one</i>.
-By a sort of tacit agreement, a day was fixed
-for the removal of the materials of our countryman’s
-cabin, goods and chattels;—and the
-Indian, true to his word, brought a detachment
-of his tribe to assist in one of the most romantic
-“flittings” that ever was undertaken either in
-the old or new world. In a few days a roomy
-log-house was fashioned, and a garden formed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_237"></a>[237]</span>
-in a convenient section of the beautiful prairie,
-from which the smoke was seen curling, and
-the woodpecker tapping at no great distance.
-M’Dougal was greatly pleased at the change—and
-no wonder, seeing that he could almost
-boast of a body-guard as bold as the bowmen
-of Robin Hood. His Indian friend speedily
-became a sort of foster brother, and his tribe as
-faithful as the most attached Tail of Gillies that
-ever surrounded a Highland chieftain. Even
-the stupid kine lowed, on finding themselves
-suddenly transferred to a boundless range of
-richest pasture:—and, up to the date of the
-last advices, were improving rapidly in condition,
-and increasing in numbers.</p>
-
-<p>The little garden was smiling like a rose in
-the desert—grass, overabundant, was gradually
-giving way to thriving crops, and the kine so
-well satisfied with their <i>gang</i>, that the herds
-and enclosures were like unheeded to keep them
-from the corn. The Indians continued friendly
-and faithful—occasionally bringing presents of
-venison and other game, and were uniformly
-rewarded from the stores of a dairy, overflowing
-with milk, butter, and cheese.</p>
-
-<p>Attached as the Red man was to his own
-mode of life, he was induced at length to form
-a part of the establishment, in the capacity of
-grieve, or head shepherd—a duty he undertook
-most cheerfully, as it still left him opportunities
-of meeting and communing with his friends,
-and reconnoitering the altering denizens of the
-forest. Let us hope, therefore, that no untoward<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_238"></a>[238]</span>
-accident will occur to mar this beautiful
-picture of sylvan life; that the M’Dougal colony
-will wax stronger, till every section of the
-prairie is forced to yield tribute to the spade
-and the plough.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_REFORMED_INDIAN">THE REFORMED INDIAN.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Some of the Indians believe, that the “Evil
-Spirit” is the maker of spirituous liquors, from
-which, notwithstanding, hardly one of them
-can refrain. An Indian near the Delaware
-Water Gap, told Mr. Heckewelder, a missionary,
-that he had once, when under the influence of
-strong liquor, killed the best Indian friend he
-had, fancying him to be his worst avowed
-enemy. He said that the deception was complete;
-and that while intoxicated, the face of
-his friend presented to <i>his</i> eyes all the features
-of the man with whom he was in a state of
-hostility. It is impossible to express the horror
-which struck him, when he awoke from that
-delusion. He was so shocked, that from that
-moment, he resolved never more to taste of the
-maddening potion, of which he was convinced
-the devil was the inventor; for that it could
-only be the “Evil Spirit” who made him see
-his enemy when his friend was before him, and
-produced so strong a delusion on his bewildered
-senses, that he actually killed him. From that
-time until his death, which happened thirty
-years afterwards, he never drank a drop of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_239"></a>[239]</span>
-ardent spirits, which he always called “the
-devil’s blood;” and was firmly persuaded that
-the devil, or some of his infernal spirits, had a
-hand in preparing it.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="FIDELITY">FIDELITY.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Among the North American Indians, one of
-the first lessons they inculcate on their children,
-is duty to their parents, and respect for old age;
-and there is not among the most civilized
-nations, any people who more strictly observe
-the duty of filial obedience. A father need
-only to say, in the presence of his children, “I
-want such a thing done”—“I want one of my
-children to go upon such an errand”—“Let me
-see who is the good child that will do it.” The
-word <i>good</i> operates as it were by magic, and
-the children immediately vie with each other to
-comply with the parent’s wishes. If a father
-sees an old decrepid man or woman pass by,
-led along by a child, he will draw the attention
-of his own children to the object, by saying,
-“What a <i>good</i> child that must be, which pays
-such attention to the aged! That child, indeed,
-looks forward to the time when it will likewise
-be old, and need its children’s help.” Or he
-will say, “May the Great Spirit, who looks upon
-him, grant this <i>good</i> child a long life!”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_240"></a>[240]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="STRATAGEM_DEFEATED">STRATAGEM DEFEATED.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Early in the war of the American revolution,
-a Sergeant, who travelled through the woods
-of New Hampshire, on his way to the American
-army, met with a singular adventure, which
-ended much to his credit.</p>
-
-<p>He had twelve men with him. Their route
-was far from any settlement, and they were
-obliged every night to encamp in the woods.
-The Sergeant had seen a good deal of the
-Indians, and understood them well;—early in
-the afternoon, one day, as they were marching
-on, over bogs, swamps, and brooks, under the
-towering maple trees, a body of Indians, exceeding
-their own number, rushed out upon a
-hill in front of them.</p>
-
-<p>They appeared to be pleased at meeting with
-the Sergeant and his party. They considered
-them, they said, as their best friends; for themselves,
-they had taken up the hatchet for the
-Americans, and would scalp and strip those
-rascally English for them, like so many wild
-cats. “How do you do, pro?” (meaning
-brother) said one. “How do you do, pro?”
-said another, and so they went about, shaking
-hands with the Sergeant and his twelve men.</p>
-
-<p>They went off, at last, and the Sergeant,
-having marched onward a mile or two, halted
-his men, and addressed them,—“My brave
-fellows,” said he, “we must use all possible
-caution, or before morning we shall all of us<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_241"></a>[241]</span>
-be dead men. You are amazed, but depend
-upon me, these Indians have tried to put our
-suspicion to sleep; you will see more of them
-by-and-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>It was concluded, finally, to adopt the following
-scheme for defence: they encamped for the
-night, near a stream of water, which protected
-them from behind. A large oak was felled,
-and a brilliant fire kindled; each man cut a log
-of wood, about the size of his body, rolled it
-nicely up in his blanket, placed his hat on the
-end of it, and laid it before the fire, that the
-enemy might take it for a man.</p>
-
-<p>Thirteen logs were fitted out in this way,
-representing the Sergeant and his twelve men.
-They then placed themselves, with loaded guns,
-behind the fallen tree; by this time it was dark,
-but the fire was kept burning till midnight.
-The Sergeant knew, that if the Savages ever
-came, they would come now.</p>
-
-<p>A tall Indian was seen, at length, through
-the glimmering of the fire, which was getting
-low. He moved cautiously towards them,
-skulking, as an Indian always does. He seemed
-to suspect, at first, that a guard might be
-watching, but seeing none, he came forward
-more boldly, rested on his toes, and was seen to
-move his finger, as he counted the thirteen men,
-sleeping, as he supposed, by the fire. He
-counted them again, and retired; another came
-up, and did the same. Then the whole party,
-sixteen in number, came up and glared silently
-at the logs, till they seemed to be satisfied they<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_242"></a>[242]</span>
-were fast asleep. Presently they took aim,
-fired their whole number of guns upon the logs,
-yelled the horrid war-whoop, and pushed forward
-to murder and scalp their supposed victims.
-The Sergeant and his men were ready for them;
-they fired upon them, and not one of the Indians
-was left to tell the story of that night. The
-Sergeant reached the army in safety.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="SCENES_IN_KING_WILLIAMS_WAR_1689">SCENES IN KING WILLIAM’S WAR, 1689.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<h3>SURPRISE OF DOVER.</h3>
-
-<p>Thirteen years had almost elapsed since the
-seizure of the 400 Indians, at Cocheco, by
-Major Waldron; during all which time an
-inextinguishable thirst of revenge had been
-cherished among them, which never till now
-found opportunity for gratification. Wonolanset,
-one of the sachems of Penacook, who was
-dismissed with his people at the time of the
-seizure, always observed his father’s dying
-charge, not to quarrel with the English; but
-Hagkins, another sachem, who had been treated
-with neglect by Cranfield, was more ready to
-listen to the seducing invitations of Castine’s
-emissaries. Some of those Indians, who were
-then seized and sold into slavery abroad, had
-found their way home, and could not rest till
-they had their revenge. Accordingly a confederacy
-being formed between the tribes of
-Penacook and Pigwacket, and the strange<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_243"></a>[243]</span>
-Indians (as they were called) who were incorporated
-with them, it was determined to
-surprise the major and his neighbours, among
-whom they had all this time been peaceably
-conversant.</p>
-
-<p>In that part of the town of Dover which lies
-about the first falls in the river Cocheco, were
-five garrisoned houses; three on the north side,
-called respectively, Waldron, Otis, and Heard;
-and two on the south side, Peter Coffin and his
-son’s. These houses were surrounded with
-timber walls, the gates of which, as well as the
-house doors, were secured with bolts and bars.
-The neighbouring families retired to these houses
-by night; but by an unaccountable negligence,
-no watch was kept. The Indians who were
-daily passing through the town, visiting and
-trading with the inhabitants, as usual in time of
-peace, viewed their situation with an attentive
-eye. Some hints of a mischievous design had
-been given out by their squaws; but in such
-dark and ambiguous terms that no one could
-comprehend their meaning. Some of the people
-were uneasy; but Waldron, who, from a long
-course of experience, was intimately acquainted
-with the Indians, and on other occasions had
-been ready enough to suspect them, was now so
-thoroughly secure, that when some of the people
-hinted their fears to him, he merrily bade them
-to go and plant their pumpkins, saying that he
-would tell them when the Indians would break
-out. The very evening before the mischief
-was done, being told by a young man that the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_244"></a>[244]</span>
-town was full of Indians, and the people were
-much concerned; he answered that he knew
-the Indians very well, and there was no danger.</p>
-
-<p>The plan which the Indians had preconcerted
-was, that two squaws should go to each of the
-garrisoned houses in the evening, and ask leave
-to lodge by the fire; that in the night when the
-people were asleep they should open the doors
-and gates, and give the signal by a whistle,
-upon which the strange Indians, who were to
-be within hearing, should rush in, and take
-their long meditated revenge. This plan being
-ripe for execution, on the evening of Thursday
-the 27th of June, two squaws applied to each
-of the garrisons for lodging, as they frequently
-did in time of peace. They were admitted into
-all but the younger Coffin’s, and the people, at
-their request, shewed them how to open the
-doors, in case they should have occasion to go
-out in the night. Mesandowit, one of their
-chiefs, went to Waldron’s garrison, and was
-kindly entertained, as he had often been before.
-The squaws told the major, that a number of
-Indians were coming to trade with him the
-next day, and Mesandowit while at supper,
-with his usual familiarity, said, “Brother Waldron,
-what would you do if the strange Indians
-should come?” The major carelessly answered,
-that he could assemble 100 men, by lifting up
-his finger. In this unsuspecting confidence the
-family retired to rest.</p>
-
-<p>When all was quiet, the gates were opened
-and the signal given. The Indians entered, set<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_245"></a>[245]</span>
-a guard at the door, and rushed into the major’s
-apartment, which was an inner room. Awakened
-by the noise, he jumped out of bed, and though
-now advanced in life to the age of eighty years,
-he retained so much vigour as to drive them
-with his sword through two or three doors, but
-as he was returning for his other arms, they
-came behind him, stunned him with a hatchet,
-drew him into his hall, and seating him in an
-elbow chair on a long table insultingly asked
-him, “Who shall judge Indians now?” They
-then obliged the people in the house to get them
-some victuals: and when they had done eating,
-they cut the major across the breast and belly
-with knives, each one with a stroke saying, “I
-cross out my account.” They then cut off his
-nose and ears, forcing them into his mouth—and
-when, spent with the loss of blood, he was
-falling down from the table, one of them held
-his own sword under him, which put an end to
-his misery. They also killed his son in law
-Abraham Lee; but took his daughter Lee with
-several others, and having pillaged the house,
-left it on fire. Otis’s garrison, which was next
-to the major’s, met with the same fate; he was
-killed, with several others, and his wife and
-child were captured. Heard’s was saved by
-the barking of a dog just as the Indians were
-entering: Elder Wentworth, who was awakened
-by the noise, pushed them out, and falling on
-his back, set his feet against the gate and held
-it till he had alarmed the people; two balls
-were fired through it but both missed him. Coffin’s<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_246"></a>[246]</span>
-house was surprised, but as the Indians
-had no particular enmity to him, they spared
-his life, and the lives of his family, and contended
-themselves with pillaging the house.
-Finding a bag of money, they made him throw
-it by handfuls on the floor, while they amused
-themselves in scrambling for it. They then
-went to the house of his son who would not
-admit the squaws in the evening, and summoned
-him to surrender, promising him quarter: he
-declined their offer, and determined to defend his
-house, till they brought out his father and
-threatened to kill him before his eyes; filial affection
-then overcame his resolution, and he
-surrendered. They put both families together
-into a deserted house, intending to reserve them
-for prisoners; but while the Indians were busy
-in plundering, they all escaped.</p>
-
-<p>Twenty-three people were killed in this surprisal,
-and twenty-nine were captured; five or
-six houses with the mills were burned; and so
-expeditious were the Indians in the execution
-of their plot, that before the people could be
-collected from the other parts of the town to
-oppose them, they fled with their prisoners and
-booty. As they passed by Heard’s garrison in
-their retreat, they fired upon it, but the people
-being prepared and resolved to defend it, and
-the enemy being in haste, it was preserved. The
-preservation of its owner was more remarkable.</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth Heard, with her three sons and a
-daughter, and some others, were returning in
-the night from Portsmouth; they passed up the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_247"></a>[247]</span>
-river in their boat unperceived by the Indians,
-who were then in possession of the houses; but
-suspecting danger by the noise which they
-heard, after they had landed they betook themselves
-to Waldron’s garrison, where they saw
-lights, which they imagined were set up for
-direction to those who might be seeking a
-refuge. They knocked and begged earnestly
-for admission, but no answer being given, a
-young man of the company climbed up the
-wall, and saw, to his inexpressible surprise, an
-Indian standing in the door of the house with
-his gun. The woman was so overcome with
-the fright that she was unable to fly, but begged
-her children to shift for themselves, and they
-with heavy hearts left her. When she had a
-little recovered she crawled into some bushes,
-and lay there till day-light: she then perceived
-an Indian coming toward her with a pistol in his
-hand, he looked at her and went away; returning,
-he looked at her again, and she asked him
-what he would have. He made no answer, but
-ran yelling to the house, and she saw him no
-more. She kept her place till the house was
-burned and the Indians were gone, and then returning
-home found her own house safe. Her
-preservation in these dangerous circumstances
-was more remarkable, if (as it is supposed) it
-was an instance of justice and gratitude in the
-Indians: for at the time when the 400 were
-seized in 1676, a young Indian escaped and
-took refuge in her house, where she concealed
-him; in return for which kindness he promised<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_248"></a>[248]</span>
-her that he never would kill her, nor any of her
-family in any future war, and that he would
-use his influence with the other Indians to the
-same purpose. This Indian was one of the
-party who surprised the place, and she was well
-known to the most of them.</p>
-
-<p>The same day, after the mischief was done,
-a letter from Secretary Addington, written by
-order of the government, directed to Major
-Waldron, giving him notice of the intention of
-the Indians to surprise him under pretence of
-trade, fell into the hands of his son. This design
-was communicated to Governor Bradstreet by
-Major Henchman of Chelmsford, who had
-learned it of the Indians. The letter was dispatched
-from Boston, the day before, by Mr.
-Weare; but some delay which he met with at
-Newbury ferry prevented his arrival in season.</p>
-
-<p>The prisoners taken at this time were mostly
-carried to Canada, and sold to the French; and
-these, so far as can be learned, were the first
-that ever were carried thither. One of these
-prisoners was Sarah Gerrish, a remarkably fine
-child, of seven years old, and grand-daughter of
-Major Waldron, in whose house she lodged that
-fatal night. Some circumstances attending her
-captivity are truly affecting. When she was awakened
-by the noise of the Indians in the house,
-she crept into another bed, and hid herself under
-the clothes to escape their search. She remained
-in their hands till the next winter, and was sold
-from one to another several times. An Indian
-girl once pushed her into a river; but, catching<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_249"></a>[249]</span>
-by the bushes, she escaped drowning, yet durst
-not tell how she came to be wet. Once she was
-so weary with travelling, that she did not awake
-in the morning till the Indians were gone, and
-then found herself alone in the woods, covered
-with snow, and without any food; having found
-their tracks, she went crying after them till they
-heard her and took her with them. At another
-time they kindled a great fire, and the young
-Indians told her she was to be roasted. She
-burst into tears, threw her arms round her
-master’s neck, and begged him to save her,
-which he promised to do if she would behave
-well. Being arrived in Canada, she was bought
-by the Intendant’s lady, who treated her courteously,
-and sent her to a nunnery for education.
-But when Sir William Phips was at Quebec she
-was exchanged, and returned to her friends, with
-whom she lived till she was sixteen years old.</p>
-
-<p>The wife of Richard Otis was taken at the
-same time, with an infant daughter of three
-months old. The French priests took this child
-under their care, baptised her by the name of
-Christina, and educated her in the Romish religion.
-She passed some time in a nunnery,
-but declined taking the veil, and was married
-to a Frenchman, by whom she had two children.
-But her desire to see New England was
-so strong, that upon an exchange of prisoners
-in 1714, being then a widow, she left both her
-children, who were not permitted to come with
-her, and returned home, where she abjured the
-Romish faith. M. Siguenot, her former confessor,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_250"></a>[250]</span>
-wrote her a flattering letter, warning her
-of her danger, inviting her to return to the
-bosom of the catholic church, and repeating
-many gross calumnies which had formerly been
-vented against Luther and the other reformers.
-This letter being shown to Governor Burnet, he
-wrote her a sensible and masterly answer, refuting
-the arguments, and detecting the falsehoods
-it contained: both these letters were
-printed. She was married afterwards to Captain
-Thomas Baker, who had been taken at Deerfield,
-in 1704, and lived in Dover, where she
-was born, till the year 1773. The Indians had
-been seduced to the French interest by popish
-emissaries, who had begun to fascinate them
-with their religious and national prejudices.
-They had now learned to call the English heretics,
-and that to extirpate them as such was
-meritorious in the sight of heaven. When their
-minds were filled with religious frenzy, they
-became more bitter and implacable enemies
-than before; and finding the sale of scalps and
-prisoners turn to good account in Canada, they
-had still farther incitement to continue their
-depredations, and prosecute their vengeance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_251"></a>[251]</span></p>
-
-<h3>TREATMENT OF THE PRISONERS AT SALMON FALLS IN 1690.</h3>
-
-<p>The following instances of cruelty, exercised
-towards the prisoners taken at Salmon falls, are
-mentioned by Dr. Mather. Robert Rogers, a
-corpulent man, being unable to carry the burden
-which the Indians imposed upon him, threw it
-in the path and went aside in the woods to conceal
-himself. They found him by his track,
-stripped, beat, and pricked him with their
-swords: then tied him to a tree and danced
-round him till they had kindled a fire. They
-gave him time to pray, and take leave of his
-fellow prisoners, who were placed round the
-fire to see his death. They pushed the fire
-toward him, and when he was almost stifled,
-took it away to give him time to breathe, and
-thus prolong his misery; they drowned his
-dying groans with their hideous singing and
-yelling, all the while dancing round the fire,
-cutting off pieces of his flesh and throwing
-them in his face. When he was dead they left
-his body broiling on the coals, in which state it
-was found by his friends and buried. Mehetabel
-Goodwin was taken with a child of five months
-old; when it cried they threatened to kill it,
-which made the mother go aside and sit for
-hours together in the snow to lull it to sleep;
-her master seeing that this hindered her from
-travelling, took the child, struck its head against
-a tree, and hung it on one of the branches; she<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_252"></a>[252]</span>
-would have buried it but he would not let her,
-telling her that if she came again that way she
-might have the pleasure of seeing it. She was
-carried to Canada, and after five years returned
-home. Mary Plaisted was taken out of her
-bed, having lain in but three weeks: they made
-her travel with them through the snow and “to
-ease her of her burden,” as they said, struck
-the child’s head against a tree, and threw it into
-a river. An anecdote of another kind may
-relieve the reader after these tragical accounts.
-Thomas Toogood was pursued by three Indians
-and overtaken by one of them, who having
-enquired his name, was preparing strings to
-bind him, holding his gun under his arm, which
-Toogood seized and went backward, keeping
-the gun presented at him, and protesting that he
-would shoot him if he alarmed the others who
-had stopped on the opposite side of the hill.
-By this dexterity he escaped and got safe into
-Cocheco; while his adversary had no recompense
-in his power but to call after him by the
-name of Nogood.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="FOOTNOTES">FOOTNOTES</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">[1]</a> General Jackson.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">[2]</a> Published in the Mobile Com. Register. March, 1824.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">[3]</a> This speech is the most manly and dignified piece of
-Indian oratory that has ever met our eye. It even surpasses
-the admired speech of Caractacus, the Briton, when
-led captive to Rome;—and is, in no wise, inferior to that of
-Logan.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">[4]</a> This interesting fact of a young Indian Chief of the
-Pawnee nation, at the foot of the Rocky Mountains, who was
-on a visit to Washington in the winter of 1824, is extracted
-from a letter of the Rev. Richard Reece, to the editor of the
-London Wesleyan Methodist Magazine.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">[5]</a> In 1775 Shenandoh was present at a treaty made in
-Albany. At night he was excessively drunk; and in the
-morning, found himself in the street, stripped of all his ornaments,
-and every article of clothing. His pride revolted at
-his self-degradation, and he resolved never more to deliver
-himself over to the power of ‘strong water.’</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="label">[6]</a> The Editor of the Indian Anecdotes, is not responsible
-for the sentiments, which any of the Anecdotes of this collection
-may seem to illustrate. And although he has carefully
-omitted such as would tend to corrupt, or exert an immoral
-influence on the character; he disclaims every political or
-religious partiality. The above has been introduced as an
-interesting specimen of Indian logic.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="label">[7]</a> The Mandan tribe is now entirely extinct—<i>Catlin.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="back-cover" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/back-cover.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BOYS&#039; BOOK OF INDIAN BATTLES AND ADVENTURES ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/back-cover.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/back-cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8655a1f..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/back-cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0d74f97..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus01.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus01.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 69f0455..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus01.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus02.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus02.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b6d1462..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus02.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus03.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus03.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1215651..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus03.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus04.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus04.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9adb8ea..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus04.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus05.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus05.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c1f8679..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus05.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus06.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus06.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1d5b56c..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus06.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus07.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus07.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e4e4d1e..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus07.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus08.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus08.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9d30cfb..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus08.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus09.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus09.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d4dc963..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus09.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus10.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus10.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7c6d5c2..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus10.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus11.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus11.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ac624ba..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus11.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus12.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus12.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 60b1d0e..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus12.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus13.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus13.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 11c5e55..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus13.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus14.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus14.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 40d38ab..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus14.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus15.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus15.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5a14812..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus15.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus16.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus16.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a07784c..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus16.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus17.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus17.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ec9aace..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus17.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus18.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus18.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2fdc17c..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus18.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus19.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus19.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7f87df5..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus19.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus20.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus20.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c3e5c9d..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus20.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus21.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus21.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bb18848..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus21.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus22.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus22.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a89e0a9..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus22.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus23.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus23.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d28010d..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus23.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus24.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus24.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ef64089..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus24.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus25.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus25.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ef4dcad..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus25.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus26.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus26.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 60c3fe2..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus26.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus27.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus27.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c8366cb..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus27.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus28.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus28.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3a940f9..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus28.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus29.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus29.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2ca0d21..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus29.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus30.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus30.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 87ae090..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus30.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus31.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus31.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3e3504b..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus31.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus32.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus32.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b13798f..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus32.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus33.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus33.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 833daed..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus33.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus34.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus34.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 27c1db7..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus34.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus35.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus35.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3da063b..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus35.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69769-h/images/illus36.jpg b/old/69769-h/images/illus36.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 97fee55..0000000
--- a/old/69769-h/images/illus36.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ